Selected quad for the lemma: authority_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
authority_n bishop_n roman_a rome_n 2,365 5 6.7055 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A61588 A rational account of the grounds of Protestant religion being a vindication of the Lord Archbishop of Canterbury's relation of a conference, &c., from the pretended answer by T.C. : wherein the true grounds of faith are cleared and the false discovered, the Church of England vindicated from the imputation of schism, and the most important particular controversies between us and those of the Church of Rome throughly examined / by Edward Stillingfleet ... Stillingfleet, Edward, 1635-1699. 1665 (1665) Wing S5624; ESTC R1133 917,562 674

There are 61 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o several_a testimony_n to_o the_o contrary_a of_o s._n ambrose_n s._n hierom_n john_n patriarch_n of_o constantiople_n s._n augustine_n optatus_n etc._n etc._n particular_o examine_v and_o all_o find_v short_a of_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_n church_n the_o several_a answer_n of_o his_o lordship_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n cyprian_n s._n hierom_n s._n greg._n nazianzen_n s._n cyril_n and_o ruffinus_n about_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n justify_v from_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o make_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_n be_v a_o great_a novelty_n and_o perfect_a jesuitism_n p._n 289._o chap._n ii_o protestant_n no_o schismatic_n schism_n a_o culpable_a separation_n therefore_o the_o question_n of_o schism_n must_v be_v determine_v by_o inquire_v into_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o the_o plea_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v once_o a_o right_a church_n consider_v no_o necessity_n of_o assign_v the_o punctual_a time_n when_o error_n creep_v into_o she_o a_o account_n why_o the_o original_n of_o error_n seem_v obscure_a by_o stapletons_n confession_n the_o roman_a and_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o the_o same_o the_o falsi●y_n of_o that_o assertion_n manifest_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o pure_a church_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n if_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v corrupt_a no_o one_o particular_a church_n free_a from_o corruption_n yet_o no_o separation_n from_o the_o catholic_n church_n how_o far_o the_o catholic_n church_n may_v be_v say_v to_o err_v man_n may_v have_v distinct_a communion_n from_o any_o o●e_n particular_a church_n yet_o not_o separate_v from_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o testimony_n of_o petrus_n de_fw-it alliaco_fw-it vindicate_v bellarmin_n not_o miss_v cite_v almain_n full_a to_o his_o lordship_n purpose_n the_o romanist_n guilty_a of_o the_o present_a schism_n and_o not_o protestant_n in_o what_o sense_n there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o schism_n and_o how_o far_o that_o concern_v our_o case_n protestant_n do_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o be_v thrust_v out_o of_o it_o the_o vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o schism_n at_o last_o depend_v upon_o the_o two_o false_a principle_n of_o her_o infallibility_n and_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n the_o testimony_n of_o s._n bernard_n and_o s_o austin_n not_o to_o the_o purpose_n the_o catalogue_n of_o fundamental_o the_o church_n not_o err_v etc._n etc._n refer_v back_o to_o their_o proper_a place_n p._n 324._o chap._n iii_o of_o keep_v faith_n with_o heretic_n the_o occasion_n of_o this_o dispute_n the_o reason_n why_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o common_o defend_v yet_o all_o own_o such_o principle_n from_o whence_o it_o necessary_o follow_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o to_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o john_n hus_n open_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o safe_a conduct_n grant_v he_o by_o the_o emperor_n that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o general_a one_o saluâ_fw-la justitiâ_fw-la but_o particular_a jure_fw-la speciali_fw-la which_o be_v large_o prove_v the_o particular_n concern_v hierom_n of_o prague_n of_o the_o safe-conduct_n grant_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n of_o the_o distinction_n of_o secular_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n and_o that_o from_o thence_o it_o follow_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v with_o heretic_n simancha_n and_o several_a other_o full_o assert_v this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o invitation_n to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o the_o good_a instruction_n there_o and_o of_o public_a disputation_n p._n 343._o chap._n iu._n the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n justify_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n guilty_a of_o schism_n by_o unjust_o cast_v protestant_n out_o of_o communion_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o particular_a church_n distinguish_v no_o separation_n of_o protestant_n from_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o devotion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o rome_n compare_v particular_a church_n power_n to_o reform_v themselves_o in_o case_n of_o general_a corruption_n prove_v the_o instance_n from_o the_o church_n of_o judah_n vindicate_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n parallel_v with_o the_o ten_o tribe_n general_a corruption_n make_v reformation_n the_o more_o necessary_a whether_o those_o thing_n we_o condemn_v as_o error_n be_v catholic_n tenet_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o reformation_n the_o contrary_a show_v and_o the_o d●fference_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n before_o and_o since_o the_o reformation_n when_o thing_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o catholic_n doctrine_n how_o far_o particular_a church_n power_n to_o reform_v themselves_o extend_v his_o lordship_n instance_n for_o the_o power_n of_o provincial_a council_n in_o matter_n of_o reformation_n vindicate_v the_o particular_a case_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n discuss_v the_o proceed_n in_o our_o reformation_n defend_v the_o church_n of_o england_n a_o true_a church_n the_o national_a synod_n 1562._o a_o lawful_a synod_n the_o bishop_n no_o intruder_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n the_o justice_n and_o moderation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o her_o reformation_n the_o pope_n power_n here_o a_o forcible_a and_o fraudulent_a usurpation_n p._n 356._o chap._n v._o of_o the_o roman_a church_n authority_n the_o question_n concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n authority_n enter_v upon_o how_o far_o our_o church_n in_o reform_v herself_o condemn_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o pope_n equality_n with_o other_o patriarch_n assert_v the_o arabic_a canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n prove_v to_o be_v supposititious_a the_o polity_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n discover_v from_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o right_n of_o primat_n and_o metropolitan_o settle_v by_o it_o the_o suitableness_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a to_o the_o civil_a government_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v then_o a_o limit_v jurisdiction_n within_o the_o suburbicary_n church_n as_o primate_n of_o the_o roman_a diocese_n of_o the_o cyprian_a privilege_n that_o it_o be_v not_o peculiar_a but_o common_a to_o all_o primat_n of_o dioceses_n of_o the_o pope_n primacy_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n how_o far_o pertinent_a to_o our_o dispute_n how_o far_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n requisite_a to_o new_a elect_a patriarch_n of_o the_o synodical_a and_o communicatory_a letter_n the_o testimony_n of_o petrus_n de_fw-fr marcâ_fw-la concern_v the_o pope_n power_n of_o confirm_v and_o depose_v bishop_n the_o instance_n bring_v for_o it_o consider_v the_o case_n of_o athanasius_n be_v restore_v by_o julius_n true_o state_v the_o proceed_n of_o constantine_n in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o donatist_n clear_v and_o the_o evidence_n thence_o against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n of_o the_o appeal_n of_o bishop_n to_o rome_n how_o far_o allow_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n the_o great_a case_n of_o appeal_n between_o the_o roman_a and_o african_a bishop_n discuss_v that_o the_o appeal_v of_o bishop_n be_v prohibit_v as_o well_o as_o those_o of_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n c's_o fraud_n in_o cite_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n for_o acknowledge_v appeal_n to_o rome_n the_o contrary_a manifest_v from_o the_o same_o epistle_n to_o boniface_n and_o the_o other_o to_o celestine_n the_o exemption_n of_o the_o ancient_a britannic_a church_n from_o any_o subjection_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n assert_v the_o case_n of_o wilfrid_n appeal_v answer_v the_o primacy_n of_o england_n not_o derive_v from_o gregory_n grant_n to_o augustine_n the_o monk_n the_o ancient_a primacy_n of_o the_o britannic_a church_n not_o lose_v upon_o the_o saxon_a conversion_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o african_a church_n after_o their_o deny_v appeal_v to_o rome_n the_o rise_n of_o the_o pope_n greatness_n under_o christian_a emperor_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o sardican_a synod_n in_o case_n of_o appeal_n whether_o ever_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n no_o evidence_n thence_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n zosimus_n his_o forgery_n in_o send_v the_o sardican_a canon_n instead_o of_o the_o nicene_n the_o weakness_n of_o the_o plea_n for_o it_o manifest_v p._n 382._o chap._n vi_o of_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n in_o what_o sense_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n be_v take_v in_o antiquity_n a_o threefold_a acceptation_n of_o it_o as_o import_v 1._o a_o general_a care_n over_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o be_v attribute_v to_o other_o catholic_n bishop_n by_o antiquity_n beside_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o be_v large_o prove_v 2._o a_o peculiar_a dignity_n over_o the_o church_n within_o the_o roman_a empire_n this_o account_v then_o ecumenical_a thence_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n call_v ecumenical_a bishop_n and_o sometime_o of_o other_o patriarchal_a church_n 3._o note_v universal_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o head_n of_o it_o so_o never_o give_v
and_o punctual_a than_o this_o testimony_n of_o cyprian_a be_v to_o overthrow_v that_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o you_o contend_v for_o how_o far_o be_v cyprian_a and_o the_o african_a bishop_n from_o make_v rome_n the_o centre_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n when_o they_o look_v on_o appeal_n thither_o as_o very_o unjust_a and_o unreasonable_a what_o acknowledgement_n and_o dependence_n be_v there_o on_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o those_o who_o look_v on_o themselves_o as_o have_v a_o portion_n of_o christ_n flock_n commit_v to_o they_o of_o which_o they_o be_v to_o give_v a_o account_n to_o god_n alone_o and_o i_o pray_v what_o excellent_a person_n be_v those_o who_o undervalue_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n and_o run_v to_o rome_n st._n cyprian_n tell_v we_o they_o be_v pauci_fw-la desperati_fw-la perditi_fw-la and_o translate_v these_o with_o as_o much_o advantage_n to_o your_o cause_n as_o you_o can_v so_o fatal_a have_v it_o be_v to_o rome_n even_o from_o its_o first_o foundation_n to_o be_v a_o receptacle_n for_o such_o person_n and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o great_a credit_n to_o your_o cause_n that_o such_o person_n who_o be_v eject_v out_o of_o communion_n for_o their_o crime_n at_o home_n do_v make_v their_o resort_n to_o rome_n and_o the_o more_o pious_a and_o stout_a any_o bishop_n be_v the_o more_o they_o defend_v their_o own_o privilege_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o encroachment_n of_o the_o roman_a sec._n which_o be_v apt_a to_o take_v advantage_n from_o such_o renegado_n as_o these_o be_v by_o degree_n to_o get_v more_o power_n into_o her_o hand_n and_o lift_v up_o her_o head_n above_o her_o fellow-churche_n but_o lest_o you_o shall_v think_v that_o st._n cyprian_n only_o speak_v these_o thing_n in_o a_o heat_n out_o of_o his_o opposition_n to_o these_o person_n and_o his_o desire_n to_o crush_v they_o you_o shall_v see_v what_o his_o judgement_n be_v concern_v the_o same_o thing_n when_o he_o purposely_o discourse_v of_o they_o for_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n he_o use_v that_o expression_n which_o destroy_v all_o your_o subordinate_a union_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v episcopatus_fw-la unus_fw-la est_fw-la 208_o cujus_fw-la à_fw-la singulis_fw-la in_o solidum_fw-la pars_fw-la tenetur_fw-la they_o who_o consider_v and_o understand_v the_o importance_n of_o that_o speech_n will_v find_v nothing_o more_o destructive_a to_o your_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n then_o that_o be_v for_o when_o he_o make_v the_o universal_a government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v but_o one_o episcopal_a office_n and_o that_o commit_v in_o the_o several_a part_n of_o it_o with_o full_a power_n to_o particular_a bishop_n can_v any_o be_v so_o senseless_a to_o imagine_v that_o he_o shall_v ever_o think_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n to_o depend_v on_o any_o one_o particular_a church_n as_o chief_a over_o the_o rest_n and_o that_o the_o former_a word_n do_v real_o import_v such_o a_o full_a power_n in_o particular_a bishop_n over_o that_o part_n of_o the_o flock_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o they_o appear_v from_o the_o true_a importance_n of_o the_o phrase_n insolidum_fw-la a_o phrase_n take_v out_o of_o the_o civil_a law_n where_o great_a difference_n be_v make_v between_o a_o obligation_n in_o partem_fw-la and_o in_fw-la solidum_fw-la and_o so_o proportionable_a between_o a_o tenure_n in_o partem_fw-la and_o in_fw-la solidum_fw-la those_o thing_n be_v hold_v in_o solidum_fw-la which_o be_v hold_v in_o full_a right_n and_o power_n without_o payment_n and_o acknowledgement_n but_o where_o the_o ususfructus_a belong_v to_o another_o it_o be_v not_o hold_v in_o solidum_fw-la so_o that_o when_o st._n cyprian_n say_v that_o every_o part_n belong_v to_o each_o bishop_n be_v hold_v in_o solidum_fw-la he_o therein_o import_v that_o full_a right_n and_o power_n which_o every_o bishop_n have_v over_o his_o charge_n and_o in_o this_o speech_n he_o compare_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o a_o estate_n hold_v by_o several_a freeholder_n in_o which_o every_o one_o have_v a_o full_a right_n to_o that_o share_n which_o belong_v to_o he_o whereas_o according_a to_o your_o principle_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v like_o a_o manor_n or_o lordship_n in_o which_o the_o several_a inhabitant_n hold_v at_o the_o best_a but_o by_o copy_n from_o the_o lord_n and_o you_o will_v fain_o have_v it_o at_o the_o will_n of_o your_o lord_n too_o but_o thus_o far_o we_o see_v st._n cyprian_n be_v from_o your_o modern_a notion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o he_o look_v on_o the_o unity_n of_o it_o as_o depend_v on_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n and_o church_n under_o their_o full_a power_n and_o not_o derive_v that_o unity_n from_o any_o particular_a church_n as_o the_o head_n and_o fountain_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o in_o the_o former_a schism_n at_o rome_n about_o cornelius_n and_o novatianus_n st._n cyprian_n employ_v two_o of_o his_o colleague_n thither_o caldonius_n and_o fortunatus_n that_o not_o only_o by_o the_o letter_n they_o carry_v but_o by_o their_o presence_n and_o counsel_n they_o shall_v do_v their_o utmost_a endeavour_n to_o bring_v the_o member_n of_o that_o divide_a body_n to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 42._o which_o be_v certain_o a_o very_a different_a thing_n from_o the_o catholic_n church_n derive_v its_o unity_n from_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n many_o other_o instance_n of_o a_o like_a nature_n may_v be_v produce_v out_o of_o the_o report_n of_o st._n cyprian_n time_n but_o these_o be_v sufficient_a to_o evidence_n how_o far_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v then_o from_o depend_v on_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 10._o but_o lest_o we_o shall_v seem_v to_o insist_v only_o on_o st._n cyprian_n testimony_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o multiply_v example_n in_o this_o kind_n which_o i_o shall_v but_o touch_v at_o some_o of_o and_o proceed_v if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o have_v be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o centre_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n be_v it_o possible_a to_o conceive_v that_o the_o excommunication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v slight_v as_o they_o be_v by_o polycrates_n 1._o for_o which_o st._n hierome_n commend_v he_o as_o a_o man_n of_o courage_n that_o stephen_n shall_v be_v oppose_v as_o he_o be_v by_o cyprian_a and_o firmilian_a in_o a_o way_n so_o reflect_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o appeal_v to_o rome_n shall_v be_v so_o severe_o prohibit_v by_o the_o african_a bishop_n that_o cause_n shall_v be_v determine_v by_o so_o many_o canon_n to_o be_v hear_v in_o their_o proper_a diocese_n that_o when_o the_o right_a of_o appeal_n be_v challenge_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v whole_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o imaginary_a nicene_n canon_n that_o when_o julius_n undertake_v by_o his_o sole_a power_n to_o absolve_v athanasius_n 11_o the_o oriental_a bishop_n oppose_v it_o as_o irregular_a on_o that_o account_n at_o the_o council_n at_o antioch_n that_o when_o afterward_o paulus_n marcellus_n and_o lucius_z repair_v to_o rome_n to_o julius_n and_o he_o seek_v to_o restore_v they_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n wonder_v at_o his_o offering_n to_o restore_v they_o who_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o themselves_o and_o that_o as_o when_o novatus_n be_v excommunicate_v at_o rome_n they_o oppose_v it_o not_o so_o neither_o ought_v he_o to_o oppose_v their_o proceed_n against_o these_o person_n what_o account_n can_v be_v give_v of_o these_o passage_n if_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n have_v depend_v on_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n beside_o while_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n continue_v regular_a we_o find_v she_o look_v on_o herself_o as_o much_o oblige_v to_o observe_v the_o excommunication_n make_v by_o other_o church_n as_o other_o be_v to_o observe_v she_o as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o martion_n who_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o his_o father_n the_o bishop_n of_o sinope_n in_o pontus_n and_o by_o no_o mean_n prevail_v with_o his_o father_n for_o his_o admission_n into_o the_o church_n again_o resort_n to_o rome_n and_o with_o great_a earnestness_n beg_v admission_n there_o where_o he_o receive_v this_o answer_n that_o they_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o the_o command_n of_o his_o father_n 1._o for_o there_o be_v one_o faith_n and_o one_o consent_n and_o we_o can_v contradict_v our_o worthy_a brother_n your_o father_n this_o show_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o proceed_v upon_o other_o ground_n than_o the_o causal_n influence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n do_v oblige_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o to_o repeal_v the_o excommunication_n of_o a_o particular_a bishop_n upon_o which_o ground_n it_o be_v that_o synesius_n
the_o lawfulness_n of_o his_o do_v it_o because_o he_o be_v thereto_o appoint_v by_o the_o emperor_n but_o when_o you_o say_v st._n austin_n give_v this_o answer_n only_o per_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o way_n of_o condescension_n to_o his_o adversary_n way_n of_o speak_v you_o will_v do_v well_o to_o prove_v elsewhere_o from_o st._n austin_n that_o when_o he_o lay_n aside_o his_o rhetoric_n he_o ever_o speak_v otherwise_o but_o that_o it_o will_v have_v be_v a_o usurpation_n in_o the_o pope_n to_o challenge_v to_o himself_o the_o hear_n of_o those_o cause_n which_o have_v be_v determine_v by_o african_a bishop_n but_o what_o st._n augustine_n judgement_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o african_a father_n be_v in_o this_o point_n abundant_o appear_v from_o the_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o case_n of_o appeal_n it_o sufficient_o appear_v already_o that_o neither_o our_o saviour_n nor_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n give_v the_o pope_n leave_v to_o hear_v and_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o st._n athanasius_n and_o other_o patriarch_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o you_o be_v put_v to_o your_o shift_n when_o you_o run_v thither_o for_o security_n but_o that_o which_o follow_v be_v notorious_o false_a that_o when_o he_o do_v so_o interpose_v no_o man_n no_o not_o the_o person_n themselves_o who_o be_v interest_v and_o suffer_v by_o his_o judgement_n complain_v or_o accuse_v he_o of_o usurpation_n when_o in_o the_o case_n of_o athanasius_n it_o be_v so_o vehement_o plead_v by_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o do_v in_o it_o but_o they_o may_v as_o well_o call_v in_o question_n what_o be_v do_v at_o rome_n as_o he_o what_o be_v do_v at_o antioch_n nay_o name_v we_o any_o one_o cause_n in_o that_o age_n of_o the_o church_n where_o the_o pope_n do_v offer_v to_o meddle_v in_o matter_n determine_v by_o other_o bishop_n which_o he_o be_v not_o oppose_v in_o and_o the_o person_n concern_v do_v not_o complain_v and_o accuse_v he_o of_o meddle_v with_o what_o he_o have_v no_o right_n to_o which_o be_v but_o other_o word_n for_o usurpation_n you_o say_v the_o bishop_n who_o the_o emperor_n send_v as_o judge_n with_o the_o pope_n 11._o be_v a_o inconsiderable_a number_n to_o sway_v the_o sentence_n it_o seem_v three_o to_o one_o be_v with_o you_o a_o inconsiderable_a number_n but_o say_v you_o the_o pope_n to_o show_v his_o authority_n add_v fifteen_o other_o bishop_n of_o italy_n to_o be_v his_o colleague_n and_o assistant_n in_o the_o business_n either_o these_o fifteen_o bishop_n be_v proper_o judge_n in_o the_o cause_n or_o only_a assistant_n for_o better_a management_n and_o speedy_a dispatch_n if_o they_o be_v judge_n how_o prove_v you_o that_o constantine_n do_v not_o appoint_v they_o if_o they_o be_v only_a assistant_n and_o suffragans_fw-la to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o be_v most_o probable_a except_o merocles_n bishop_n of_o milan_n what_o authority_n do_v the_o pope_n show_v in_o call_v his_o suffragans_fw-la to_o his_o assistance_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o that_o nature_n which_o require_v so_o much_o examination_n of_o witness_n but_o the_o pope_n have_v more_o effectual_o show_v his_o authority_n if_o he_o have_v refuse_v the_o bishop_n who_o constantine_n send_v and_o tell_v he_o he_o meddle_v with_o that_o which_o do_v not_o concern_v he_o to_o appoint_v any_o judge_n at_o all_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o ecclesiastical_a cognisance_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o unsufferable_a presumption_n in_o he_o to_o offer_v to_o send_v three_o underling_n bishop_n to_o sit_v with_o he_o in_o decide_v controversy_n as_o though_o he_o be_v not_o the_o universal_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n himself_o to_o who_o alone_o by_o divine_a right_n all_o such_o thing_n do_v belong_v such_o language_n as_o this_o will_v have_v become_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o that_o indeed_o he_o have_v show_v his_o authority_n but_o for_o he_o sneak_o to_o admit_v other_o bishop_n as_o joynt-commissioner_n forsooth_o with_o he_o and_o that_o by_o the_o emperor_n appointment_n too_o what_o do_v he_o else_o but_o betray_v the_o right_n of_o his_o see_n and_o expose_v his_o infallible_a headship_n to_o great_a contempt_n do_v you_o think_v that_o pope_n hildebrand_n or_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n will_v have_v do_v this_o no_o they_o understand_v their_o power_n far_o better_o than_o so_o and_o the_o emperor_n shall_v have_v know_v his_o own_o for_o offer_v such_o a_o affront_n to_o his_o holiness_n and_o if_o his_o bay-leaves_a do_v not_o secure_v he_o the_o thunderbolt_n of_o excommunication_n may_v have_v light_v on_o he_o to_o his_o prejudice_n for_o shame_v than_o never_o say_v that_o pope_n miltiades_n show_v his_o authority_n but_o rather_o give_v he_o over_o among_o those_o good_a bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o bad_a pope_n who_o know_v better_o how_o to_o suffer_v martyrdom_n then_o assert_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a see_n i_o pray_v imagine_v but_o paul_n 5._o or_o any_o other_o of_o our_o stout-spirited_n pope_n in_o miltiades_n his_o place_n will_v they_o have_v take_v such_o thing_n at_o constantine_n hand_n as_o poor_a miltiades_n do_v and_o for_o all_o that_o we_o see_v be_v very_o well_o content_v too_o and_o think_v he_o do_v but_o his_o duty_n in_o do_v what_o the_o emperor_n bid_v he_o will_v they_o have_v be_v content_v to_o have_v have_v a_o cause_n once_o pass_v the_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v to_o be_v resume_v again_o and_o handle_v in_o another_o council_n as_o though_o there_o can_v be_v any_o suspicion_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o right_o carry_v there_o and_o that_o after_o all_o this_o too_o the_o emperor_n shall_v undertake_v to_o give_v the_o final_a decision_n to_o it_o will_v these_o thing_n have_v be_v bear_v with_o by_o any_o of_o our_o infallible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o good_a miltiades_n must_v be_v excuse_v he_o go_v as_o far_o as_o his_o knowledge_n carry_v he_o and_o think_v he_o may_v do_v good_a service_n to_o the_o church_n in_o what_o he_o do_v and_o that_o be_v it_o he_o look_v at_o more_o than_o the_o grandeur_n of_o his_o see_n the_o good_a bishop_n than_o be_v just_o creep_v out_o of_o the_o flame_n of_o persecution_n and_o they_o think_v it_o a_o great_a matter_n that_o they_o have_v liberty_n themselves_o and_o do_v not_o much_o concern_v themselves_o about_o those_o usurpation_n which_o the_o pride_n and_o ease_n of_o the_o follow_a age_n give_v occasion_n for_o they_o be_v sorry_a to_o see_v a_o church_n that_o have_v survive_v the_o cruel_a flame_n of_o dioclesian_n persecution_n so_o sudden_o to_o feel_v new_a one_o in_o she_o own_o bowel_n that_o a_o church_n who_o constitution_n be_v so_o strong_a as_o to_o endure_v martyrdom_n shall_v no_o soon_o be_v at_o ease_n but_o she_o begin_v to_o putrify_v and_o to_o be_v fly-blown_a with_o heat_n and_o division_n among_o her_o member_n and_o that_o her_o own_o child_n shall_v rake_v in_o those_o wound_n which_o the_o violence_n of_o her_o profess_a enemy_n have_v cause_v in_o she_o and_o therefore_o these_o good_a bishop_n use_v their_o care_n and_o industry_n to_o close_v they_o up_o and_o rather_o rejoice_v they_o have_v so_o good_a a_o emperor_n who_o will_v concern_v himself_o so_o much_o in_o heal_v the_o church_n breach_n then_o dispute_v his_o authority_n or_o disobey_v his_o command_n and_o if_o constantine_n do_v express_v himself_o unwilling_a to_o engage_v himself_o to_o meddle_v in_o a_o business_n concern_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v out_o of_o his_o tender_a respect_n to_o those_o bishop_n who_o have_v manifest_v their_o piety_n and_o sincerity_n so_o much_o in_o their_o late_a persecution_n and_o not_o from_o any_o question_n of_o his_o own_o authority_n in_o it_o for_o that_o he_o after_o sufficient_o assert_v not_o only_o in_o his_o own_o action_n but_o when_o the_o case_n of_o felix_n of_o aptung_n be_v think_v not_o sufficient_o scan_v at_o rome_n in_o appoint_v about_o four_o month_n after_o the_o judgement_n at_o rome_n aelianus_n the_o proconsul_n of_o africa_n to_o examine_v the_o case_n of_o felix_n the_o bishop_n of_o aptung_n 11._o who_o have_v ordain_v caecilian_n to_o this_o the_o donatist_n plead_v 162._o that_o a_o bishop_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v try_v by_o proconsular_a judgement_n to_o which_o st._n austin_n answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o own_o seek_v but_o the_o emperor_n appoint_v to_o who_o care_n and_o charge_v that_o business_n do_v chief_o belong_v of_o which_o he_o must_v give_v a_o account_n to_o god_n and_o can_v it_o now_o enter_v into_o any_o head_n but_o you_o that_o for_o all_o this_o the_o emperor_n look_v on_o the_o judgement_n
nice_a for_o if_o this_o be_v take_v care_n for_o as_o to_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n and_o laity_n how_o much_o more_o will_v it_o have_v it_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o bishop_n that_o so_o they_o who_o be_v in_o their_o own_o province_n suspend_v from_o communion_n be_v not_o hasty_o or_o undue_o admit_v by_o your_o holiness_n let_v your_o holiness_n also_o reject_v the_o wicked_a refuge_n of_o priest_n and_o inferior_a clerk_n for_o no_o canon_n of_o the_o father_n have_v take_v that_o from_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o nice_a have_v subject_v both_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n and_o bishop_n io_o their_o metropolitan_n for_o they_o have_v most_o wise_o and_o just_o provide_v that_o every_o business_n be_v determine_v in_o the_o place_n where_o it_o begin_v and_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o every_o province_n that_o so_o equity_n may_v be_v prudent_o discover_v and_o constant_o hold_v by_o christ_n priest_n especial_o see_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o every_o one_o if_o he_o be_v offend_v to_o appeal_v to_o the_o council_n of_o the_o province_n or_o even_o to_o a_o universal_a council_n unless_o perhaps_o some_o body_n believe_v that_o god_n can_v inspire_v to_o every_o one_o of_o we_o the_o justice_n of_o examination_n of_o a_o cause_n and_o refuse_v it_o to_o a_o multitude_n of_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o council_n or_o how_o can_v a_o judgement_n make_v beyond_o the_o sea_n be_v valid_a to_o which_o the_o person_n of_o necessary_a witness_n can_v be_v bring_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o infirmity_n of_o their_o sex_n and_o age_n or_o of_o many_o other_o intervening_a impediment_n for_o this_o send_n of_o man_n to_o we_o from_o your_o holiness_n we_o do_v not_o find_v command_v by_o any_o synod_n of_o the_o father_n and_o as_o for_o that_o which_o you_o do_v long_o since_o send_v to_o we_o by_o faustinus_n our_o fellow-bishop_n as_o belong_v to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a we_o can_v not_o find_v it_o in_o the_o true_a copy_n of_o the_o council_n send_v by_o holy_a cyril_n our_o colleague_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o by_o the_o venerable_a atticus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n which_o also_o we_o send_v to_o your_o predecessor_n boniface_n of_o happy_a memory_n by_o innocent_a a_o presbyter_n and_o marcellus_n a_o deacon_n take_v heed_n also_o of_o send_v to_o we_o any_o of_o your_o clerk_n for_o executor_n to_o those_o who_o desire_v it_o lest_o we_o seem_v to_o bring_v the_o swell_a pride_n of_o the_o world_n into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o bear_v the_o light_n of_o simplicity_n and_o the_o brightness_n of_o humility_n before_o they_o that_o desire_v to_o see_v god_n and_o concern_v our_o brother_n faustinus_n apiarius_n be_v now_o for_o his_o wickedness_n cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v confident_a that_o our_o brotherly_a love_n continue_v through_o the_o goodness_n and_o moderation_n of_o your_o holiness_n africa_n shall_v no_o more_o be_v trouble_v with_o he_o thus_o i_o have_v at_o large_a produce_v this_o noble_a monument_n of_o the_o prudence_n courage_n and_o simplicity_n of_o the_o african_a father_n enough_o to_o put_v any_o reasonable_a man_n out_o of_o the_o fond_a conceit_n of_o a_o universal_a pastorship_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o wonder_v not_o that_o baronius_n say_v there_o be_v some_o hard_a thing_n in_o this_o epistle_n that_o perron_n sweat_v and_o toil_n so_o much_o to_o so_o little_a purpose_n to_o enervate_a the_o force_n of_o it_o for_o as_o long_o as_o the_o record_n of_o it_o last_o we_o have_v a_o impregnable_a bulwark_n against_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o methinks_v you_o may_v blush_v for_o shame_n to_o produce_v those_o african_a father_n as_o determine_v the_o appeal_n of_o bishop_n to_o rome_n who_o with_o as_o much_o evidence_n and_o reason_n as_o courage_n and_o resolution_n do_v final_o oppose_v it_o what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o convince_o against_o these_o appeal_n than_o be_v here_o urge_v by_o they_o that_o they_o have_v neither_o authority_n from_o council_n nor_o any_o foundation_n in_o justice_n and_o equity_n that_o god_n presence_n be_v as_o well_o in_o africa_n as_o rome_n no_o doubt_n than_o they_o never_o imagine_v any_o infallibility_n there_o that_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o simplicity_n and_o humility_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o tend_v only_o to_o nourish_v swell_a pride_n and_o secular_a ambition_n in_o the_o church_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o send_v legate_n to_o hear_v cause_n and_o they_o hope_v they_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o trouble_v with_o such_o as_o faustinus_n be_v all_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o evident_a in_o this_o testimony_n that_o it_o be_v a_o disparagement_n to_o it_o to_o offer_v more_o at_o large_a to_o explain_v they_o i_o hope_v then_o this_o will_v make_v you_o sensible_a of_o the_o injury_n you_o have_v do_v the_o african_a father_n by_o say_v that_o they_o determine_v the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v hear_v at_o rome_n your_o answer_n to_o the_o place_n of_o s._n gregory_n 15._o which_o his_o lordship_n produce_v concern_v appeal_n 54_o viz._n that_o the_o patriarch_n be_v to_o put_v a_o final_a end_n to_o those_o cause_n which_o come_v before_o he_o by_o appeal_n from_o bishop_n and_o arch-bishop_n be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o it_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n and_o therefore_o be_v take_v off_o already_o but_o you_o wonder_v his_o lordship_n shall_v expose_v to_o view_v the_o follow_a word_n of_o s._n gregory_n where_o there_o be_v neither_o metropolitan_a nor_o patriarch_n of_o that_o diocese_n there_o they_o be_v to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a as_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n then_o sure_o it_o follow_v say_v you_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v jurisdiction_n be_v not_o only_o over_o the_o western_a and_o southern_a province_n but_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n whither_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o patriarch_n and_o metropolitan_o never_o extend_v see_v how_o well_o you_o make_v good_a the_o common_a say_n that_o ignorance_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o admiration_n for_o wherefore_o shall_v you_o wonder_v at_o his_o lordship_n produce_v these_o word_n if_o you_o have_v either_o understand_v or_o consider_v the_o abundant_a answer_n which_o he_o give_v to_o they_o 171._o 1._o that_o if_o there_o be_v a_o metropolitan_a or_o a_o patriarch_n in_o those_o church_n his_o judgement_n be_v final_a and_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o appeal_n to_o rome_n 2._o it_o be_v as_o plain_a that_o in_o those_o ancient_a time_n of_o church-government_n britain_n be_v never_o subject_a to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n of_o which_o afterward_o 3._o it_o will_v be_v hard_a for_o any_o man_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v any_o church_n then_o in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v not_o under_o some_o either_o patriarch_n or_o metropolitan_a 4._o if_o any_o such_o be_v it_o be_v gratis_n dictum_fw-la and_o impossible_a to_o be_v prove_v that_o all_o such_o church_n wherever_o seat_v in_o the_o world_n be_v oblige_v to_o depend_v on_o rome_n and_o do_v you_o still_o wonder_v why_o his_o lordship_n produce_v these_o word_n i_o may_v more_o just_o wonder_v why_o you_o return_v no_o answer_n to_o what_o his_o lordship_n here_o say_v but_o still_o the_o caput_fw-la omnium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la stick_v with_o you_o if_o his_o lordship_n have_v not_o particular_o speak_v to_o that_o it_o be_v because_o his_o whole_a discourse_n be_v sufficient_a to_o a_o man_n of_o ordinary_a capacity_n to_o let_v he_o see_v that_o no_o more_o can_v be_v mean_v by_o it_o but_o some_o pre-eminence_n of_o that_o church_n above_o other_o in_o regard_n of_o order_n and_o dignity_n but_o no_o such_o thing_n as_o universal_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v to_o be_v deduce_v from_o it_o and_o if_o gregory_n understand_v more_o by_o it_o as_o his_o lordship_n say_v it_o be_v gratis_n dictum_fw-la and_o gregory_n himself_o be_v not_o a_o person_n to_o be_v believe_v in_o his_o own_o cause_n but_o now_o as_o you_o express_v it_o his_o lordship_n take_v a_o leap_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 188._o to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n no_o neither_o his_o lordship_n nor_o we_o take_v a_o leap_n from_o thence_o hither_o but_o you_o be_v the_o man_n who_o leap_v over_o the_o alps_o from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o that_o of_o rome_n we_o plead_v as_o his_o lordship_n do_v true_o that_o in_o the_o ancient_a time_n of_o the_o church_n britain_n be_v never_o subject_a to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n but_o be_v one_o of_o the_o western_a diocese_n of_o the_o empire_n it_o have_v a_o primate_n of_o its_o own_o this_o you_o say_v his_o lordship_n shall_v
their_o right_n and_o liberty_n and_o thereupon_o give_v present_a notice_n to_o celestine_n to_o forbear_v send_v his_o officer_n among_o they_o lest_o he_o shall_v seem_v to_o induce_v the_o swell_a pride_n of_o the_o world_n into_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n and_o this_o be_v say_v to_o have_v amount_v into_o a_o formal_a separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o have_v continue_v for_o the_o space_n of_o somewhat_o more_o than_o one_o hundred_o year_n for_o which_o his_o lordship_n produce_v two_o public_a instrument_n extant_a among_o the_o ancient_a council_n the_o one_o a_o epistle_n from_o boniface_n 2._o in_o who_o time_n the_o reconciliation_n to_o rome_n be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v by_o eulalius_n then_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n but_o the_o separation_n instigante_fw-la diabolo_fw-it by_o the_o temptation_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o other_o be_v a_o exemplar_n precum_fw-la or_o copy_n of_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o same_o eulalius_n in_o which_o he_o damn_v and_o curse_v all_o those_o his_o predecessor_n which_o go_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o his_o lordship_n urge_v from_o hence_o either_o these_o instrument_n be_v true_a or_o false_a if_o they_o be_v false_a than_o boniface_n 2._o and_o his_o accomplice_n at_o rome_n or_o some_o for_o they_o be_v notorious_a forger_n and_o that_o of_o record_n of_o great_a consequence_n to_o the_o government_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o perpetual_a infamy_n of_o that_o see_v and_o all_o this_o foolish_o and_o to_o no_o purpose_n on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o these_o instrument_n be_v true_a then_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o separation_n be_v either_o unjust_a or_o just_a if_o unjust_a then_o st._n austin_n eugenius_n fulgentius_n and_o all_o those_o bishop_n and_o other_o martyr_n which_o suffer_v in_o the_o vandalike_a persecution_n die_v in_o actual_a and_o unrepented_a schism_n and_o out_o of_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v just_a then_o be_v it_o far_o more_o lawful_a for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o a_o national_a council_n to_o cast_v off_o the_o pope_n usurpation_n as_o she_o do_v than_o it_o be_v for_o the_o african_a church_n to_o separate_v because_o then_o the_o african_a church_n except_v only_o against_o the_o pride_n of_o rome_n in_o case_n of_o appeal_n and_o two_o other_o canon_n less_o material_a but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n except_v beside_o this_o grievance_n against_o many_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n with_o which_o rome_n at_o that_o time_n be_v not_o taint_v and_o st._n austin_n and_o those_o other_o famous_a man_n dare_v not_o thus_o have_v separate_v from_o rome_n have_v the_o pope_n have_v that_o powerful_a principality_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o by_o christ_n own_o ordinance_n and_o institution_n as_o a._n c._n pretend_v he_o have_v this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o his_o lordship_n discourse_n to_o which_o we_o must_v consider_v what_o answer_v you_o return_v which_o in_o short_a be_v that_o you_o dare_v not_o assert_v the_o credit_n of_o those_o two_o instrument_n 191._o but_o be_v very_o willing_a to_o think_v they_o forgery_n but_o you_o say_v the_o schismatical_a separation_n of_o the_o african_a church_n from_o the_o roman_a be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o truth_n of_o story_n and_o confute_v by_o many_o pregnant_a and_o undeniable_a instance_n which_o prove_v that_o the_o african_n notwithstanding_o the_o context_n in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n touch_v matter_n of_o appeal_n be_v always_o in_o true_a catholic_n communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n even_o during_o the_o term_n of_o this_o pretend_a separation_n for_o which_o you_o produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n celestine_n concern_v st._n austin_n the_o proceed_n of_o pope_n leo_n in_o the_o case_n of_o lupicinus_n the_o testimony_n of_o eugenius_n fulgentius_n gregory_n and_o the_o presence_n of_o some_o african_a bishop_n at_o rome_n to_o all_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o either_o the_o african_a father_n do_v persist_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n or_o they_o do_v not_o if_o they_o do_v persist_v in_o it_o and_o no_o separation_n follow_v then_o the_o cast_v off_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o roman_a see_n can_v incur_v the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n for_o these_o african_a bishop_n do_v that_o and_o it_o seem_v continue_v still_o in_o the_o roman_a communion_n by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o so_o far_o degenerate_v then_o as_o afterward_o or_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o person_n be_v so_o great_a in_o the_o church_n that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n dare_v not_o open_o break_v with_o they_o which_o be_v a_o sufficient_a account_n of_o what_o celestine_n say_v concern_v st._n austin_n that_o he_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n if_o you_o say_v the_o reason_n why_o they_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v because_o they_o do_v not_o persist_v you_o must_v prove_v it_o by_o better_a instance_n than_o you_o have_v here_o bring_v for_o some_o of_o they_o be_v sufficient_a proof_n of_o the_o contrary_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o case_n of_o lupicinus_n a_o african_a bishop_n appeal_n to_o leo_n 2._o who_o indeed_o be_v willing_a enough_o to_o receive_v he_o but_o what_o of_o that_o do_v not_o the_o african_a bishop_n of_o mauritania_n caesariensis_n excommunicate_v he_o notwithstanding_o that_o appeal_n and_o ordain_v another_o in_o his_o place_n and_o therefore_o the_o pope_n very_o fair_o send_v he_o back_o to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o province_n which_o instance_n as_o it_o argue_v the_o pope_n willingness_n to_o have_v bring_v up_o appeal_v among_o they_o so_o it_o show_v the_o continuance_n of_o their_o stoutness_n in_o oppose_v they_o and_o even_o pope_n gregory_n so_o long_o after_o 75_o though_o in_o his_o time_n the_o business_n of_o appeal_n be_v much_o promote_v at_o rome_n yet_o he_o dare_v not_o challenge_v they_o from_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n but_o yield_v to_o they_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o those_o privilege_n which_o they_o say_v they_o have_v enjoy_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o eugenius_n and_o fulgentius_n imply_v nothing_o of_o subjection_n to_o rome_n but_o a_o praeeminence_n which_o that_o church_n have_v above_o all_o other_o which_o it_o may_v have_v without_o the_o other_o as_o london_n may_v i_o hope_v be_v the_o head-city_n of_o england_n and_o yet_o all_o other_o city_n not_o express_a subjection_n to_o it_o but_o if_o after_o that_o council_n of_o carthage_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v by_o degree_n encroach_v upon_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o african_a church_n there_o be_v this_o sufficient_a account_n to_o be_v give_v of_o it_o that_o as_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v always_o watchful_a to_o take_v advantage_n to_o enhance_v their_o power_n and_o that_o especial_o when_o other_o church_n be_v in_o a_o suffer_a condition_n so_o a_o fit_a opportunity_n fall_v out_o for_o they_o to_o do_v it_o in_o africa_n for_o not_o long_o after_o that_o council_n of_o carthage_n fall_v out_o that_o dismal_a persecution_n of_o the_o african_a church_n by_o the_o irruption_n of_o the_o vandal_n in_o which_o all_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n be_v banish_v out_o of_o africa_n or_o live_v under_o great_a suffering_n and_o by_o a_o strict_a edict_n of_o gensericus_fw-la no_o new_a bishop_n be_v suffer_v to_o be_v ordain_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o former_a this_o now_o be_v a_o fair_a opportunity_n for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o advance_v his_o authority_n among_o the_o suffer_a bishop_n st._n peter_n pretend_v successor_n love_v to_o fish_n in_o trouble_a water_n and_o it_o be_v fatal_a to_o rome_n from_o the_o first_o foundation_n of_o it_o to_o advance_v herself_o by_o the_o ruin_n of_o other_o place_n but_o we_o be_v call_v off_o from_o the_o ruin_n of_o other_o church_n 18._o to_o observe_v the_o method_n whereby_o the_o pope_n grow_v great_a under_o the_o emperor_n which_o his_o lordship_n give_v a_o account_n of_o from_o constantine_n time_n to_o charles_n the_o great_a about_o five_o hundred_o year_n which_o begin_v thus_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o emperor_n become_v christian_a the_o church_n begin_v to_o be_v put_v in_o better_a order_n 12_o for_o the_o call_n and_o authority_n of_o bishop_n over_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n that_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o know_a use_n and_o benefit_n for_o preservation_n of_o unity_n and_o peace_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v confess_v by_o st._n hierom_n himself_o and_o so_o settle_v in_o man_n mind_n from_o the_o very_a infancy_n of_o the_o church_n that_o it_o have_v not_o be_v to_o that_o time_n contradict_v by_o any_o the_o only_a difficulty_n than_o
from_o he_o and_o the_o other_o patriarch_n on_o this_o occasion_n as_o for_o your_o instance_n of_o the_o pope_n restore_v athanasius_n i_o have_v sufficient_o answer_v it_o already_o and_o if_o the_o pope_n letter_n be_v never_o so_o mandatory_a as_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o we_o see_v it_o take_v no_o effect_n among_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v of_o his_o lordship_n mind_n that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o monarchical_a but_o aristocratical_a i_o do_v expect_v here_o to_o have_v meet_v with_o the_o pretend_a epistle_n of_o atticus_n of_o constantinople_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o make_v form_v letter_n wherein_o one_o π_n be_v say_v to_o be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o st._n peter_n but_o since_o you_o pass_v it_o over_o on_o this_o occasion_n i_o hope_v you_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o forgery_n of_o it_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o your_o next_o chapter_n which_o because_o of_o the_o coherence_n of_o the_o matter_n i_o handle_v with_o this_o you_o find_v great_a fault_n with_o his_o lordship_n for_o a_o marginal_a citation_n out_o of_o gerson_n 12._o 221._o because_o he_o suppose_v that_o gerson_n judgement_n be_v that_o the_o church_n may_v continue_v without_o a_o monarchical_a head_n because_o he_o write_v a_o tract_n de_fw-fr auferibilitate_fw-la papae_fw-la whereas_o you_o say_v gerson_n drift_n be_v only_o to_o show_v how_o many_o several_a way_n the_o pope_n may_v be_v take_v away_o that_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o office_n and_o cease_v to_o be_v pope_n as_o to_o his_o own_o person_n so_o that_o the_o church_n pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la till_o another_o be_v choose_v shall_v be_v without_o her_o visible_a head_n but_o although_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o his_o lordship_n prove_v do_v not_o at_o all_o depend_v upon_o this_o testimony_n of_o gerson_n which_o be_v only_o a_o marginal_a citation_n yet_o since_o you_o so_o bold_o accuse_v he_o for_o a_o false_a allegation_n we_o must_v further_o examine_v how_o pertinent_a this_o testimony_n be_v to_o that_o which_o his_o lordship_n bring_v it_o for_o the_o sentence_n to_o which_o this_o citation_n of_o gerson_n refer_v be_v this_o for_o they_o be_v no_o mean_a one_o 220._o who_o think_v our_o saviour_n christ_n leave_v the_o church-militant_a in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n in_o a_o aristocratical_a or_o rather_o a_o mix_a government_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o monarchical_a otherwise_o than_o the_o triumphant_a and_o militant_a make_v one_o body_n under_o christ_n the_o head_n over_o against_o these_o word_n that_o tract_n of_o gerson_n de_fw-fr auferibilitate_fw-la papae_fw-la be_v cite_v if_o therefore_o so_o much_o be_v contain_v in_o that_o book_n as_o make_v good_a this_o which_o his_o lordship_n say_v he_o be_v not_o so_o much_o guilty_a of_o false_a allege_v gerson_n as_o you_o be_v of_o false_o accuse_v he_o to_o make_v this_o clear_a we_o must_v consider_v what_o gerson_n design_n be_v in_o write_v that_o book_n and_o what_o his_o opinion_n therein_o be_v concern_v the_o church_n government_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o his_o book_n be_v write_v upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o great_a schism_n between_o the_o three_o pope_n and_o that_o the_o design_n of_o it_o be_v to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o council_n to_o depose_v the_o pope_n 10_o and_o suspend_v they_o from_o all_o jurisdiction_n in_o the_o church_n therefore_o he_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v not_o only_o lose_v his_o office_n by_o voluntary_a session_n but_o that_o in_o many_o case_n he_o may_v be_v deprive_v by_o the_o church_n or_o by_o a_o general_n council_n represent_v the_o church_n whether_o he_o consent_v to_o it_o or_o no_o nay_o in_o the_o next_o consideration_n he_o say_v that_o he_o may_v be_v deprive_v by_o a_o general_n council_n which_o be_v celebrate_v without_o his_o consent_n or_o against_o his_o will_n and_o in_o the_o follow_a consideration_n add_v that_o this_o may_v be_v do_v not_o only_o declarative_o but_o juridical_o the_o question_n now_o come_v to_o this_o whether_o a_o person_n who_o assert_n these_o thing_n do_v believe_v the_o government_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n to_o be_v monarchical_a and_o not_o rather_o aristocratical_a and_o mix_a government_n and_o i_o dare_v appeal_n to_o any_o man_n reason_n whether_o that_o may_v be_v account_v a_o monarchical_a government_n where_o he_o that_o be_v supreme_a may_v be_v depose_v and_o deprive_v of_o his_o office_n in_o a_o juridical_a manner_n by_o a_o senate_n that_o have_v authority_n to_o do_v these_o thing_n for_o it_o be_v apparent_a the_o supreme_a power_n lie_v in_o the_o senate_n and_o not_o the_o prince_n and_o that_o the_o prince_n be_v only_o a_o ministerial_a head_n under_o they_o and_o this_o be_v plain_o gerson_n opinion_n as_o to_o the_o church_n although_o therefore_o he_o may_v allow_v the_o supreme_a ministerial_a authority_n to_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v all_o your_o citation_n prove_v yet_o the_o radical_a and_o intrinsical_v power_n lie_v in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v represent_v in_o a_o general_n council_n may_v depose_v the_o pope_n from_o his_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v this_o opinion_n of_o gerson_n make_v the_o fundamental_a power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v democratical_a and_o that_o the_o supreme_a exercise_n be_v by_o representative_n in_o a_o general_n council_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n at_o the_o high_a be_v but_o a_o ministerial_a and_o accountable_a head_n and_o therefore_o spalatensis_n true_o observe_v that_o this_o opinion_n of_o gerson_n which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o paris_n divine_v of_o which_o he_o speak_v do_v only_o in_o word_n attribute_v supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n to_o the_o pope_n 5._o but_o in_o reality_n it_o take_v it_o quite_o away_o from_o he_o and_o this_o be_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o then_o prevail_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o afterward_o at_o basil_n as_o may_v be_v see_v at_o large_a in_o their_o synodical_a epistle_n defend_v by_o richerius_n vigorius_n and_o other_o now_o let_v any_o man_n of_o reason_n judge_n whether_o notwithstanding_o your_o charge_n of_o false_a citation_n from_o some_o expression_n intimate_v only_o a_o ministerial_a headship_n his_o lordship_n do_v not_o very_o pertinent_o cite_v this_o tract_n of_o gerson_n to_o prove_v that_o no_o mean_a person_n do_v think_v the_o church_n militant_a not_o to_o be_v govern_v by_o a_o monarchical_a but_o by_o a_o aristocratical_a or_o mix_a government_n but_o no_o soon_o be_v this_o marginal_a citation_n clear_v but_o the_o charge_n be_v renew_v about_o another_o 13._o 222._o viz._n st._n hierom_n yet_o here_o you_o dare_v not_o charge_v his_o lordship_n with_o a_o false_a allegation_n but_o you_o be_v put_v to_o your_o shift_n to_o get_v off_o this_o testimony_n as_o well_o as_o you_o can_v for_o st._n hierom_n say_v express_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o evagrius_n ubicunque_fw-la fuerit_fw-la episcopus_fw-la sive_fw-la romae_fw-la sive_fw-la eugubii_n sive_fw-la constantinopoli_fw-it sive_fw-la rhegii_fw-la etc._n etc._n ejusdem_fw-la meriti_fw-la est_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la est_fw-la &_o sacerdotii_fw-la his_o lordship_n may_v well_o infer_v that_o doubtless_o he_o think_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n monarchy_n for_o what_o bishop_n say_v he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o merit_n or_o the_o same_o degree_n in_o the_o priesthood_n with_o the_o pope_n as_o thing_n be_v now_o carry_v at_o rome_n to_o this_o you_o answer_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o pope_n as_o he_o be_v pope_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o eminent_a authority_n which_o belong_v to_o he_o as_o st._n peter_n successor_n but_o only_o compare_v he_o with_o another_o private_a bishop_n in_o respect_n of_o mere_a character_n or_o power_n of_o a_o bishop_n as_o bishop_n only_o but_o though_o this_o be_v all_o which_o any_o of_o your_o party_n ever_o since_o the_o reformation_n have_v be_v able_a to_o answer_v to_o this_o place_n yet_o nothing_o look_v more_o like_o a_o mere_a shift_n than_o this_o do_v for_o have_v st._n hierom_n only_o compare_v these_o bishop_n together_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o order_n be_v not_o sacerdotium_fw-la enough_o to_o express_v that_o by_o if_o st._n hierom_n have_v say_v only_o that_o all_o bishop_n be_v ejusdem_fw-la sacerdotii_fw-la there_o may_v have_v be_v some_o plausible_a pretence_n for_o this_o distinction_n but_o when_o he_o add_v ejusdem_fw-la meriti_fw-la too_o he_o whole_o preclude_v the_o possibility_n of_o your_o evade_n that_o way_n for_o what_o do_v merit_n here_o stand_v for_o as_o distinct_a from_o priesthood_n if_o it_o import_v not_o something_o beside_o what_o belong_v to_o bishop_n as_o bishop_n what_o can_v merit_v here_o signify_v but_o some_o great_a power_n
authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n give_v by_o christ_n to_o one_o bishop_n above_o another_o st._n hierom_n be_v not_o so_o senseless_a as_o not_o to_o see_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n constantinople_n and_o alexandria_n have_v great_a authority_n and_o large_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o church_n than_o the_o petty_a bishop_n of_o eugubium_n rhegium_n and_o tanis_n but_o all_o this_o he_o know_v well_o enough_o come_v by_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n that_o one_o bishop_n shall_v have_v large_a power_n in_o the_o church_n than_o another_o but_o say_v he_o if_o you_o come_v to_o urge_v we_o with_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o church_n then_o say_v he_o orbis_n major_a est_fw-la urbe_fw-la it_o be_v no_o one_o city_n as_o that_o of_o rome_n which_o he_o particular_o instance_v in_o which_o can_v prescribe_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o say_v he_o all_o bishop_n be_v of_o equal_a merit_n and_o the_o same_o priesthood_n wheresoever_o they_o be_v whether_o at_o rome_n or_o elsewhere_o so_o that_o it_o be_v plain_a to_o all_o but_o such_o as_o wilful_o blind_v themselves_o that_o st._n hierom_n speak_v not_o of_o that_o which_o you_o call_v the_o character_n of_o bishop_n but_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o they_o for_o that_o very_a word_n he_o use_v immediate_o before_o si_fw-mi authoritas_fw-la quaeritur_fw-la orbis_fw-la major_n est_fw-la urbe_fw-la and_o where_o do_v you_o ever_o find_v merit_n apply_v to_o the_o bishop_n character_n they_o who_o say_v it_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o merit_n of_o good_a life_n make_v st._n hierom_n speak_v nonsense_n for_o be_v all_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o merit_n of_o good_a life_n but_o we_o need_v not_o go_v out_o of_o rome_n for_o the_o proper_a importance_n of_o merit_n here_o for_o in_o the_o three_o roman_a synod_n under_o symmachus_n 688._o that_o very_a word_n be_v use_v concern_v authority_n and_o principality_n in_o the_o church_n ejus_fw-la sedi_fw-la primum_fw-la petri_n apostoli_fw-la meritum_fw-la sive_fw-la principatus_fw-la deinde_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la venerandorum_fw-la authoritas_fw-la etc._n etc._n where_o binius_fw-la confess_v a_o account_n be_v give_v of_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o first_o ground_n of_o which_o st._n peter_n merit_n or_o principality_n apply_v now_o but_o this_o sense_n to_o s._n hierom_n and_o he_o may_v be_v very_o easy_o understand_v all_o bishop_n be_v ejusdem_fw-la meriti_fw-la sive_fw-la principatus_fw-la of_o the_o same_o merit_n dignity_n or_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n but_o you_o say_v he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o pope_n as_o he_o be_v pope_n good_a reason_n for_o it_o for_o st._n hierom_n know_v no_o such_o supremacy_n in_o the_o pope_n as_o he_o now_o challenge_v and_o can_v you_o think_v if_o st._n hierom_n have_v believe_v such_o a_o authority_n in_o the_o pope_n as_o you_o do_v he_o will_v ever_o have_v use_v such_o word_n as_o these_o be_v to_o compare_v he_o with_o the_o poor_a bishop_n of_o agobio_n in_o merit_n and_o priesthood_n i_o can_v persuade_v myself_o you_o can_v think_v so_o only_o something_o must_v be_v say_v for_o the_o cause_n you_o have_v undertake_v to_o defend_v and_o since_o bellarmine_n and_o such_o great_a man_n have_v go_v before_o you_o you_o can_v not_o believe_v there_o be_v any_o absurdity_n in_o say_v as_o they_o do_v still_o you_o say_v he_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o that_o authority_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o s._n peter_n be_v successor_n but_o if_o you_o will_v but_o read_v a_o little_a further_o you_o may_v see_v that_o s._n hierom_n speak_v of_o all_o bishop_n whether_o at_o rome_n or_o eugubium_n etc._n etc._n as_o equal_o the_o apostle_n successor_n for_o it_o be_v neither_o say_v he_o riches_n or_o poverty_n which_o make_v bishop_n high_a or_o low_o caeterùm_fw-la omnes_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la successores_fw-la sunt_fw-la but_o they_o be_v all_o the_o apostle_n successor_n therefore_o he_o speak_v of_o they_o with_o relation_n to_o that_o authority_n which_o they_o derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o never_o have_v there_o be_v great_a necessity_n for_o he_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o pope_n succeed_v s._n peter_n in_o the_o supremacy_n over_o the_o church_n than_o here_o if_o he_o have_v know_v any_o such_o thing_n but_o he_o must_v be_v excuse_v he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o no_o that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v say_v you_o again_o for_o he_o speak_v of_o it_o elsewhere_o and_o therefore_o he_o must_v be_v so_o understand_v there_o as_o that_o he_o neither_o contradict_v nor_o condemn_v himself_o but_o if_o the_o epistle_n to_o damasus_n be_v all_o your_o evidence_n for_o it_o a_o sufficient_a account_n have_v be_v give_v of_o that_o already_o therefore_o you_o add_v more_o and_o bid_v we_o go_v find_v they_o out_o to_o see_v whether_o they_o make_v for_o the_o purpose_n or_o no._n i_o be_o sure_a your_o first_o do_v not_o out_o of_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o 13._o psalm_n because_o it_o only_o speak_v of_o s._n peter_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o of_o the_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o may_v import_v only_a dignity_n and_o pre-eminence_n without_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n beside_o that_o commentary_n on_o the_o psalm_n be_v reject_v as_o spurious_a by_o erasmus_n sixtus_n senensis_n and_o many_o other_o among_o yourselves_o your_o second_o ad_fw-la demetriadem_fw-la virginem_fw-la be_v much_o less_o to_o your_o purpose_n for_o that_o only_o speak_v of_o innocentius_n come_v after_o anastasius_n at_o rome_n qui_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la cathedrae_fw-la &_o supradicti_fw-la viri_fw-la successor_n &_o filius_fw-la est_fw-la who_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o apostolical_a chair_n but_o do_v you_o not_o know_v that_o there_o be_v many_o apostolical_a chair_n beside_o that_o of_o rome_n and_o have_v every_o one_o of_o they_o supreme_a authority_n over_o the_o church_n of_o god_n what_o that_o shall_v be_v on_o the_o 16._o of_o s._n matthew_n i_o can_v imagine_v unless_o it_o be_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v call_v princeps_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la which_o honour_n we_o deny_v he_o not_o or_o that_o he_o say_v aedificabo_fw-la ec●lesiam_fw-la meam_fw-la super_fw-la te_fw-la but_o how_o these_o thing_n concern_v the_o pope_n authority_n unless_o you_o have_v further_o enlighten_v we_o i_o can_v understand_v that_o ep_n 54._o ad_fw-la marcellam_fw-la be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o last_o for_o the_o word_n which_o i_o suppose_v you_o mean_v be_v petrus_n super_fw-la quem_fw-la dominus_fw-la funda●it_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la and_o if_o you_o see_v what_o erasmus_n say_v upon_o that_o place_n you_o will_v have_v little_a cause_n to_o boast_v much_o of_o it_o your_o last_o place_n be_v l._n 1._o cont._n lucifer_n which_o i_o suppose_v to_o be_v that_o common_o cite_v thence_o ecclesiae_fw-la salus_fw-la in_o summi_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la dignitate_fw-la pendet_fw-la but_o there_o even_o marianus_n victorius_n will_v tell_v you_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o every_o ordinary_a bishop_n thus_o i_o have_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o search_v those_o place_n you_o naked_o refer_v we_o to_o in_o s._n hierom_n and_o find_v he_o far_o enough_o from_o the_o least_o danger_n of_o contradict_v or_o condemn_v himself_o as_o to_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v here_o speak_v by_o he_o so_o that_o we_o see_v s._n hierom_n remain_v a_o sufficient_a testimony_n against_o the_o pope_n monarchical_a government_n of_o the_o church_n his_o lordship_n further_o argue_v against_o this_o monarchy_n in_o the_o church_n from_o the_o great_a and_o undoubted_a rule_n give_v by_o optatus_n 14._o 200._o that_o wheresoever_o there_o be_v a_o church_n 3._o there_o the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o not_o the_o commonwealth_n in_o the_o church_n and_o so_o also_o the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o roman_a empire_n now_o from_o this_o ground_n say_v his_o lordship_n i_o argue_v thus_o if_o the_o church_n be_v within_o the_o empire_n or_o other_o kingdom_n it_o be_v impossible_a the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v monarchical_a for_o no_o emperor_n or_o king_n will_v endure_v another_o king_n within_o his_o dominion_n that_o shall_v be_v great_a than_o himself_o since_o the_o very_a endure_a it_o make_v he_o that_o endure_v it_o upon_o the_o matter_n no_o monarch_n 223._o your_o answer_n to_o this_o be_v that_o these_o two_o kingdom_n be_v of_o different_a nature_n the_o one_o spiritual_a the_o other_o temporal_a the_o one_o exercise_v only_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o concern_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o eternal_a salvation_n of_o soul_n the_o other_o in_o affair_n that_o concern_v this_o world_n only_o sure_o you_o will_v persuade_v we_o we_o have_v never_o hear_v of_o much_o less_o read_v bellarmin_n first_o book_n de_fw-fr pontifice_fw-la about_o the_o pope_n temporal_a power_n which_o be_v fain_o to_o get_v licence_n for_o the_o other_o four_o to_o pass_v at_o rome_n and_o although_o he_o mince_v
roman_a church_n and_o from_o what_o have_v be_v hitherto_o say_v i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o suspect_v his_o lordship_n candour_n as_o you_o do_v that_o i_o much_o rather_o suspect_v your_o judgement_n and_o that_o you_o be_v not_o much_o use_v to_o attend_v to_o the_o consequence_n of_o thing_n or_o else_o you_o will_v not_o have_v desert_v bellarmin_n in_o defence_n of_o so_o necessary_a and_o pertinent_a a_o point_n as_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n second_o you_o answer_v to_o his_o lordship_n discourse_n concern_v bellarmin_n authority_n 4._o that_o you_o can_v hold_v yourself_o oblige_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o pretend_a solution_n till_o you_o find_v they_o bring_v to_o evacuate_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o catholic_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o its_o full_a latitude_n as_o catholic_n ever_o mean_v it_o save_v when_o they_o say_v the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n but_o take_v it_o in_o as_o full_a a_o latitude_n as_o you_o please_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o roman_a church_n still_o that_o be_v a_o particular_a church_n as_o distinct_a from_o the_o communion_n of_o other_o and_o therefore_o neither_o catholic_n nor_o infallible_a which_o i_o must_v refer_v to_o the_o place_n where_o you_o insist_v upon_o it_o which_o i_o shall_v do_v without_o the_o imitation_n of_o your_o vanity_n in_o tell_v your_o reader_n as_o far_o as_o eighthly_a and_o last_o what_o fine_a exploit_n you_o intend_v to_o do_v there_o but_o usual_o those_o who_o brag_v most_o of_o their_o valour_n beforehand_o show_v least_o in_o the_o combat_n and_o thus_o it_o will_v be_v find_v with_o you_o i_o shall_v let_v you_o therefore_o enjoy_v yourself_o in_o the_o pleasant_a thought_n of_o your_o noble_a intendment_n till_o we_o come_v to_o the_o trial_n of_o they_o and_o so_o come_v to_o the_o present_a controversy_n concern_v the_o greek_a church_n the_o defence_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o least_o of_o those_o art_n which_o you_o make_v use_v of_o for_o the_o perplex_v the_o christian_a faith_n 5._o to_o put_v man_n upon_o inquire_v after_o a_o infallible_a church_n when_o yet_o you_o have_v no_o way_n to_o discern_v which_o be_v so_o much_o as_o a_o true_a church_n but_o by_o examine_v the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o so_o that_o of_o necessity_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n must_v be_v certain_o know_v before_o ever_o any_o one_o can_v with_o safety_n depend_v upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o church_n for_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o meaning_n of_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o church_n as_o here_o state_v but_o with_o relation_n to_o some_o particular_a church_n to_o who_o communion_n the_o party_n inquire_v may_v join_v and_o who_o judgement_n may_v be_v rely_v on_o we_o see_v it_o present_o follow_v in_o the_o debate_n which_o be_v that_o church_n and_o it_o seem_v as_o be_v say_v already_o a_o friend_n of_o the_o lady_n undertake_v to_o defend_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v right_a to_o which_o mr._n fisher_n answer_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n have_v plain_o change_v 4._o and_o teach_v false_a in_o a_o point_n of_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o after_o repeat_v it_o that_o it_o have_v err_v before_o i_o come_v to_o examine_v how_o you_o make_v good_a the_o charge_n you_o draw_v up_o against_o the_o poor_a greek_a church_n in_o make_v it_o err_v fundamental_o it_o be_v worth_a our_o while_n to_o consider_v upon_o what_o account_n this_o dispute_n come_v in_o the_o inquiry_n be_v concern_v the_o true_a church_n on_o who_o judgement_n one_o might_n safe_o depend_v in_o religion_n it_o seem_v two_o be_v propound_v to_o consideration_n the_o greek_a and_o the_o roman_a the_o greek_a be_v reject_v because_o it_o have_v err_v from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o dispute_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n must_v necessary_o precede_v that_o of_o the_o church_n for_o by_o mr._n fisher_n confession_n and_o your_o own_o a_o church_n which_o have_v err_v can_v be_v rely_v on_o therefore_o man_n must_v be_v satisfy_v whether_o a_o church_n have_v err_v or_o no_o before_o they_o can_v judge_v whether_o she_o may_v be_v rely_v on_o or_o no._n which_o be_v grant_v all_o the_o whole_a fabric_n of_o your_o book_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n for_o than_o 1._o man_n must_v be_v infallible_o certain_a of_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n antecedent_o to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n for_o if_o they_o be_v to_o judge_v of_o a_o church_n by_o the_o doctrine_n they_o must_v in_o order_n to_o such_o a_o judgement_n be_v certain_a what_o that_o doctrine_n be_v which_o they_o must_v judge_v of_o the_o church_n by_o 2._o no_o church_n can_v be_v know_v to_o be_v infallible_a unless_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v so_o by_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o be_v to_o examine_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o church_n by_o and_o therefore_o no_o church_n can_v be_v know_v to_o be_v infallible_a by_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n 3._o no_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v rely_v on_o as_o infallible_a which_o may_v be_v find_v guilty_a of_o any_o error_n by_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o be_v to_o try_v it_o by_o therefore_o you_o must_v first_o prove_v your_o church_n not_o to_o have_v err_v in_o any_o particular_a for_o if_o she_o have_v it_o be_v impossible_a she_o shall_v be_v infallible_a and_o not_o think_v to_o prove_v that_o she_o have_v not_o err_v because_o she_o can_v that_o be_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n and_o must_v by_o your_o deal_n with_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v judge_v by_o particular_n 4._o there_o must_v be_v a_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n suppose_v to_o have_v sufficient_a authority_n to_o decide_v controversy_n without_o any_o dependence_n upon_o the_o church_n for_o the_o matter_n to_o be_v judge_v be_v the_o church_n and_o if_o the_o scripture_n may_v and_o must_v decide_v that_o why_o may_v it_o not_o as_o well_o all_o the_o rest_n 5._o every_o man_n reason_n proceed_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v leave_v his_o judge_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o whatever_o inconvenience_n you_o can_v imagine_v to_o attend_v upon_o this_o they_o immediate_o and_o necessary_o follow_v from_o your_o proceed_n with_o the_o greek_a church_n by_o exclude_v she_o because_o she_o have_v err_v which_o while_o we_o be_v in_o pursuit_n of_o a_o church_n can_v be_v determine_v by_o nothing_o but_o every_o one_o particular_a reason_n 6._o then_o fundamental_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o church_n declaration_n for_o you_o assert_v the_o greek_a church_n to_o err_v fundamental_o and_o that_o this_o may_v be_v make_v appear_v to_o one_o who_o be_v seek_v after_o a_o church_n suppose_v then_o i_o inquire_v as_o the_o lady_n do_v after_o a_o church_n who_o judgement_n i_o must_v absolute_o depend_v on_o and_o some_o mention_n the_o greek_a and_o other_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o tell_v i_o it_o can_v be_v the_o greek_a for_o that_o have_v err_v fundamental_o i_o inquire_v how_o you_o know_v suppose_v she_o to_o err_v that_o it_o be_v a_o fundamental_a error_n will_v you_o answer_v i_o because_o the_o true_a church_n have_v declare_v it_o to_o be_v a_o fundamental_a error_n but_o that_o be_v it_o i_o be_v seek_v for_o which_o that_o church_n be_v which_o may_v declare_v what_o error_n be_v fundamental_a and_o what_o not_o if_o you_o tell_v i_o it_o be_v you_o i_o may_v soon_o tell_v you_o you_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o great_a kindness_n for_o your_o church_n then_o yourself_o and_o venture_v to_o speak_v any_o thing_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o it_o thus_o we_o see_v how_o fine_o you_o have_v betray_v your_o whole_a cause_n in_o your_o first_o onset_n by_o so_o rude_a a_o attempt_n upon_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o true_o it_o be_v much_o your_o concernment_n to_o load_v she_o as_o much_o as_o you_o can_v for_o though_o she_o now_o want_v one_o of_o the_o great_a mark_n of_o your_o church_n which_o yet_o you_o know_v not_o how_o long_o your_o church_n may_v enjoy_v viz._n outward_a splendour_n and_o bravery_n yet_o you_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o church_n be_v plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n enjoy_v a_o continual_a succession_n from_o they_o flourish_v with_o a_o number_n of_o the_o father_n exceed_v that_o of_o you_o have_v more_o of_o the_o council_n of_o great_a credit_n in_o it_o and_o which_o be_v a_o commendation_n still_o to_o it_o it_o retain_v more_o purity_n under_o its_o persecution_n then_o your_o church_n with_o all_o its_o external_a splendour_n 4._o but_o she_o have_v err_v concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o therefore_o have_v lose_v it_o a_o severe_a censure_n which_o his_o
place_n do_v live_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n without_o they_o but_o what_o be_v there_o in_o all_o this_o to_o infer_v that_o not_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n do_v st._n augustine_n suppose_v that_o man_n may_v have_v faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n without_o believe_v or_o that_o man_n may_v believe_v without_o the_o scripture_n when_o in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n he_o have_v this_o remarkable_a expression_n concern_v faith_n that_o it_o will_v soon_o stumble_v 38._o if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n be_v weaken_v and_o do_v not_o this_o imply_v that_o faith_n stand_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o its_o proper_a foundation_n but_o this_o be_v pardonable_a if_o the_o very_a design_n of_o all_o that_o treatise_n do_v not_o so_o evident_o refute_v all_o your_o pretension_n as_o nothing_o can_v do_v it_o more_o effectual_o for_o can_v you_o possible_o persuade_v any_o reasonable_a man_n to_o think_v that_o st._n augustine_n dream_v of_o any_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n who_o when_o he_o purposely_o discourse_v concern_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n the_o principle_n of_o it_o and_o the_o best_a mean_n to_o understand_v it_o never_o so_o much_o as_o mention_n any_o such_o thing_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_n direct_v to_o no_o other_o but_o those_o you_o call_v moral_a and_o fallible_a mean_n for_o understand_v the_o principle_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n he_o show_v we_o the_o several_a nature_n of_o thing_n some_o to_o be_v enjoy_v some_o to_o be_v use_v and_o other_o both_o that_o the_o main_a thing_n we_o be_v to_o enjoy_v be_v god_n and_o therefore_o begin_v with_o he_o as_o our_o last_o end_n in_o who_o our_o happiness_n lie_v and_o then_o show_v the_o mean_n to_o come_v to_o this_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n by_o explain_v the_o principle_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o efficacy_n of_o it_o in_o his_o second_o book_n he_o show_v how_o we_o may_v come_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o first_o discover_v the_o nature_n of_o sign_n which_o represent_v thing_n and_o of_o letter_n which_o be_v sign_n of_o word_n and_o since_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o tongue_n how_o necessary_a the_o translation_n of_o scripture_n be_v into_o they_o a_o good_a citation_n for_o you_o to_o justify_v your_o bibles_n and_o prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a language_n with_o and_o then_o show_v what_o great_a reason_n there_o be_v why_o there_o shall_v be_v some_o doubtful_a and_o obscure_a place_n leave_v in_o scripture_n to_o conquer_v our_o pride_n by_o industry_n and_o to_o keep_v the_o understanding_n from_o nauseat_v 6._o which_o common_o slight_v thing_n that_o be_v easy_o understand_v then_o show_v what_o preparation_n and_o disposition_n of_o soul_n be_v requisite_a for_o divine_a wisdom_n and_o so_o come_v to_o the_o understanding_n the_o scripture_n for_o which_o first_o be_v requisite_a a_o serious_a and_o diligent_a read_n of_o they_o in_o order_n to_o which_o he_o must_v careful_o distinguish_v such_o as_o be_v canonical_a from_o such_o as_o be_v not_o and_o for_o judge_v of_o these_o he_o never_o so_o much_o as_o mention_n much_o less_o send_v we_o to_o the_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o bid_v we_o follow_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o most_o catholic_n church_n among_o which_o those_o be_v 8._o which_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v call_v apostolical_a be_fw-mi and_o have_v epistle_n send_v to_o they_o what_o authority_n then_o have_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o judge_v of_o canonical_a scripture_n more_o than_o ephesus_n philippi_n thessalonica_n etc._n etc._n to_o be_v sure_a then_o st._n augustin_n be_v not_o of_o our_o discourser_n mind_n as_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o canonical_a book_n and_o why_o shall_v he_o send_v man_n to_o those_o church_n which_o receive_v the_o epistle_n but_o that_o there_o they_o be_v like_a to_o meet_v with_o great_a satisfaction_n as_o to_o the_o authenticalness_n of_o the_o copy_n of_o those_o epistle_n after_o this_o he_o give_v direction_n for_o understand_v hard_a place_n first_o by_o diligent_a read_n and_o remember_v the_o plain_a place_n 9_o for_o in_o they_o say_v he_o be_v find_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o contain_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o practice_n a_o excellent_a citation_n for_o you_o for_o several_a purpose_n especial_o when_o you_o will_v prove_v the_o obscurity_n of_o scripture_n the_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n or_o your_o doctrine_n of_o fundamental_o out_o of_o st._n augustin_n and_o then_o bid_v they_o compare_v obscure_a and_o easy_a place_n together_o to_o understand_v the_o propriety_n of_o word_n to_o get_v knowledge_n in_o the_o tongue_n to_o compare_v version_n antecedent_n and_o consequent_n to_o be_v skill_v in_o all_o humane_a art_n and_o science_n these_o and_o several_a other_o instruction_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n be_v the_o scope_n of_o his_o follow_a book_n will_v any_o one_o now_o but_o t._n c._n have_v venture_v so_o unlucky_o upon_o this_o treatise_n of_o st._n augustin_n above_o all_o other_o to_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n testimony_n as_o necessary_a to_o faith_n by_o can_v any_o protestant_a have_v deliver_v his_o mind_n more_o punctual_o and_o plain_o than_o he_o do_v and_o can_v you_o or_o any_o one_o else_o that_o do_v but_o look_v into_o that_o book_n imagine_v that_o st._n augustin_n ever_o imagine_v that_o any_o such_o thing_n shall_v ever_o be_v think_v of_o in_o the_o world_n as_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n must_v be_v own_v as_o the_o infallible_a foundation_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o infallible_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n but_o this_o it_o be_v to_o converse_v with_o the_o father_n only_a by_o retail_n as_o they_o be_v deliver_v out_o in_o parcel_n to_o you_o with_o direction_n upon_o they_o what_o use_v they_o be_v for_o by_o bellarmin_n and_o such_o artist_n as_o himself_o this_o be_v instead_o of_o quote_v the_o father_n to_o challenge_v they_o and_o you_o see_v they_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o appear_v though_o to_o your_o shame_n and_o confusion_n but_o for_o all_o this_o you_o have_v a_o reserve_v in_o st._n augustin_n still_o let_v we_o see_v what_o quotation_n that_o be_v which_o lie_v so_o in_o ambuscado_n behind_o the_o hedge_n and_o be_v so_o loath_a to_o come_v out_o there_o be_v good_a reason_n for_o so_o much_o reservedness_n for_o when_o we_o come_v to_o search_v we_o find_v only_a bush_n instead_o of_o soldier_n i_o have_v thorough_o examine_v the_o place_n you_o refer_v we_o to_o and_o can_v meet_v any_o thing_n the_o least_o pertinent_a to_o your_o purpose_n unless_o the_o question_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o heretic_n baptism_n 24._o prove_v your_o church_n testimony_n to_o be_v infallible_a but_o it_o may_v be_v it_o be_v but_o a_o venial_a mistake_n of_o a_o chapter_n or_o two_o forward_z or_o backward_o and_o there_o we_o may_v find_v it_o which_o when_o i_o look_v into_o i_o can_v but_o suspect_v that_o some_o protestant_n have_v trepan_v you_o into_o this_o book_n and_o place_n of_o st._n augustine_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o book_n or_o place_n in_o he_o more_o begird_v with_o argument_n against_o you_o than_o this_o be_v i_o be_v at_o first_o fearful_a you_o have_v quote_v father_n at_o a_o peradventure_o but_o upon_o my_o further_a consider_v the_o place_n i_o soon_o rectify_v that_o mistake_n i_o will_v therefore_o reckon_v you_o up_o some_o of_o the_o most_o probable_a citation_n out_o of_o st._n augustins_n book_n of_o baptism_n against_o the_o donatist_n and_o choose_v which_o of_o they_o you_o please_v to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n as_o a_o foundation_n of_o faith_n by_o i_o suppose_v that_o you_o intend_v be_v in_o the_o chapter_n but_o one_o follow_v where_o st._n augustine_n cites_n that_o passage_n of_o cyprian_a that_o we_o ought_v to_o recurre_v to_o the_o fountain_n 26._o i._n e._n to_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o thence_o derive_v the_o channel_n into_o our_o own_o time_n this_o say_v st._n augustin_n be_v the_o best_a and_o without_o doubt_n to_o be_v do_v no_o doubt_v you_o think_v you_o owe_v i_o great_a thanks_o for_o find_v out_o so_o apposite_a a_o place_n for_o you_o so_o near_o that_o you_o intend_v but_o before_o we_o have_v do_v with_o it_o you_o will_v see_v what_o little_a reason_n you_o have_v to_o thank_v i_o for_o it_o the_o place_n you_o see_v be_v cite_v by_o st._n augustin_n out_o of_o cyprian_a in_o who_o epistle_n it_o be_v to_o pompeius_n against_o stephanus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n we_o therefore_o consider_v 74._o that_o it_o be_v stephen_n who_o plead_v custom_n and_o tradition_n to_o
doctrine_n the_o pope_n can_v not_o be_v infallible_a there_o for_o you_o restrain_v his_o infallibility_n to_o a_o general_n council_n and_o do_v not_o assert_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n as_o well_o then_o may_v any_o other_o provincial_a synod_n determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n as_o that_o of_o rome_n since_o that_o have_v no_o more_o infallibility_n belong_v to_o it_o as_o such_o than_o any_o other_o particular_a church_n have_v and_o the_o pope_n himself_o you_o say_v may_v err_v when_o he_o do_v not_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o general_n council_n to_o his_o lordship_n second_o instance_n of_o the_o council_n of_o gangra_n about_o the_o same_o time_n condemn_v eustathius_n for_o his_o condemn_a marriage_n as_o unlawful_a you_o answer_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n that_o osius_n be_v there_o pope_n sylvester_n legate_n but_o what_o then_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v there_o himself_o he_o have_v not_o be_v infallible_a much_o less_o certain_o his_o legate_n who_o can_v have_v only_o a_o second-hand_n infallibility_n to_o the_o three_o of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n condemn_v rebaptisation_n about_o 348._o you_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v assemble_v by_o gratus_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n but_o that_o no_o new_a article_n be_v define_v in_o it_o but_o only_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v confirm_v therein_o neither_o do_v we_o plead_v for_o any_o power_n in_o provincial_a council_n to_o define_v any_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o to_o revive_v the_o old_a and_o to_o confirm_v they_o in_o opposition_n to_o any_o innovation_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o as_o to_o this_o we_o profess_v to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o interpret_v by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n to_o the_o four_o of_o the_o council_n of_o aquileia_n a._n d._n 381._o condemn_v palladius_n and_o secundinus_n for_o embrace_v the_o arrian_n heresy_n st._n ambrose_n be_v present_a you_o answer_v that_o they_o only_o condemn_v those_o who_o have_v be_v condemn_v already_o by_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o st._n ambrose_n and_o other_o bishop_n of_o italy_n be_v present_a who_o can_v doubt_v but_o every_o thing_n be_v do_v there_o by_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o consent_n but_o if_o they_o only_o enforce_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a what_o need_v of_o the_o pope_n authority_n to_o do_v that_o and_o do_v you_o think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o provincial_a council_n in_o that_o part_n of_o italy_n which_o be_v particular_o distinguish_v from_o the_o suburbicarian_a church_n under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n wherein_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o present_a either_o by_o himself_o or_o legate_n if_o you_o think_v so_o your_o thought_n have_v more_o of_o your_o will_n then_o understand_v in_o they_o but_o if_o this_o council_n proceed_v according_a to_o that_o of_o nice_n will_v it_o not_o be_v as_o lawful_a for_o other_o provincial_a council_n to_o reform_v particular_a church_n as_o long_o as_o they_o keep_v to_o the_o decree_v not_o bare_o of_o nice_a but_o of_o the_o four_o general_a council_n which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n look_v on_o as_o her_o duty_n to_o do_v in_o the_o two_o follow_a instance_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n declare_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o the_o milevitan_a council_n about_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n you_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v consult_v but_o what_o then_o be_v they_o consult_v as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n or_o only_o as_o eminent_a member_n of_o it_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o piety_n prove_v the_o former_a when_o you_o be_v able_a and_o as_o to_o the_o latter_a it_o depend_v upon_o the_o continuance_n of_o that_o faith_n and_o piety_n in_o they_o and_o when_o once_o the_o reason_n be_v take_v away_o there_o can_v be_v no_o necessity_n of_o continue_v the_o same_o resort_n the_o same_o answer_n will_v serve_v for_o what_o you_o say_v concern_v the_o second_o council_n of_o aurange_a determine_v the_o controversy_n about_o grace_n and_o freewill_n suppose_v we_o grant_v it_o assemble_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o felix_n 4._o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o likewise_o to_o the_o three_o of_o toledo_n we_o come_v therefore_o to_o that_o which_o you_o call_v his_o lordship_n reserve_v and_o master-allegation_n the_o four_o council_n of_o toledo_n which_o say_v he_o 154._o do_v not_o only_o handle_v matter_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o reformation_n of_o that_o people_n but_o even_o add_v also_o something_o to_o the_o creed_n which_o be_v not_o express_o deliver_v in_o former_a creed_n nay_o the_o bishop_n do_v not_o only_o practice_v this_o to_o condemn_v heresy_n in_o national_a and_o provincial_a synod_n and_o so_o to_o reform_v those_o several_a place_n and_o the_o church_n itself_o by_o part_n but_o they_o do_v open_o challenge_v this_o as_o their_o right_n and_o due_a and_o that_o without_o any_o leave_n ask_v of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 3._o for_o in_o this_o four_o council_n of_o toledo_n they_o decree_v that_o if_o there_o happen_v a_o cause_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v settle_v a_o general_a that_o be_v a_o national_a synod_n of_o all_o spain_n and_o gallicia_n shall_v be_v hold_v thereon_o and_o this_o in_o the_o year_n 643._o where_o you_o see_v it_o be_v then_o catholic_n doctrine_n in_o all_o spain_n that_o a_o national_a synod_n may_v be_v a_o competent_a judge_n in_o a_o cause_n of_o faith_n but_o here_o still_o we_o meet_v with_o the_o same_o answer_n 168._o that_o all_o this_o may_v be_v do_v with_o a_o due_a subordination_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a but_o that_o it_o do_v not_o hence_o follow_v that_o any_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v in_o provincial_a council_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o it_o neither_o do_v we_o plead_v that_o any_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v against_o the_o just_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o bishop_n but_o than_o you_o must_v prove_v that_o he_o have_v a_o just_a authority_n over_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o that_o he_o exercise_v no_o power_n here_o at_o the_o reformation_n but_o what_o do_v of_o right_o belong_v to_o he_o but_o the_o full_a debate_n of_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v leave_v to_o that_o place_n where_o you_o design_o assert_v and_o vindicate_v the_o pope_n authority_n 12._o these_o thing_n be_v thus_o in_o the_o general_a clear_v we_o come_v to_o the_o particular_a application_n of_o they_o to_o the_o case_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o to_o which_o ibid._n his_o lordship_n say_v and_o if_o this_o be_v practise_v so_o often_o and_o in_o so_o many_o place_n why_o may_v not_o a_o national_a council_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v the_o like_a as_o she_o do_v 155._o for_o she_o cast_v off_o the_o pope_n usurpation_n and_o as_o much_o as_o in_o she_o lay_v restore_v the_o king_n to_o his_o right_n 1562._o that_o appear_v by_o a_o book_n subscribe_v by_o the_o bishop_n in_o henry_n the_o eighths_n time_n and_o by_o the_o record_n in_o the_o archbishop_n office_n orderly_o keep_v and_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o reformation_n which_o come_v after_o our_o prince_n have_v their_o part_n and_o the_o clergy_n they_o and_o to_o these_o two_o principal_o the_o power_n and_o direction_n for_o reformation_n belong_v that_o our_o prince_n have_v their_o part_n be_v manifest_a by_o their_o call_n together_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n to_o consider_v of_o that_o which_o may_v seem_v worthy_a reformation_n and_o the_o clergy_n do_v their_o part_n for_o be_v thus_o call_v together_o by_o regal_a power_n they_o meet_v in_o the_o national_a synod_n of_o sixty_o two_o and_o the_o article_n there_o agree_v on_o be_v afterward_o confirm_v by_o act_n of_o state_n and_o the_o royal_a assent_n in_o this_o synod_n the_o positive_a truth_n which_o be_v deliver_v be_v more_o than_o the_o polemic_o so_o that_o a_o mere_a calumny_n it_o be_v that_o we_o profess_v only_o a_o negative_a religion_n true_a it_o be_v and_o we_o must_v thank_v rome_n for_o it_o our_o confession_n must_v needs_o contain_v some_o negative_n for_o we_o can_v but_o deny_v that_o image_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v nor_o can_v we_o admit_v maim_v sacrament_n nor_o grant_v prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o in_o a_o corrupt_a time_n or_o place_n it_o be_v as_o necessary_a in_o religion_n to_o deny_v falsehood_n as_o to_o assert_v and_o vindicate_v truth_n indeed_o this_o latter_a can_v hardly_o be_v well_o and_o sufficient_o do_v but_o by_o the_o former_a a_o affirmative_a verity_n be_v ever_o include_v in_o the_o negative_a to_o a_o falsehood_n as_o for_o any_o error_n which_o may_v fall_v into_o this_o as_o any_o other_o reformation_n if_o
or_o fifteen_o bishop_n then_o live_v in_o england_n for_o the_o see_v of_o salisbury_n and_o oxford_n fall_v vacant_a a._n 1557._o and_o be_v not_o supply_v in_o the_o time_n of_o queen_n mary_n hereford_n bristol_n bangor_n be_v vacant_a by_o the_o death_n of_o the_o several_a bishop_n some_o week_n before_o queen_n mary_n canterbury_n by_o the_o death_n of_o cardinal_n pool_n the_o same_o day_n with_o the_o queen_n norwich_n and_o gloucester_n a_o few_o week_n after_o she_o and_o so_o likewise_o rochester_n worcester_z and_o s._n asaph_n become_v vacant_a by_o the_o voluntary_a exile_n of_o pates_n and_o goldwell_n the_o bishop_n thereof_o so_o that_o but_o fifteen_o bishop_n be_v then_o live_v and_o remain_v in_o england_n and_o be_v all_o those_o who_o supply_v these_o vacant_a see_v intruder_n a_o strange_a kind_n of_o intrusion_n into_o dead_a man_n place_n so_o then_o this_o circumstance_n be_v notorious_o false_a that_o they_o all_o by_o force_n intrude_v themselves_o into_o the_o see_v of_o other_o lawful_a bishop_n but_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o the_o other_o be_v more_o just_o charge_v with_o a_o forcible_a intrusion_n into_o the_o see_v of_o the_o other_o bishop_n for_o which_o we_o must_v consider_v what_o the_o proceed_n be_v in_o reference_n to_o they_o it_o appear_v then_o that_o in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o the_o queen_n the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n form_v and_o enjoin_v in_o the_o time_n of_o henry_n 8._o be_v in_o the_o first_o parliament_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n revive_v for_o the_o better_a secure_v the_o queen_n of_o the_o fidelity_n of_o her_o subject_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v so_o revive_v that_o several_a considerable_a passage_n in_o the_o act_n concern_v it_o be_v upon_o mature_a deliberation_n mitigate_v both_o as_o to_o the_o queen_n title_n which_o be_v not_o supreme_a head_n but_o supreme_a governor_n a_o title_n which_o queen_n mary_n have_v use_v before_o as_o appear_v by_o a_o act_n pass_v in_o the_o three_o session_n of_o parliament_n in_o her_o time_n and_o likewise_o as_o to_o the_o penalty_n for_o whereas_o the_o stat._n 28._o hen._n 8._o c._n 10._o be_v so_o very_o severe_a that_o whosoever_o do_v extol_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v for_o the_o first_o offence_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o a_o praemunire_n and_o for_o refuse_v to_o take_v the_o oath_n be_v guilty_a of_o treason_n it_o pass_v now_o in_o elizabeth_n time_n only_o with_o this_o penalty_n that_o such_o who_o refuse_v it_o shall_v be_v exclude_v such_o place_n of_o honour_n and_o profit_n as_o they_o hold_v in_o the_o church_n or_o commonwealth_n and_o that_o such_o as_o shall_v maintain_v or_o defend_v the_o authority_n pre-eminence_n power_n or_o jurisdiction_n spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a of_o any_o foreign_a prince_n prelate_n person_n state_n or_o potentate_n whatsoever_o shall_v be_v three_o time_n convict_v before_o he_o suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o death_n upon_o the_o expire_a of_o the_o parliament_n commissioner_n be_v appoint_v to_o require_v the_o bishop_n to_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n according_a to_o the_o law_n make_v to_o that_o purpose_n which_o be_v tender_v to_o they_o they_o all_o kitchen_n of_o landaffe_n only_o except_v unanimous_o refuse_v it_o although_o they_o have_v take_v it_o before_o as_o priest_n or_o bishop_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o henry_n 8._o or_o edward_n 6._o but_o whether_o by_o some_o secret_a intimation_n from_o rome_n or_o their_o own_o obstinacy_n they_o be_v resolve_v rather_o to_o undergo_v the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n than_o to_o take_v it_o now_o and_o according_o before_o the_o end_n of_o that_o year_n they_o be_v deprive_v of_o their_o bishopric_n so_o that_o the_o question_n about_o the_o intrusion_n of_o those_o bishop_n who_o come_v into_o their_o see_z depend_v upon_o the_o legality_n of_o the_o deprivation_n of_o these_o and_o certain_o whosoever_o consider_v their_o former_a carriage_n towards_o the_o queen_n in_o refuse_v to_o assist_v at_o her_o coronation_n watson_n and_o some_o of_o they_o threaten_v to_o excommunicate_v she_o instead_o of_o dispute_v at_o westminster_n as_o they_o have_v solemn_o engage_v to_o do_v join_v with_o this_o contumacy_n in_o refuse_v the_o oath_n will_v find_v that_o these_o person_n do_v not_o unjust_o suffer_v this_o deprivation_n for_o which_o i_o need_v not_o run_v out_o into_o the_o prince_n power_n over_o ecclesiastical_a person_n for_o you_o have_v give_v a_o sufficient_a reason_n for_o it_o yourself_o in_o that_o acknowledgement_n of_o you_o that_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o king_n too_o meaning_n king_n henry_n leave_v the_o pope_n in_o possession_n of_o all_o he_o can_v right_o challenge_v if_o this_o be_v true_a that_o notwithstanding_o the_o stat._n 28._o hen._n 8._o notwithstanding_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n then_o take_v the_o pope_n may_v enjoy_v all_o that_o belong_v to_o he_o of_o divine_a right_n he_o may_v then_o do_v the_o same_o notwithstanding_o this_o oath_n in_o elizabeth_n time_n which_o be_v only_o revive_v the_o former_a with_o some_o mitigation_n and_o what_o can_v it_o be_v then_o else_o but_o obstinacy_n and_o contumacy_n in_o they_o to_o refuse_v it_o and_o therefore_o the_o plea_n which_o you_o make_v for_o those_o who_o you_o call_v the_o henry-bishop_n will_v sufficient_o condemn_v these_o present_a bishop_n who_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o for_o if_o those_o bishop_n only_o renounce_v the_o pope_n canonical_a and_o acquire_v jurisdiction_n here_o in_o england_n as_o you_o say_v i._n e._n that_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n which_o the_o pope_n exercise_v here_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o canon_n prescription_n and_o other_o title_n of_o humane_a right_n and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o king_n yet_o they_o never_o renounce_v or_o deprive_v he_o of_o that_o part_n of_o his_o authority_n which_o be_v far_o more_o intrinsical_a to_o his_o office_n and_o of_o divine_a right_n they_o never_o deny_v the_o pope_n sovereign_a power_n to_o teach_v the_o universal_a church_n and_o determine_v all_o controversy_n of_o faith_n whatsoever_o in_o a_o general_n council_n if_o these_o thing_n i_o say_v be_v true_a which_o you_o confident_o assert_v the_o more_o inexcusable_a be_v these_o bishop_n for_o refuse_v that_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n which_o they_o have_v not_o only_o take_v in_o henry_n time_n but_o which_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n take_v away_o nothing_o of_o the_o pope_n authority_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v their_o obstinacy_n appear_v so_o great_a as_o may_v just_o deserve_v a_o deprivation_n it_o be_v certain_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o king_n and_o bishop_n to_o assert_v their_o own_o right_n in_o opposition_n to_o any_o canon_n or_o prescription_n whatsoever_o of_o mere_o humane_a right_n so_o that_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n the_o more_o excusable_a the_o henry-bishop_n be_v as_o you_o call_v they_o the_o less_o excusable_a the_o mary-bishop_n be_v as_o to_o follow_v you_o we_o must_v call_v they_o in_o refuse_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n when_o tender_v to_o they_o be_v it_o lawful_a then_o in_o henry_n time_n to_o take_v this_o oath_n or_o not_o if_o not_o then_z king_n henry_n bishop_n be_v infinite_o to_o blame_v for_o take_v it_o and_o you_o for_o defend_v they_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a then_o why_o not_o in_o elizabeth_n time_n have_v she_o not_o as_o much_o reason_n to_o impose_v it_o as_o her_o father_n have_v she_o not_o as_o much_o power_n to_o do_v it_o when_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a refuser_n heath_n archbishop_n of_o york_n and_o then_o l._n chancellor_n of_o england_n do_v upon_o the_o first_o notice_n of_o the_o death_n of_o queen_n mary_n declare_v to_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o that_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o crown_n do_v of_o right_o belong_v to_o the_o princess_n elizabeth_n who_o title_n they_o conceive_v to_o be_v free_a from_o all_o legal_a question_n this_o can_v be_v then_o no_o plea_n at_o all_o for_o they_o so_o that_o if_o any_o person_n through_o the_o great_a obstinacy_n may_v be_v deprive_v by_o a_o prince_n of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n these_o might_n and_o when_o you_o can_v prove_v that_o in_o no_o case_n a_o prince_n have_v power_n to_o deprive_v ecclesiastical_a person_n you_o will_v say_v more_o to_o your_o purpose_n than_o yet_o you_o have_v do_v but_o till_o you_o have_v do_v that_o it_o remain_v clear_a that_o these_o bishop_n be_v just_o deprive_v and_o if_o so_o what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v with_o their_o vacant_a see_v must_v they_o be_v keep_v vacant_a still_o or_o such_o be_v put_v into_o they_o who_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o same_o fault_n with_o themselves_o in_o refuse_v the_o oath_n when_o tender_v to_o they_o if_o not_o such_o than_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o other_o fit_a person_n shall_v be_v legal_o
by_o other_o by_o very_a many_o instance_n of_o the_o writer_n about_o that_o age_n that_o authoritas_fw-la be_v no_o more_o than_o rescriptum_fw-la as_o particular_o appear_v by_o many_o passage_n in_o leo_n epistle_n in_o which_o sense_n no_o more_o be_v express_v by_o this_o than_o that_o by_o the_o pope_n answer_n to_o the_o council_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n the_o pelagian_n may_v more_o probable_o be_v suppress_v but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o a_o universal_a pastorship_n give_v by_o christ_n to_o he_o any_o otherwise_o then_o to_o those_o who_o sit_v in_o any_o other_o apostolical_a see_v but_o your_o great_a quarrel_n be_v against_o his_o lordship_n for_o make_v all_o the_o patriarch_n even_o and_o equal_a as_o to_o principality_n of_o power_n and_o when_o he_o say_v equal_a as_o the_o apostle_n be_v you_o say_v that_o be_v aequivocal_a for_o though_o the_o apostle_n have_v equal_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n yet_o st._n peter_n alone_o have_v jurisdiction_n over_o the_o apostle_n but_o this_o be_v neither_o prove_v from_o john_n 21._o nor_o be_v it_o at_o all_o clear_a in_o antiquity_n as_o will_v appear_v when_o we_o come_v to_o that_o subject_a but_o this_o assertion_n of_o the_o equality_n of_o protestant_n be_v so_o destructive_a to_o your_o pretension_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 4._o that_o you_o set_v yourself_o more_o particular_o to_o disprove_v it_o which_o you_o offer_v to_o do_v by_o two_o thing_n 1._o by_o a_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n 2._o by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n 184._o you_o begin_v with_o the_o first_o of_o they_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o three_o canon_n whereof_o which_o concern_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o patriarch_n the_o authority_n or_o principality_n if_o you_o will_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v make_v the_o pattern_n and_o model_n of_o that_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n which_o patriarch_n be_v to_o exercise_v over_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v these_o sicque_fw-la praeest_fw-la patriarcha_fw-la iis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la qui_fw-la sub_fw-la ejus_fw-la potestate_fw-la sunt_fw-la sicut_fw-la ille_fw-la qui_fw-la tenet_fw-la sedem_fw-la romae_fw-la caput_fw-la est_fw-la &_o princeps_fw-la omnium_fw-la patriarcharum_fw-la the_o patriarch_n say_v they_o be_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n over_o all_o those_o that_o be_v under_o his_o authority_n as_o he_o who_o hold_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v head_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o patriarch_n and_o in_o the_o same_o canon_n the_o pope_n be_v afterward_o style_v petro_n similis_fw-la &_o authoritate_fw-la par_fw-fr resemble_v st._n peter_n and_o his_o equal_a in_o authority_n these_o be_v big_a word_n indeed_o and_o to_o your_o purpose_n if_o ever_o any_o such_o thing_n have_v be_v decree_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o i_o shall_v evident_o prove_v that_o this_o canon_n be_v supposititious_a and_o a_o notorious_a piece_n of_o forgery_n which_o forgery_n be_v much_o increase_v by_o you_o when_o you_o tell_v we_o these_o word_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o three_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a which_o in_o the_o greek_a edition_n of_o the_o canon_n by_o du_fw-fr tillet_n and_o the_o codex_fw-la canonum_fw-la by_o justellus_n and_o all_o other_o extant_a in_o the_o latin_a version_n of_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la and_o isidore_n mercator_n be_v whole_o against_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n e._n such_o kind_n of_o woman_n which_o clergy_n man_n take_v into_o their_o house_n neither_o as_o wife_n or_o concubine_n but_o under_o a_o pretext_n of_o piety_n in_o the_o arabic_a edition_n of_o the_o nicene_n canon_n set_v out_o by_o alphonsus_n pisanus_n the_o three_o canon_n be_v against_o the_o ordination_n either_o of_o neophyti_n or_o criminal_a person_n and_o so_o likewise_o in_o that_o of_o turrianus_n so_o that_o in_o no_o edition_n whether_o arabic_a or_o other_o be_v this_o the_o three_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o therefore_o you_o be_v guilty_a either_o of_o great_a ignorance_n and_o negligence_n in_o say_v so_o or_o of_o notorious_a fraud_n and_o imposture_n if_o you_o know_v it_o to_o be_v otherwise_o and_o yet_o say_v it_o that_o the_o unwary_a reader_n may_v believe_v this_o canon_n to_o be_v within_o the_o 20._o which_o be_v the_o only_a genuine_a canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a indeed_o such_o a_o canon_n there_o be_v in_o these_o arabic_a edition_n but_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v the_o three_o that_o in_o the_o edition_n both_o of_o pisanus_n and_o turrianus_n it_o be_v the_o thirty_o nine_o and_o in_o it_o i_o grant_v those_o word_n be_v but_o yet_o you_o will_v have_v little_a reason_n to_o rejoice_v in_o they_o when_o i_o have_v prove_v as_o i_o doubt_v not_o to_o do_v that_o this_o whole_a farrago_fw-la of_o arabic_a canon_n be_v a_o mere_a forgery_n and_o that_o i_o shall_v prove_v both_o from_o the_o true_a number_n of_o the_o nicene_n canon_n and_o the_o incongruity_n of_o many_o thing_n in_o the_o arabic_a canon_n with_o the_o state_n and_o polity_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n in_o those_o edition_n set_v out_o by_o pisanus_n and_o turrianus_n from_o the_o copy_n which_o they_o say_v be_v bring_v by_o baptista_n romanus_n from_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n there_o be_v no_o few_o than_o eighty_o canon_n whereas_o the_o nicene_n council_n never_o pass_v above_o 20._o which_o if_o it_o appear_v true_a that_o will_v sufficient_o discover_v the_o forgery_n and_o supposititiousness_n of_o these_o arabic_a canon_n now_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o than_o twenty_o genuine_a canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a i_o thus_o prove_v first_o from_o theodoret_n who_o after_o he_o have_v give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o proceed_n in_o the_o council_n against_o the_o arrian_n he_o say_v that_o the_o father_n meet_v in_o council_n again_o and_o pass_v twenty_o canon_n relate_v to_o the_o church_n polity_n 366.10.1_o and_o gelasius_n gricenus_fw-la who_o alphonsus_n pisanus_n set_v forth_o with_o his_o latin_a version_n recount_v no_o more_o than_o twenty_o canon_n the_o same_o number_n be_v assert_v by_o nicephorus_n callistus_n and_o we_o need_v not_o trouble_v ourselves_o with_o recite_v the_o testimony_n of_o more_o greek_a author_n since_o binius_fw-la himself_z confess_v that_o all_o the_o greek_n say_v there_o be_v no_o more_o than_o twenty_o canon_n then_o determine_v but_o although_o certain_o the_o greek_n be_v the_o most_o competent_a judge_n in_o this_o case_n yet_o the_o latin_n themselves_o do_v not_o allow_v of_o more_o 5._o for_o although_o ruffinus_n make_v twenty_o two_o yet_o that_o be_v not_o by_o the_o addition_n of_o any_o more_o canon_n but_o by_o split_v two_o into_o four_o 20._o and_o if_o we_o believe_v pope_n stephen_n in_o gratian_n the_o roman_a church_n do_v allow_v of_o no_o more_o than_o twenty_o and_o in_o that_o epitome_n of_o the_o canon_n which_o pope_n hadrian_n send_v to_o charles_n the_o great_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o western_a church_n 14._o a.d._n 773._o the_o same_o number_n of_o the_o nicene_n canon_n appear_v still_o and_o in_o a_o m_o s._n of_o hincmarus_n rhemensis_n against_o hincmarus_n laudunensis_n ibid._n this_o be_v not_o only_o assert_v but_o at_o large_a contend_v for_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o canon_n determine_v at_o nice_a than_o those_o twenty_o which_o we_o now_o have_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o tripartite_a history_n ruffinus_n the_o carthaginian_a council_n the_o epistle_n of_o cyril_n of_o alexandria_n and_o atticus_n of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o twelve_o action_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n so_o that_o if_o both_o greek_n and_o latin_n say_v true_a there_o can_v be_v no_o more_o than_o twenty_o genuine_a canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a which_o may_v be_v yet_o further_o prove_v by_o two_o thing_n viz._n the_o proceed_n of_o the_o african_a father_n in_o the_o case_n of_o zosimus_n about_o the_o nicene_n canon_n and_o the_o codex_fw-la canonum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la vniversae_fw-la both_o which_o yield_v a_o abundant_a testimony_n to_o our_o purpose_n if_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o just_a occasion_n give_v for_o a_o early_a and_o exact_a search_n into_o the_o authentic_a canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a it_o be_v certain_o in_o that_o grand_a debate_n between_o the_o african_a father_n and_o the_o roman_a bishop_n in_o the_o case_n of_o appeal_n for_o zosimus_n challenge_v not_o only_o a_o right_n of_o appeal_n to_o himself_o but_o a_o power_n of_o dispatch_a legate_n unto_o the_o african_a church_n to_o hear_v cause_n there_o and_o all_o this_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o canon_n in_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o this_o be_v deliver_v to_o they_o in_o council_n by_o faustinus_n philippus_n and_o asellus_n who_o
you_o say_v the_o pope_n confirmation_n be_v require_v to_o all_o new_a elect_a patriarch_n to_o that_o i_o shall_v return_v the_o full_a and_o satisfactory_a answer_n of_o the_o late_a renown_a archbishop_n of_o paris_n petrus_n de_fw-fr marcâ_fw-la 2._o where_o he_o propound_v this_o as_o a_o objection_n out_o of_o baronius_n and_o thus_o solve_v it_o that_o the_o confirmation_n of_o patriarch_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v no_o token_n of_o jurisdiction_n but_o only_o of_o receive_v into_o communion_n and_o a_o testimony_n of_o his_o consent_n to_o the_o consecration_n already_o perform_v and_o this_o be_v no_o more_o than_o be_v do_v by_o other_o bishop_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n himself_o rigalt_n for_o s._n cyprian_a write_v to_o antonianus_n about_o the_o election_n of_o cornelius_n sai_z that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o choose_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o that_o his_o election_n be_v confirm_v by_o all_o their_o consent_n may_v not_o you_o then_o as_o well_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n have_v power_n over_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o his_o ordination_n be_v confirm_v by_o he_o and_o other_o african_a bishop_n ib._n but_o any_o one_o who_o have_v understand_v better_a than_o you_o seem_v to_o do_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o age_n will_v never_o have_v make_v this_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n over_o other_o patriarch_n since_o as_o the_o same_o petrus_n de_fw-fr marcâ_fw-la observe_v it_o be_v the_o custom_n in_o those_o time_n that_o not_o only_o the_o patriarch_n but_o the_o roman_a bishop_n himself_o upon_o their_o election_n be_v wont_a to_o send_v abroad_o letter_n testify_v their_o ordination_n to_o which_o be_v add_v a_o profession_n of_o faith_n contain_v in_o their_o synodical_a epistle_n upon_o the_o receipt_n of_o which_o communicatory_a letter_n be_v send_v to_o the_o person_n new_o ordain_v to_o testify_v their_o communion_n with_o he_o in_o case_n there_o be_v no_o just_a impediment_n produce_v so_o that_o this_o be_v only_o a_o matter_n of_o fraternal_a communion_n and_o import_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o jurisdiction_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v ready_a to_o make_v use_n of_o all_o occasion_n to_o advance_v their_o own_o grandeur_n do_v in_o time_n make_v use_n of_o this_o for_o quite_o other_o end_n than_o it_o be_v primary_o intend_v for_o in_o case_n of_o any_o suspicion_n and_o jealousy_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o may_v tend_v to_o the_o dis-service_n of_o their_o see_n they_o will_v then_o deny_v their_o communicatory_a letter_n as_o simplicius_n do_v in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o in_o that_o confirmation_n of_o anatolius_n by_o leo_n 1._o which_o baronius_n so_o much_o insist_o on_o leo_n himself_o give_v a_o sufficient_a account_n of_o it_o viz._n to_o manifest_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o entire_a communion_n among_o they_o throughout_o the_o world_n 38._o so_o that_o if_o the_o pope_n own_o judgement_n may_v be_v take_v this_o confirmation_n of_o new_a elect_a patriarch_n import_v nothing_o of_o jurisdiction_n but_o in_o case_n the_o pope_n do_v deny_v their_o communicatory_a letter_n that_o do_v not_o present_o hinder_v they_o from_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o office_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o instance_n of_o flavianus_n the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n for_o although_o three_o roman_a bishop_n successive_o oppose_v he_o 13._o damasus_n syricius_n and_o anastasius_n and_o use_v great_a importunity_n with_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o may_v not_o continue_v in_o his_o place_n yet_o because_o the_o church_n of_o the_o orient_a asia_n pontus_n and_o thracia_n do_v approve_v of_o he_o and_o communicate_v with_o he_o he_o oppose_v their_o consent_n against_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n upon_o which_o and_o the_o emperor_n be_v severe_a check_v they_o for_o their_o pride_n and_o contention_n they_o at_o last_o promise_v the_o emperor_n that_o they_o will_v lay_v aside_o their_o enmity_n and_o acknowledge_v he_o so_o that_o notwithstanding_o whatever_o the_o roman_a bishop_n can_v do_v against_o he_o he_o be_v acknowledge_v for_o a_o true_a patriarch_n and_o at_o last_o their_o consent_n be_v give_v only_o by_o renew_v communion_n with_o he_o which_o certain_o be_v far_o from_o be_v a_o instance_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n over_o the_o other_o patriarch_n 8._o whereby_o we_o also_o see_v what_o little_a power_n he_o have_v in_o depose_v they_o although_o you_o tell_v we_o 184._o that_o it_o belong_v likewise_o to_o he_o to_o depose_v unworthy_a one_o &_o restore_v the_o unjust_o depose_v by_o other_o but_o that_o the_o power_n of_o depose_v bishop_n be_v ancient_o in_o provincial_a council_n appear_v sufficient_o by_o the_o five_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n both_o before_o and_o after_o it_o and_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o petrus_n de_fw-fr marcâ_fw-la that_o the_o sole_a power_n of_o depose_v bishop_n be_v not_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n till_o about_o eight_o hundred_o year_n since_o and_o refute_v the_o cardinal_n perron_n for_o say_v otherwise_o 6._o and_o afterward_o large_o prove_v that_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o depose_v bishop_n be_v still_o in_o provincial_a council_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v in_o it_o till_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o sardican_a synod_n in_o the_o case_n of_o athanasius_n which_o yet_o he_o say_v do_v not_o as_o be_v common_o say_v decree_n appeal_v to_o be_v make_v to_o rome_n but_o only_o give_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n power_n to_o review_n their_o action_n but_o still_o reserve_v to_o provincial_a council_n that_o authority_n which_o the_o nicene_n council_n have_v establish_v they_o in_o all_o the_o power_n which_o he_o then_o have_v be_v only_o this_o that_o he_o may_v decree_v that_o the_o matter_n may_v be_v handle_v over_o again_o but_o not_o that_o he_o have_v the_o power_n himself_o of_o depose_v or_o restore_v bishop_n which_o be_v prove_v with_o that_o clearness_n and_o evidence_n by_o that_o excellent_a author_n that_o i_o shall_v refer_v you_o to_o he_o for_o it_o and_o consider_v the_o instance_n produce_v by_o you_o to_o the_o contrary_n we_o read_v say_v you_o of_o no_o less_o than_o eight_o several_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n depose_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n sure_o if_o you_o have_v read_v this_o yourself_o you_o will_v have_v quote_v the_o place_n with_o more_o care_n and_o accuracy_n than_o you_o do_v for_o you_o give_v we_o only_o a_o blind_a citation_n of_o a_o epistle_n of_o pope_n nicolaus_n to_o the_o emperor_n michael_n neither_o cite_v the_o word_n nor_o tell_v we_o which_o it_o be_v when_o there_o be_v several_a and_o those_o no_o very_o short_a one_o neither_o but_o however_o it_o be_v well_o choose_v to_o have_v a_o pope_n testimony_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n and_o that_o such_o a_o pope_n who_o be_v then_o in_o contest_v with_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o that_o too_o so_o long_o after_o the_o encroachment_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v in_o the_o nine_o century_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o this_o pope_n do_v not_o say_v those_o word_n which_o you_o will_v fasten_v upon_o he_o that_o which_o he_o say_v be_v that_o none_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n 506._o or_o scarce_o any_o of_o they_o be_v eject_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o then_o instance_v in_o maximus_n nestorius_n accacius_n anthimus_n sergius_n pyrrhus_n paulus_n petrus_n but_o his_o design_n in_o this_o be_v only_o to_o show_v that_o ignatius_n the_o patriarch_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v be_v depose_v without_o his_o consent_n but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o pope_n sole_a power_n of_o depose_v when_o even_o at_o that_o time_n the_o pope_n do_v not_o challenge_v it_o but_o suppose_v the_o pope_n have_v do_v it_o before_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n to_o do_v it_o and_o that_o the_o canon_n have_v give_v they_o right_a to_o do_v it_o but_o least_o of_o all_o certain_o that_o they_o have_v a_o divine_a right_n for_o it_o which_o never_o be_v in_o the_o least_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o church_n as_o to_o a_o deposition_n of_o patriarch_n which_o you_o contend_v for_o but_o beside_o this_o you_o say_v sixtus_n the_o three_o depose_v polychronius_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n whereas_o sixtus_n only_o send_v eight_o person_n from_o a_o synod_n at_o rome_n to_o jerusalem_n who_o when_o they_o come_v there_o do_v not_o offer_v to_o depose_v polychronius_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n but_o a_o synod_n of_o seventy_o or_o more_o neighbour_n bishop_n be_v call_v by_o who_o he_o be_v depose_v and_o yet_o after_o all_o
this_o binius_fw-la himself_z condemn_v those_o act_n which_o report_v this_o story_n for_o spurious_a there_o be_v a_o manifest_a repugnancy_n in_o the_o time_n of_o they_o 685._o and_o no_o such_o person_n as_o polychronius_n ever_o mention_v by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a historian_n of_o that_o time_n and_o other_o fabulous_a narration_n insert_v in_o they_o yet_o these_o be_v your_o goodly_a proof_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n to_o depose_v patriarch_n but_o we_o must_v see_v whether_o you_o have_v any_o better_a success_n in_o prove_v his_o power_n to_o restore_v such_o as_o be_v depose_v for_o which_o you_o only_o instance_n in_o athanasius_n and_o paulus_n restore_v by_o julius_n who_o case_n must_v be_v further_o examine_v which_o in_o short_a be_v this_o athanasius_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o synod_n of_o tyre_n and_o antioch_n go_v to_o rome_n where_o he_o and_o paulus_n be_v receive_v into_o communion_n by_o julius_n who_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n which_o be_v send_v after_o he_o to_o rome_n for_o pope_n julius_n do_v not_o formal_o offer_v to_o restore_v athanasius_n to_o his_o church_n but_o only_o own_v and_o receive_v he_o into_o communion_n as_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o that_o because_o he_o look_v on_o the_o proceed_n as_o unjust_a in_o his_o condemnation_n and_o all_o that_o julius_n himself_o plead_v for_o be_v not_o a_o power_n to_o depose_v or_o restore_v patriarch_n himself_o but_o only_o that_o such_o thing_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v be_v do_v without_o communicate_v those_o proceed_n to_o he_o which_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n may_v require_v and_o therefore_o petrus_n de_fw-fr marca_n say_v that_o baronius_n bellarmin_n and_o perron_n be_v all_o strange_o out_o in_o this_o story_n 6._o when_o they_o will_v infer_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n upon_o appeal_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n whereas_o all_o that_o julius_n plead_v for_o be_v that_o such_o thing_n shall_v not_o be_v do_v by_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n alone_o which_o concern_v the_o deposition_n of_o so_o great_a a_o person_n in_o the_o church_n as_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n but_o that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o council_n both_o of_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a bishop_n on_o which_o account_n afterward_o the_o sardican_a synod_n be_v call_v but_o when_o we_o consider_v with_o what_o heat_n and_o stomach_n this_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n how_o they_o absolute_o deny_v that_o the_o western_a bishop_n have_v any_o more_o to_o do_v with_o their_o proceed_n than_o they_o have_v with_o they_o when_o they_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n by_o this_o usurpation_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o mischief_n that_o follow_v we_o see_v what_o a_o excellent_a instance_n you_o have_v make_v choice_n of_o to_o prove_v the_o pope_n power_n of_o restore_a bishop_n by_o divine_a right_n and_o that_o this_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o next_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v be_v that_o speech_n of_o st._n augustine_n 9_o that_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o do_v always_o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o a_o apostolic_a chair_n 162._o as_o to_o which_o his_o lordship_n say_v that_o neither_o be_v the_o word_n principatus_fw-la so_o great_a nor_o the_o bishop_n of_o those_o time_n so_o little_a 168._o as_o that_o principes_fw-la and_o principatus_fw-la be_v not_o common_o give_v they_o both_o by_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a father_n of_o this_o great_a and_o learn_a age_n of_o the_o church_n make_v up_o of_o the_o four_o and_o five_o hundred_o year_n always_o understand_v principatus_fw-la of_o their_o spiritual_a power_n and_o within_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o several_a jurisdiction_n which_o perhaps_o now_o and_o then_o they_o do_v occasional_o exceed_v and_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n in_o st._n augustine_n that_o this_o principality_n of_o the_o apostolic_a chair_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v then_o or_o aught_o to_o be_v now_o exercise_v over_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o bellarmin_n insinuate_v there_o and_o as_o a._n c._n will_v have_v it_o here_o to_o all_o this_o you_o say_v nothing_o to_o purpose_n but_o only_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o bishop_n by_o this_o make_v way_n to_o some_o other_o pretty_a perversion_n as_o you_o call_v they_o of_o the_o same_o father_n 184._o for_o we_o must_v know_v say_v you_o that_o he_o be_v enter_v upon_o that_o main_a question_n concern_v the_o donatist_n of_o africa_n and_o he_o be_v so_o indeed_o and_o that_o not_o only_o for_o clear_v the_o meaning_n of_o st._n augustine_n in_o the_o present_a epistle_n but_o of_o the_o whole_a controversy_n to_o which_o a_o great_a light_n will_v be_v give_v by_o a_o true_a account_n of_o those_o proceed_n thus_o than_o his_o lordship_n go_v on_o and_o to_o prove_v that_o st._n augustine_n do_v not_o intend_v by_o principatus_fw-la here_o to_o give_v the_o roman_a bishop_n any_o power_n out_o of_o his_o own_o limit_n which_o god_n know_v be_v far_o short_a of_o the_o whole_a church_n i_o shall_v make_v it_o most_o manifest_a out_o of_o the_o same_o epistle_n 169._o for_o afterward_o say_v st._n augustine_n when_o the_o pertinacy_n of_o the_o donatist_n can_v not_o be_v restrain_v by_o the_o african_a bishop_n only_o they_o give_v they_o leave_v to_o be_v hear_v by_o foreign_a bishop_n and_o after_o that_o he_o have_v these_o word_n and_o yet_o peradventure_o melciades_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n ib._n with_o his_o colleague_n the_o transmarine_a bishop_n non_fw-la debuit_fw-la ought_v not_o to_o usurp_v to_o himself_o this_o judgement_n which_o be_v determine_v by_o seventy_o african_a bishop_n tigisitanus_n sit_v primate_n and_o what_o will_v you_o say_v if_o he_o do_v not_o usurp_v this_o power_n for_o the_o emperor_n be_v desire_v send_v bishop_n judge_n which_o shall_v sit_v with_o he_o and_o determine_v what_o be_v just_a upon_o the_o whole_a cause_n in_o which_o passage_n say_v his_o lordship_n there_o be_v very_o many_o thing_n observable_a as_o first_o that_o the_o roman_a prelate_n come_v not_o in_o till_o there_o be_v leave_v for_o they_o to_o go_v to_o transmarine_a bishop_n second_o that_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v come_v in_o without_o this_o leave_n it_o have_v be_v a_o usurpation_n three_o that_o when_o he_o do_v thus_o come_v in_o not_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n but_o by_o leave_n there_o be_v other_o bishop_n make_v judge_n with_o he_o four_o that_o these_o other_o bishop_n be_v appoint_v and_o send_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o his_o power_n that_o which_o the_o pope_n lest_o of_o all_o will_v endure_v last_o lest_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n shall_v say_v this_o be_v a_o usurpation_n in_o the_o emperor_n st._n austin_n tell_v we_o a_o little_a before_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n still_o that_o this_o do_v chief_o belong_v ad_fw-la curam_fw-la ejus_fw-la to_o the_o emperor_n care_n and_o charge_n ib._n and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o give_v a_o account_n to_o god_n for_o it_o and_o melciades_n do_v sit_v and_o judge_v the_o business_n with_o all_o christian_a prudence_n and_o moderation_n so_o at_o this_o time_n the_o roman_a prelate_n be_v not_o receive_v as_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n say_v a._n c._n what_o he_o please_v nor_o have_v he_o supremacy_n over_o the_o other_o patriarch_n in_o order_n to_o the_o better_a shape_a your_o answer_n to_o this_o discourse_n you_o pretend_v to_o give_v we_o a_o true_a narrative_n of_o the_o donatist_n proceed_n by_o the_o same_o figure_n that_o lucian_n book_n be_v inscribe_v de_fw-fr vera_fw-la historia_fw-la there_o be_v several_a thing_n therefore_o to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o in_o your_o narrative_n before_o we_o come_v to_o your_o particular_a answer_n who_o strength_n depend_v upon_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n first_o you_o give_v no_o satisfactory_a account_n at_o all_o why_o if_o the_o pope_n universal_a pastourship_n have_v be_v then_o own_v the_o first_o appeal_n on_o both_o side_n be_v not_o make_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o in_o so_o great_a a_o schism_n as_o that_o be_v between_o the_o different_a party_n of_o caecilian_a and_o majorinus_n to_o who_o shall_v they_o have_v direct_o go_v but_o to_o melchiade_n than_o bishop_n of_o rome_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o his_o judgement_n by_o either_o party_n till_o constantine_n have_v appoint_v he_o to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o judge_n st._n austin_n indeed_o plead_v in_o behalf_n of_o caecilian_a why_o he_o will_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o african_a synod_n of_o lxx_o bishop_n that_o there_o be_v thousand_o of_o his_o colleague_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o sea_n who_o he_o may_v be_v try_v by_o but_o why_o not_o by_o the_o bishop_n
declaim_v against_o as_o monstrous_a and_o blasphemous_a if_o not_o antichristian_a where_o by_o the_o way_n either_o these_o two_o pope_n pelagius_n and_o s._n gregory_n err_v in_o this_o weighty_a business_n about_o a_o universal_a bishop_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o if_o they_o do_v not_o err_v boniface_n and_o the_o rest_n which_o after_o he_o take_v it_o upon_o they_o be_v in_o their_o very_a predecessor_n judgement_n antichristian_a before_o you_o come_v to_o a_o particular_a answer_n you_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o make_v a_o way_n for_o it_o by_o premise_v two_o thing_n 1._o that_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n be_v ancient_o attribute_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n ●_o but_o they_o never_o make_v use_n of_o it_o 2._o that_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o constantinople_n never_o intend_v by_o this_o usurp_a title_n to_o deny_v the_o pope_n universal_a authority_n even_o over_o themselves_o these_o two_o thing_n i_o shall_v therefore_o consider_v because_o they_o tend_v much_o to_o the_o clear_v the_o main_a controversy_n i_o begin_v therefore_o with_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n attribute_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o before_o i_o answer_v your_o particular_a allegation_n we_o must_v more_o full_o consider_v in_o what_o sense_n that_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n be_v take_v in_o antiquity_n and_o in_o what_o manner_n it_o be_v attribute_v to_o he_o for_o when_o title_n have_v different_a sense_n and_o those_o sense_n evident_o make_v use_n of_o by_o the_o ancient_a writer_n it_o be_v a_o most_o unreasonable_a thing_n mere_o from_o the_o title_n to_o infer_v one_o determinate_a sense_n which_o be_v the_o most_o contrary_a to_o the_o current_n of_o antiquity_n the_o title_n then_o of_o universal_a bishop_n may_v be_v conceive_v to_o import_v one_o of_o these_o three_o thing_n 1._o a_o general_a care_n and_o solicitude_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n 2._o a_o peculiar_a dignity_n over_o the_o church_n within_o the_o empire_n 3._o universal_a jurisdiction_n over_o all_o church_n so_o that_o all_o exercise_n of_o it_o in_o the_o church_n be_v derivative_a from_o he_o as_o universal_a pastor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n this_o last_o be_v that_o which_o you_o attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o though_o you_o find_v the_o name_n of_o universal_a bishop_n a_o hundred_o time_n over_o in_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v take_v in_o either_o of_o the_o two_o former_a sense_n it_o make_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o your_o purpose_n our_o business_n be_v therefore_o now_o to_o show_v that_o this_o title_n be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o two_o former_a sense_n and_o that_o nothing_o from_o hence_o can_v be_v infer_v for_o that_o ecumenical_a pastorship_n which_o you_o say_v do_v of_o divine_a right_n belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 2._o i_o begin_v with_o the_o first_o as_o this_o title_n may_v import_v a_o general_a care_n and_o solicitude_n over_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o in_o this_o sense_n this_o title_n may_v be_v attribute_v in_o antiquity_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o then_o i_o assert_v that_o nothing_o peculiar_a to_o he_o can_v be_v infer_v from_o hence_o because_o expression_n import_v the_o same_o care_n be_v attribute_v to_o other_o bishop_n especial_o such_o who_o be_v place_v in_o the_o great_a see_v or_o be_v active_a in_o promote_a the_o church_n interest_n for_o which_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o power_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n be_v give_v with_o a_o immediate_a respect_n to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a church_n so_o that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o every_o particular_a bishop_n can_v take_v care_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n they_o have_v authority_n enough_o by_o their_o function_n to_o do_v it_o but_o it_o not_o only_o be_v impossible_a that_o every_o bishop_n shall_v do_v it_o but_o it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o peace_n and_o order_n that_o all_o shall_v undertake_v it_o therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v some_o restraint_n and_o bound_n set_v for_o the_o more_o convenient_a management_n of_o that_o authority_n which_o they_o have_v from_o hence_o come_v the_o original_a of_o particular_a diocese_n that_o within_o such_o a_o compass_n they_o may_v better_o exercise_v that_o power_n which_o they_o enjoy_v as_o if_o many_o light_n be_v place_v in_o a_o great_a room_n though_o the_o intention_n of_o every_o one_o of_o these_o be_v to_o give_v light_n to_o the_o whole_a room_n yet_o that_o this_o may_v the_o better_o be_v do_v these_o light_n be_v convenient_o place_v in_o the_o several_a part_n of_o it_o and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o s._n cyprian_a mean_n in_o that_o famous_a expression_n of_o he_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o bishopric_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n a_o part_n of_o which_o be_v hold_v by_o every_o bishop_n for_o the_o church_n in_o common_a be_v design_v as_o the_o diocese_n of_o all_o bishop_n which_o be_v set_v out_o into_o several_a appartiment_n for_o the_o more_o advantageous_a govern_n of_o it_o as_o a_o flock_n of_o many_o thousand_o sheep_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o care_n of_o many_o shepherd_n these_o all_o have_v a_o eye_n to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a flock_n but_o do_v not_o therefore_o sit_v altogether_o in_o one_o place_n to_o oversee_v it_o but_o every_o one_o have_v his_o share_n to_o look_v after_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o whole_a but_o yet_o so_o that_o upon_o occasion_n one_o of_o they_o may_v extend_v his_o care_n beyond_o his_o own_o division_n and_o may_v be_v very_o useful_a for_o the_o whole_a by_o counsel_n and_o direction_n thus_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n though_o every_o bishop_n have_v his_o particular_a charge_n yet_o still_o they_o regard_v the_o common_a good_a of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o upon_o occasion_n do_v extend_v their_o counsel_n and_o advice_n far_o beyond_o their_o particular_a church_n and_o exercise_v their_o function_n in_o other_o place_n beside_o those_o which_o the_o church_n convenience_n have_v allot_v to_o they_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o dissension_n arise_v between_o the_o asian_a and_o roman_a church_n polycarp_n come_v to_o rome_n and_o there_o l._n as_o eusebius_n from_o irenaeus_n tell_v we_o he_o exercise_v with_o anicetus_n his_o consent_n his_o episcopal_a function_n for_o as_o valesius_fw-la observe_v it_o can_v be_v understand_v as_o franciscus_n florence_o will_v have_v it_o of_o his_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n from_o anicetus_n but_o something_o of_o honour_n be_v imply_v in_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whereas_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v common_a in_o the_o other_o hence_o the_o several_a epistle_n of_o ignatius_n polycarp_n irenaeus_n and_o other_o for_o the_o advise_v confirm_v 25_o and_o settle_v church_n hence_o irenaeus_n concern_v himself_o so_o much_o in_o the_o business_n between_o victor_n and_o the_o asian_a church_n either_o to_o prevent_v or_o repeal_v his_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n against_o they_o hence_o s._n cyprian_n write_v into_o spain_n about_o the_o depose_n basilides_n and_o martialis_n 68_o two_o apostatise_v bishop_n and_o check_v stephen_n bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o his_o inconsiderate_a restore_v they_o hence_o faustus_n bishop_n of_o lion_n write_v to_o s._n cyprian_n in_o the_o case_n of_o martianus_n of_o arles_n 67._o and_o he_o write_v to_o stephen_n as_o be_v near_o and_o more_o concern_v in_o the_o business_n of_o novatianism_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o predecessor_n in_o order_n to_o his_o deposition_n yet_o so_o as_o he_o look_v on_o it_o as_o a_o common_a cause_n belong_v to_o they_o all_o cui_fw-la rei_fw-la nostrum_fw-la est_fw-la consulere_fw-la &_o subvenire_fw-la frater_fw-la charissime_fw-la in_o which_o they_o be_v all_o bind_v to_o advise_v and_o help_v hence_o s._n cyprian_n write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o his_o brother_n and_o colleague_n without_o the_o least_o intimation_n of_o derive_v any_o jurisdiction_n from_o he_o but_o often_o express_v that_o charge_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o every_o bishop_n which_o he_o must_v look_v to_o as_o mindful_a of_o the_o account_n he_o must_v give_v to_o god_n hence_o nazianzen_n say_v of_o s._n cyprian_n 281._o that_o he_o not_o only_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o carthage_n and_o africa_n but_o all_o the_o western_a part_n and_o even_o almost_o all_o the_o eastern_a southern_a and_o northern_a too_o as_o far_o as_o his_o fame_n go_v savil._n hence_o arsenius_n write_v to_o athanasius_n we_o embrace_v peace_n and_o unity_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n over_o which_o thou_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n do_v preside_v hence_o gregory_n nazianzen_n say_v of_o athanasius_n that_o he_o make_v law_n for_o the_o whole_a earth_n hence_o
and_o gregory_n yield_v shrewd_a matter_n of_o suspicion_n what_o the_o main_a ground_n of_o their_o quarrel_n against_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v for_o before_o the_o emperor_n stand_v up_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o constantinople_n as_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o their_o empire_n and_o rome_n begin_v to_o sink_v the_o empire_n decay_v there_o but_o now_o there_o be_v a_o fit_a time_n to_o do_v something_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v cyriacus_n be_v in_o disgrace_n with_o the_o tyrant_n phocas_n and_o no_o such_o time_n as_o now_o to_o fall_v in_o with_o he_o and_o caresse_n he_o and_o we_o see_v gregory_n do_v it_o pretty_a well_o for_o a_o saint_n but_o he_o live_v not_o to_o enjoy_v the_o benefit_n of_o it_o but_o boniface_n do_v however_o after_o the_o patriarchate_o of_o constantinople_n be_v erect_v 5._o the_o pope_n have_v a_o double_a game_n to_o play_v to_o advance_v themselves_o and_o depress_v that_o which_o it_o be_v very_o hard_o for_o they_o to_o do_v because_o all_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n as_o well_o as_o the_o emperor_n favour_v it_o but_o after_o equal_a privilege_n be_v decree_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n they_o can_v no_o long_o dissemble_v their_o choler_n but_o have_v no_o such_o occasion_n minister_v to_o they_o to_o express_v it_o as_o after_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n wherein_o be_v present_a 630_o bishop_n which_o confirm_v the_o former_a for_o then_o leo_n fume_n and_o fret_v and_o write_v to_o martianus_n and_o pulcheria_n to_o anatolius_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n but_o still_o pretend_v that_o he_o stand_v up_o for_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o the_o nicene_n canon_n and_o what_o not_o but_o one_o may_v easy_o discern_v what_o it_o be_v that_o pinch_v he_o viz._n the_o equal_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n with_o himself_o which_o it_o be_v apparent_a he_o suspect_v before_o by_o the_o instruction_n he_o give_v his_o legate_n paschasinus_n and_o lucentius_n to_o be_v sure_a to_o oppose_v whatever_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o council_n concern_v the_o primacy_n of_o that_o see_n and_o according_o they_o do_v and_o complain_v that_o the_o canon_n be_v surreptitious_o make_v which_o they_o be_v huge_o oversee_v in_o do_v while_o the_o council_n sit_v for_o upon_o this_o the_o whole_a matter_n be_v review_v the_o judge_n scan_v the_o business_n the_o bishop_n protest_v there_o be_v no_o practice_n use_v that_o they_o all_o voluntary_o consent_v to_o it_o and_o all_o this_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o roman_a legate_n how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v that_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o regular_a and_o conciliar_a action_n be_v not_o the_o bishop_n at_o age_n to_o understand_v their_o own_o privilege_n do_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n know_v his_o own_o interest_n as_o well_o as_o pope_n leo_n must_v he_o be_v suppose_v more_o able_a to_o understand_v the_o nicene_n canon_n then_o these_o 630_o bishop_n why_o then_o be_v not_o this_o canon_n as_o regular_a as_o any_o other_o why_o forsooth_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o consent_v to_o it_o so_o true_a be_v that_o sharp_a censure_n of_o ludovicus_n vives_n that_z those_o be_v account_v lawful_a canon_n and_o council_n which_o make_v for_o their_o interest_n 26._o but_o other_o be_v no_o more_o esteem_v than_o a_o company_n of_o tattle_a gossip_n but_o what_o make_v the_o pope_n so_o angry_a at_o this_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n he_o pretend_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o nicene_n canon_n the_o preserve_v the_o privilege_n of_o other_o patriarch_n but_o binius_fw-la have_v tell_v we_o the_o true_a reason_n of_o it_o because_o they_o say_v 561._o that_o the_o primacy_n of_o rome_n come_v by_o its_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o therefore_o not_o by_o divine_a right_n and_o since_o constantinople_n be_v become_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n too_o therefore_o the_o patriarch_n there_o shall_v enjoy_v equal_a privilege_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n if_o rome_n have_v continue_v still_o the_o sole_a seat_n of_o the_o empire_n this_o reason_n will_v not_o have_v be_v quarrel_v at_o but_o now_o rome_n sink_v and_o constantinople_n rise_v this_o must_v not_o be_v endure_v but_o all_o the_o art_n and_o device_n possible_a must_v be_v use_v to_o keep_v it_o under_o and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a account_n of_o the_o pique_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v easy_o guess_v how_o probable_a it_o be_v that_o this_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o pope_n ecumenical_a bishop_n in_o any_o other_o sense_n than_o they_o contend_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v so_o too_o and_o the_o same_o answer_n will_v serve_v for_o all_o your_o follow_a instance_n for_o as_o you_o pretend_v that_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n sub_fw-la menna_n do_v call_v pope_n agapetus_n ecumenical_a patriarch_n so_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o it_o call_v menna_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n so_o too_o and_o which_o be_v more_o adrian_z 1._o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o tharasius_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n call_v he_o universal_a bishop_n if_o therefore_o the_o greek_a emperor_n and_o balsamon_n call_v the_o pope_n so_o they_o import_v nothing_o peculiar_a to_o he_o in_o it_o because_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a they_o call_v their_o own_o patriarch_n so_o likewise_o so_o that_o you_o find_v little_a advantage_n to_o your_o cause_n from_o this_o first_o thing_n which_o you_o premise_v viz._n that_o the_o pope_n be_v ancient_o call_v universal_a bishop_n but_o you_o say_v further_o 2._o 2._o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n never_o intend_v to_o deny_v by_o this_o usurp_a title_n the_o pope_n universal_a authority_n even_o over_o themselves_o this_o be_v ambiguous_a unless_o it_o be_v further_o explain_v what_o you_o mean_v by_o universal_a authority_n for_o it_o may_v either_o note_v some_o kind_n of_o preeminence_n and_o dignity_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v as_o the_o chief_a patriarch_n and_o who_o on_o that_o account_n have_v great_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n and_o this_o your_o instance_n prove_v that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v acknowledge_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o if_o by_o universal_a authority_n be_v mean_v universal_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o church_n as_o appoint_v the_o head_n of_o it_o by_o christ_n than_o not_o one_o of_o your_o instance_n come_v near_o the_o shadow_n of_o a_o proof_n for_o it_o thus_o have_v consider_v what_o you_o premise_v we_o come_v to_o your_o answer_n itself_o 6._o 3._o for_o which_o you_o tell_v we_o we_o be_v to_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o term_n universal_a bishop_n be_v capable_a of_o two_o sense_n the_o one_o grammatical_a the_o other_o metaphorical_a in_o the_o grammatical_a sense_n it_o signify_v bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o of_o all_o church_n in_o particular_a even_o to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o all_o other_o from_o be_v proper_o bishop_n and_o consequent_o displaceable_a at_o his_o pleasure_n as_o be_v only_o he_o not_o christ_n officer_n and_o receive_v authority_n from_o he_o and_o not_o from_o christ._n in_o the_o metaphorical_a sense_n it_o signify_v only_o so_o high_a and_o eminent_a a_o dignity_n above_o all_o other_o bishop_n throughout_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o though_o he_o who_o be_v style_v universal_a bishop_n have_v a_o true_a and_o real_a superintendency_n jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n over_o all_o other_o bishop_n yet_o that_o they_o be_v as_o true_o and_o proper_o bishop_n in_o their_o respective_a province_n and_o diocese_n as_o he_o himself_o this_o be_v clear_v say_v you_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o st._n gregory_n when_o he_o inveigh_v against_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n 4._o take_v it_o in_o the_o literal_a and_o grammatical_a sense_n which_o you_o very_o faint_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v out_o of_o he_o as_o i_o shall_v make_v it_o present_o appear_v this_o be_v then_o the_o substance_n of_o that_o answer_n which_o you_o say_v have_v be_v give_v a_o hundred_o time_n over_o must_v now_o once_o for_o all_o pass_v a_o strict_a and_o severe_a examination_n which_o it_o shall_v receive_v in_o these_o two_o inquiry_n 1._o whether_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o conceive_v that_o st._n gregory_n shall_v take_v universal_a bishop_n in_o the_o literal_a and_o grammatical_a sense_n 2._o whether_o all_o the_o argument_n which_o he_o use_v against_o that_o title_n do_v not_o hold_v against_o that_o universal_a jurisdiction_n which_o you_o attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o whether_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o conceive_v that_o st._n gregory_n
shall_v take_v universal_a bishop_n in_o the_o literal_a and_o grammatical_a sense_n which_o you_o give_v of_o it_o and_o he_o which_o can_v think_v so_o must_v have_v some_o other_o way_n of_o understand_v his_o meaning_n then_o by_o his_o word_n and_o argument_n which_o i_o confess_v i_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o but_o if_o we_o examine_v they_o we_o shall_v find_v how_o impossible_a it_o be_v that_o st._n gregory_n shall_v ever_o think_v that_o john_n pretend_v to_o be_v the_o sole_a bishop_n of_o this_o world_n 1._o because_o gregory_n say_v that_o same_o title_n which_o john_n have_v usurp_v be_v offer_v to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n 32._o but_o none_o of_o they_o will_v ever_o use_v it_o because_o it_o seem_v to_o diminish_v the_o honour_n of_o other_o bishop_n now_o i_o pray_v think_v with_o yourself_o whether_o ever_o 630_o bishop_n will_v consent_v together_o to_o give_v away_o all_o their_o power_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n for_o you_o say_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o universal_a bishop_n do_v suppose_v he_o to_o be_v bishop_n of_o all_o particular_a church_n to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o all_o other_o from_o be_v proper_o bishop_n and_o be_v displaceable_a at_o his_o pleasure_n can_v it_o now_o enter_v into_o your_o mind_n that_o gregory_n shall_v ever_o think_v that_o these_o bishop_n shall_v all_o make_v themselves_o the_o pope_n vassal_n of_o their_o own_o free_a choice_n we_o see_v even_o under_o the_o great_a usurpation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n since_o though_o they_o pretend_v for_o all_o that_o i_o can_v see_v to_o be_v ecumenical_a bishop_n in_o a_o high_a sense_n than_o ever_o john_n pretend_v to_o that_o yet_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n be_v not_o willing_a to_o submit_v their_o office_n whole_o to_o the_o papal_a jurisdiction_n witness_v the_o stout_a and_o eager_a contest_v of_o the_o spanish_a bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n about_o the_o divine_a institution_n of_o the_o episcopal_a office_n against_o the_o pretence_n of_o the_o italian_a party_n and_o shall_v we_o then_o think_v when_o the_o pope_n be_v far_o from_o that_o power_n which_o he_o have_v since_o usurp_v that_o such_o multitude_n of_o grave_n and_o resolute_a bishop_n shall_v throw_v their_o mitre_n down_o at_o the_o pope_n foot_n and_o offer_v he_o in_o your_o literal_a sense_n to_o be_v sole_a bishop_n of_o the_o world_n that_o they_o will_v relinquish_v their_o power_n which_o they_o make_v no_o question_n they_o have_v from_o christ_n and_o take_v it_o up_o again_o at_o the_o pope_n hand_n but_o whether_o you_o can_v imagine_v this_o of_o so_o many_o bishop_n or_o no_o can_v you_o conceive_v that_o gregory_n shall_v think_v so_o of_o they_o and_o he_o must_v do_v it_o if_o he_o take_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n in_o your_o literal_a sense_n and_o yet_o this_o gregory_n say_v 36_o hoc_fw-la vniversitatis_fw-la nomen_fw-la oblatum_n est_fw-la that_o very_a name_n of_o universal_a bishop_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n sed_fw-la nullus_fw-la unquam_fw-la decessorum_fw-la meorum_fw-la hoc_fw-la tam_fw-la prophano_fw-la vocabulo_fw-la uti_fw-la consensit_fw-la nothing_o then_o can_v be_v more_o plain_a then_o that_o john_n take_v that_o which_o the_o pope_n refuse_v and_o he_o that_o can_v believe_v that_o this_o title_n shall_v ever_o be_v offer_v in_o this_o literal_a sense_n i_o despair_v without_o the_o help_n of_o physic_n to_o make_v he_o believe_v any_o thing_n 2._o this_o very_a title_n be_v not_o usurp_v whole_o by_o john_n himself_o but_o be_v give_v he_o in_o a_o council_n at_o constantinople_n this_o gregory_n confess_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o eulogius_n and_o anastasius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o alexandria_n ibid._n that_o about_o eight_o year_n before_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pelagius_n his_o predecessor_n john_n call_v a_o council_n at_o constantinople_n in_o which_o he_o endeavour_v to_o be_v call_v universal_a bishop_n so_o gregory_n 34._o but_o he_o confess_v elsewhere_o that_o he_o effect_v it_o and_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o pelagius_n himself_o write_v on_o that_o occasion_n that_o it_o be_v more_o than_o a_o mere_a endeavour_n and_o that_o they_o do_v consent_n to_o it_o else_o why_o do_v pelagius_n say_v quicquid_fw-la in_o vestro_fw-la conventiculo_fw-la statuistis_fw-la council_n whatever_o they_o have_v determine_v in_o their_o conventicle_n as_o on_o this_o account_n pelagius_n call_v it_o because_o it_o want_v his_o approbation_n and_o it_o be_v evident_a from_o gregory_n zealous_a writing_n to_o the_o other_o patriarch_n about_o it_o that_o they_o do_v not_o ●ook_v on_o themselves_o as_o so_o much_o concern_v about_o it_o now_o in_o this_o council_n which_o meet_v at_o constantinople_n 7._o which_o be_v call_v together_o in_o the_o case_n of_o gregory_n the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n all_o the_o patriarch_n either_o by_o themselves_o or_o substitute_n be_v present_a as_o evagrius_n tell_v we_o and_o not_o only_o they_o but_o several_a metropolitan_o too_o now_o if_o they_o have_v take_v this_o in_o the_o literal_a sense_n can_v you_o think_v they_o will_v have_v yield_v to_o it_o be_v not_o they_o much_o more_o concern_v about_o it_o then_o either_o pelagius_n or_o gregory_n be_v for_o they_o be_v near_o he_o and_o be_v sure_a to_o live_v under_o this_o usurp_a power_n of_o he_o and_o to_o smart_v by_o it_o if_o it_o be_v so_o great_a as_o you_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v but_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o their_o yield_n to_o it_o they_o look_v on_o it_o to_o be_v sure_a not_o in_o the_o literal_a sense_n and_o it_o may_v be_v as_o no_o more_o than_o the_o honorary_a title_n of_o ecumenical_a patriarch_n 7._o 3._o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o none_o of_o the_o successor_n of_o john_n and_o cyriacus_n do_v ever_o challenge_v this_o title_n in_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o it_o for_o we_o do_v not_o see_v that_o they_o quit_v it_o for_o all_o phocas_n give_v it_o to_o pope_n boniface_n since_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n in_o the_o greek_a canon-law_n sisinnius_n german_n constantine_n alexius_n and_o other_o be_v call_v ecumenical_a patriarch_n and_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o pelagius_n and_o gregory_n that_o be_v the_o title_n which_o john_n have_v then_o give_v he_o ibid._n si_fw-mi summus_fw-la patriarcha_fw-la vniversalis_fw-la dicitur_fw-la patriarcharum_fw-la nomen_fw-la caeteris_fw-la denegatur_fw-la say_v pelagius_n si_fw-mi enim_fw-la hoc_fw-la dici_fw-la licentèr_fw-la permittitur_fw-la honour_n patriarcharum_fw-la omnium_fw-la negatur_fw-la say_v gregory_n from_o which_o word_n i_o think_v it_o most_o probable_a that_o the_o main_a ambition_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v not_o mere_o that_o they_o will_v be_v call_v ecumenical_a patriarch_n but_o that_o title_n shall_v proper_o belong_v to_o they_o as_o exclude_v other_o from_o it_o which_o be_v it_o that_o touch_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o quick_a because_o than_o constantinople_n flourish_v as_o much_o as_o rome_n decay_v by_o the_o oppression_n of_o the_o lombard_n and_o gregory_n complain_v of_o this_o to_o constantia_n the_o empress_n that_o for_o seven_o and_o twenty_o year_n together_o they_o have_v live_v in_o rome_n 34._o inter_fw-la longobardorum_fw-la gladios_fw-la among_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o lombard_n and_o this_o make_v they_o so_o jealous_a that_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v be_v then_o sink_v and_o therefore_o they_o stickle_v so_o much_o against_o this_o title_n and_o draw_v all_o the_o invididious_a consequence_n from_o it_o possible_a the_o better_a to_o set_v the_o other_o patriarch_n against_o it_o and_o because_o that_o will_v not_o extend_v far_o beyond_o the_o patriarch_n themselves_o they_o pretend_v likewise_o that_o this_o be_v to_o make_v himself_o universal_a bishop_n but_o not_o certain_o in_o your_o literal_a sense_n for_o then_o gregory_n will_v have_v object_v some_o action_n consequent_a upon_o this_o title_n in_o deprive_v bishop_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n and_o displace_v some_o and_o put_v in_o other_o at_o his_o pleasure_n which_o you_o say_v be_v the_o natural_a effect_n of_o this_o literal_a sense_n of_o universal_a bishop_n but_o we_o read_v of_o nothing_o of_o this_o nature_n do_v either_o by_o john_n or_o cyriacus_n they_o act_v no_o more_o than_o they_o do_v only_o enjoy_v a_o high_a title_n and_o this_o be_v prove_v further_o 4._o by_o the_o carriage_n of_o the_o emperor_n mauricius_n in_o this_o business_n gregory_n write_v a_o pitiful_a moan_a letter_n to_o he_o about_o it_o and_o use_v all_o the_o rhetoric_n he_o have_v to_o persuade_v the_o emperor_n that_o he_o will_v either_o flectere_fw-la or_o coercere_fw-la incline_v or_o force_v he_o to_o lay_v aside_o that_o arrogant_a title_n but_o for_o all_o this_o it_o appear_v by_o gregory_n letter_n to_o the_o empress_n that_o the_o
but_o all_o this_o proceed_v from_o want_n of_o understand_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n for_o excommunication_n do_v not_o imply_v any_o such_o authoritative_a act_n of_o throw_v man_n out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o only_o a_o declare_v that_o they_o will_v not_o admit_v such_o person_n to_o communion_n with_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o may_v be_v do_v by_o equal_n to_o equal_n and_o sometime_o by_o inferior_n to_o superior_n in_o equal_v it_o be_v apparent_a by_o johannes_n antiochenus_fw-la in_o the_o ephesine_fw-la council_n excommunicate_v cyril_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o i_o suppose_v you_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v it_o may_v be_v do_v by_o inferior_n if_o we_o can_v produce_v any_o example_n of_o pope_n be_v excommunicate_v and_o what_o say_v you_o then_o to_o the_o african_a bishop_n excommunicate_v pope_n vigilius_n as_o victor_n tununensis_n a_o african_a bishop_n himself_o relate_v it_o 10._o will_v you_o say_v now_o that_o victor_n excommunicate_v the_o asian_a church_n argue_v his_o authority_n over_o they_o when_o another_o victor_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o african_a bishop_n solemn_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n himself_o and_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n may_v as_o well_o excommunicate_a the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n as_o these_o african_n excommunicate_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n what_o say_v you_o to_o the_o expunge_v the_o name_n of_o felix_n bishop_n of_o rome_n out_o of_o the_o diptych_n of_o the_o church_n by_o acacius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n what_o say_v you_o to_o hilary_n anathema_n against_o pope_n liberius_n if_o these_o excommunication_n do_v not_o argue_v just_a power_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o person_n excommunicate_v neither_o can_v pope_n victor_n do_v it_o for_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n that_o excommunication_n argue_v no_o such_o superiority_n in_o the_o person_n who_o do_v it_o but_o all_o the_o force_n of_o it_o lay_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n for_o by_o whosoever_o the_o sentence_n be_v pronounce_v if_o all_o other_o church_n observe_v it_o as_o most_o common_o they_o do_v while_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n continue_v than_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n if_o not_o than_o it_o be_v only_o the_o particular_a declaration_n of_o those_o person_n or_o church_n who_o do_v it_o and_o in_o this_o case_n the_o validity_n of_o the_o pope_n excommunication_n of_o the_o asian_a bishop_n depend_v upon_o the_o acceptance_n of_o it_o by_o other_o church_n which_o most_o consent_v to_o it_o he_o can_v not_o throw_v they_o out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o only_o declare_v that_o if_o they_o come_v to_o rome_n he_o will_v not_o admit_v they_o to_o communion_n with_o he_o and_o therefore_o ruffinus_n well_o render_v that_o place_n in_o eusebius_n out_o of_o irenaeus_n his_o epistle_n to_o victor_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o these_o word_n nunquam_fw-la tamen_fw-la ob_fw-la hoc_fw-la repulsi_fw-la sunt_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la societate_fw-la aut_fw-la venientes_fw-la ab_fw-la illis_fw-la partibus_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la suscepti_fw-la so_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v as_o well_o signify_v not_o to_o receive_v as_o to_o cast_v out_o for_o the_o church_n not_o receive_v be_v she_o cast_v out_o thus_o i_o hope_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o his_o lordship_n have_v receive_v no_o injury_n by_o these_o light_a skirmish_n we_o now_o follow_v you_o into_o hot_a service_n for_o you_o say_v he_o venture_v at_o last_o to_o grapple_v with_o the_o authority_n itself_o 12._o 201._o allege_v by_o a._n c._n out_o of_o st._n irenaeus_n where_o in_o the_o first_o place_n you_o wink_v and_o strike_v and_o let_v your_o blow_n fall_v beside_o he_o for_o fear_v he_o shall_v return_v they_o or_o some_o one_o for_o he_o you_o quarrel_n with_o his_o translation_n of_o the_o authority_n cite_v by_o he_o but_o that_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o quarrel_n may_v be_v understand_v we_o must_v first_o inquire_v what_o his_o lordship_n have_v to_o say_v for_o himself_o the_o place_n of_o irenaeus_n be_v to_o this_o church_n he_o speak_v of_o rome_n propter_fw-la potentiorem_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la for_o the_o more_o powerful_a principality_n of_o it_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o every_o church_n that_o be_v the_o faithful_a undique_fw-la round_o about_o 3._o shall_v have_v recourse_n now_o for_o this_o his_o lordship_n say_v there_o be_v very_o great_a reason_n in_o irenaeus_n his_o time_n that_o upon_o any_o difference_n arise_v in_o the_o faith_n omnes_fw-la undique_fw-la fideles_fw-la all_o the_o faithful_a or_o if_o you_o will_v all_o the_o church_n round_o about_o shall_v have_v recourse_n that_o be_v resort_v to_o rome_n be_v the_o imperial_a city_n and_o so_o a_o church_n of_o more_o powerful_a principality_n than_o any_o other_o at_o that_o time_n in_o those_o part_n of_o the_o world_n but_o this_o his_o lordship_n say_v will_v not_o exalt_v rome_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a here_o your_o blood_n rise_v and_o you_o begin_v a_o most_o furious_a encounter_n with_o his_o lordship_n for_o translate_n undique_fw-la round_o about_o as_o if_o say_v you_o st._n irenaeus_n speak_v only_o of_o those_o neighbour_a church_n round_o about_o rome_n and_o not_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n whereas_o undique_fw-la as_o natural_o signify_v every_o where_o and_o from_o all_o part_n witness_n thomas_n thomasius_n where_o the_o word_n undique_fw-la be_v thus_o english_v from_o all_o part_n place_n and_o corner_n every_o where_o can_v you_o blame_v i_o now_o if_o i_o seek_v for_o a_o retreat_n into_o some_o strong-hold_a or_o if_o you_o will_v some_o more_o powerful_a principality_n when_o i_o see_v so_o dreadful_a a_o charge_n begin_v with_o thomas_n thomasius_n in_o the_o front_n you_o have_v rout_v we_o once_o before_o with_o rider_n and_o other_o english_a lexicon_n but_o it_o seem_v rider_n have_v do_v service_n enough_o that_o time_n now_o that_o venerable_a person_n thomas_n thomasius_n must_v be_v upon_o duty_n and_o do_v his_o share_n for_o the_o catholic_n cause_n you_o somewhere_o complain_v how_o much_o catholic_n be_v straighten_a for_o want_v of_o book_n will_v any_o one_o believe_v you_o that_o find_v you_o so_o well_o store_v with_o thomas_n thomasius_n rider_n and_o other_o english_a lexicon_n you_o will_v sure_o give_v we_o some_o cause_n of_o suspicion_n that_o there_o be_v some_o jesuit_n school_v teach_v in_o england_n and_o that_o you_o be_v the_o learned_a master_n of_o it_o by_o your_o be_v so_o conversant_a in_o these_o worthy_a author_n but_o although_o the_o authority_n of_o th._n thomasius_n signify_v very_o little_a with_o we_o yet_o that_o of_o the_o greek_a lexicon_n may_v do_v much_o more_o if_o we_o have_v the_o original_a greek_a of_o irenaeus_n instead_o of_o his_o barbarous_a latin_a interpreter_n for_o now_o it_o be_v uncertain_a what_o word_n irenaeus_n use_v and_o so_o it_o be_v but_o a_o very_a uncertain_a conjecture_n which_o can_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o signification_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unless_o we_o know_v which_o of_o they_o be_v the_o genuine_a word_n in_o the_o greek_a of_o irenaeus_n but_o you_o say_v all_o of_o they_o undeniable_o signify_v from_o all_o part_n universal_o and_o that_o because_o they_o be_v render_v by_o the_o word_n undique_fw-la so_o that_o this_o will_v make_v a_o excellent_a proof_n undique_fw-la must_v signify_v from_o all_o part_n because_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v signify_v so_o in_o greek_a and_o that_o these_o do_v undeniable_o signify_v so_o much_o appear_v because_o they_o be_v render_v by_o undique_fw-la and_o i_o grant_v they_o be_v so_o for_o in_o the_o old_a glossary_a which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o cyril_n undique_fw-la be_v render_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o ●ully_o than_o who_o we_o can_v possible_o desire_v a_o better_a author_n in_o this_o case_n render_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o undique_fw-la for_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr finibus_fw-la 55._o he_o translate_v that_o of_o epicurus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o undique_fw-la complerentur_fw-la voluptatibus_fw-la and_o so_o he_o render_v that_o passage_n in_o plato_n timaeus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o undique_fw-la aequabilem_fw-la although_o as_o hen._n stephanus_n note_n that_o be_v rather_o the_o signification_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d then_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o still_o there_o be_v some_o difference_n between_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o greek_a author_n note_n ex_fw-la omni_fw-la parte_fw-la terrae_fw-la but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d only_a ex_fw-la quâvis_fw-la parte_fw-la so_o that_o
to_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o have_v be_v most_o proper_a for_o he_o if_o head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o to_o the_o disperse_a jew_n in_o some_o particular_a province_n can_v any_o one_o then_o imagine_v he_o shall_v be_v monarch_n of_o the_o church_n and_o no_o act_n of_o he_o as_o such_o record_v at_o all_o of_o he_o but_o carry_v himself_o with_o all_o humility_n not_o fix_v himself_o as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o any_o chair_n but_o go_v up_o and_o down_o from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o promote_a the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n to_o conclude_v all_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o conceive_v there_o shall_v be_v a_o monarch_n appoint_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o reckon_v up_o those_o office_n which_o christ_n have_v set_v in_o the_o church_n speak_v not_o one_o word_n of_o he_o he_o mention_n apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n but_o the_o chief_a of_o all_o be_v omit_v and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v commit_v 12._o and_o in_o who_o authority_n the_o welfare_n peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v secure_v these_o thing_n to_o i_o seem_v so_o incredible_a that_o till_o you_o have_v satisfy_v my_o mind_n in_o these_o question_n i_o must_v needs_o judge_v this_o pretend_a monarchy_n in_o the_o church_n to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a figment_n ever_o be_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o thus_o i_o have_v at_o large_a consider_v your_o argument_n from_o reason_n why_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o monarchy_n in_o the_o church_n which_o i_o have_v the_o rather_o do_v because_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a thing_n in_o dispute_n between_o we_o and_o because_o the_o most_o plausible_a argument_n bring_v for_o it_o be_v the_o necessity_n of_o it_o in_o order_n to_o the_o church_n peace_n which_o monarchy_n be_v the_o best_a of_o government_n will_v the_o most_o tend_v to_o promote_v to_o return_v now_o to_o his_o lordship_n 11._o he_o bring_v a_o evidence_n out_o of_o antiquity_n against_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o any_o such_o monarchy_n in_o the_o church_n from_o the_o literae_fw-la communicatoriae_fw-la which_o certify_v from_o one_o great_a patriarch_n to_o another_o 201._o who_o be_v fit_a or_o unfit_a to_o be_v admit_v to_o their_o communion_n upon_o any_o occasion_n of_o repair_v from_o one_o see_v to_o another_o and_o these_o be_v send_v mutual_o and_o as_o free_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n from_o rome_n to_o the_o other_o patriarch_n as_o from_o they_o to_o it_o out_o of_o which_o say_v his_o lordship_n i_o think_v this_o will_v follow_v most_o direct_o that_o the_o church-government_n than_o be_v aristocratical_a for_o have_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v then_o account_v sole_a monarch_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v put_v into_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o be_v now_o by_o bellarmin_n all_o these_o communicatory_a letter_n shall_v have_v be_v direct_v from_o he_o to_o the_o rest_n as_o who_o admittance_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o rule_n for_o all_o to_o communicate_v but_o not_o from_o other_o to_o he_o at_o least_o not_o in_o that_o even_o equal_a brotherly_a way_n as_o now_o they_o appear_v to_o be_v write_v for_o it_o be_v no_o way_n probable_a the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o even_o then_o seek_v their_o own_o greatness_n too_o much_o will_v have_v submit_v to_o the_o other_o patriarch_n voluntary_o have_v not_o the_o very_a course_n of_o the_o church_n put_v it_o upon_o they_o 220._o to_o this_o you_o answer_v that_o these_o literae_fw-la communicatoriae_fw-la do_v rather_o prove_v our_o assertion_n be_v ordain_v by_o sixtus_n 1_o in_o favour_n of_o such_o bishop_n as_o be_v call_v to_o rome_n or_o otherwise_o force_v to_o repair_v thither_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v without_o scruple_n be_v receive_v into_o their_o own_o diocese_n at_o their_o return_n have_v also_o decree_v that_o without_o such_o letter_n communicatory_a none_o in_o such_o case_n shall_v be_v admit_v but_o that_o these_o letter_n shall_v be_v send_v from_o other_o bishop_n to_o rome_n in_o such_o a_o even_o equal_a and_o brotherly_a way_n you_o say_v be_v one_o of_o his_o lordship_n chimaera_n but_o this_o difference_n or_o inequality_n you_o pretend_v to_o be_v in_o they_o that_o those_o to_o the_o pope_n be_v mere_o testimonial_a those_o from_o he_o be_v mandatory_a witness_n say_v you_o the_o case_n of_o st._n athanasius_n and_o other_o bishop_n restore_v by_o the_o pope_n communicatory_a letter_n but_o suppose_v they_o equal_a you_o say_v it_o only_o show_v the_o pope_n humility_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v no_o prejudice_n to_o his_o just_a authority_n and_o his_o right_n and_o power_n to_o do_v otherwise_o if_o he_o see_v cause_n but_o all_o this_o depend_v upon_o a_o mere_a fiction_n viz._n that_o these_o communicatory_a letter_n be_v ordain_v by_o sixtus_n 1_o in_o favour_n of_o such_o bishop_n as_o be_v call_v to_o rome_n than_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o improbable_a but_o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o chimaera_n of_o your_o own_o brain_n 74._o for_o you_o follow_v baronius_n in_o it_o for_o which_o he_o produce_v no_o other_o evidence_n but_o the_o author_n of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o binius_fw-la add_v that_o which_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o first_o ground_n of_o it_o which_o be_v the_o second_o decretal_a epistle_n of_o sixtus_n 1_o in_o which_o that_o decree_n be_v extant_a but_o whosoever_o consider_v the_o notorious_a forgery_n of_o those_o decretal_a epistle_n as_o will_v be_v more_o manifest_v where_o you_o contend_v for_o they_o on_o which_o account_n they_o be_v slight_v by_o card._n perron_n 5.8_o and_o in_o many_o place_n by_o baronius_n himself_o will_v find_v little_a cause_n to_o triumph_v in_o this_o epistle_n of_o sixtus_n 1_o and_o whoever_o reflect_v on_o the_o state_n of_o those_o time_n in_o which_o sixtus_n live_v will_v find_v it_o improbable_a enough_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v take_v to_o himself_o so_o much_o authority_n to_o summon_v bishop_n to_o he_o and_o to_o order_v that_o none_o shall_v be_v admit_v without_o communicatory_a letter_n from_o he_o it_o be_v not_o here_o a_o place_n to_o inquire_v into_o the_o several_a sort_n of_o those_o letter_n which_o pass_v among_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n whether_o the_o canonical_a pacifical_a ecclesiastical_a and_o communicatory_a be_v all_o one_o and_o what_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o the_o communicatory_a letter_n grant_v to_o traveller_n in_o order_n to_o their_o communion_n with_o foreign_a church_n and_o those_o letter_n which_o be_v send_v from_o one_o patriarch_n to_o another_o but_o this_o be_v sufficient_o evident_a that_o those_o letter_n which_o be_v the_o tessera_fw-la hospitalitatis_fw-la as_o tertullian_n call_v it_o the_o passport_n for_o communion_n in_o foreign_a church_n have_v no_o more_o respect_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n than_o to_o any_o other_o catholic_n bishop_n therefore_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n pass_v two_o canon_n concern_v they_o one_o 8._o that_o no_o traveller_n shall_v be_v receive_v without_o they_o another_o that_o none_o but_o bishop_n shall_v give_v they_o and_o that_o all_o bishop_n do_v equal_o grant_v they_o to_o all_o place_n 163._o appear_v by_o that_o passage_n in_o st._n austin_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o eusebius_n and_o the_o other_o donatist_n relate_v the_o conference_n he_o have_v with_o fortunius_n a_o bishop_n of_o that_o party_n wherein_o st._n austin_n ask_v he_o whether_o he_o can_v give_v communicatory_a letter_n whither_o he_o please_v for_o by_o that_o mean_v it_o may_v be_v easy_o determine_v whether_o he_o have_v communion_n with_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n or_o no._n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o any_o catholic_n bishop_n may_v without_o any_o respect_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n grant_v communicatory_a letter_n to_o all_o foreign_a church_n and_o the_o enjoy_n of_o that_o communion_n which_o be_v consequent_a upon_o these_o letter_n be_v all_o that_o optatus_n mean_v in_o that_o know_a saying_n of_o he_o that_o they_o have_v communion_n with_o siricius_n at_o rome_n commercio_fw-la formatarum_fw-la 2_o by_o the_o use_n of_o these_o communicatory_a letter_n but_o beside_o these_o there_o be_v other_o letter_n which_o every_o patriarch_n send_v to_o the_o rest_n upon_o his_o first_o instalment_n which_o be_v call_v their_o synodical_a epistle_n and_o these_o contain_v the_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o the_o answer_n to_o they_o do_v denote_v their_o communion_n with_o they_o since_o therefore_o these_o be_v send_v to_o all_o the_o patriarch_n indifferent_o and_o not_o bare_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n there_o appear_v no_o difference_n at_o all_o in_o the_o letter_n send_v to_o or_o
all_o his_o council_n there_o be_v these_o express_a word_n jura_n honores_fw-la privilegia_fw-la 1563._o &_o authoritatem_fw-la romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la papae_fw-la &_o successorum_fw-la praedictorum_fw-la conservare_fw-la defendere_fw-la augere_fw-la &_o promovere_fw-la curabo_fw-la i_o will_v take_v care_n to_o preserve_v defend_v increase_n and_o promote_v the_o right_n honour_n privilege_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o of_o our_o lord_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o successor_n aforesaid_a but_o lest_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v full_a enough_o there_o follow_v another_o clause_n nec_fw-la ero_fw-la in_o concilio_n in_o facto_fw-la seu_fw-la tractatu_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la contra_fw-la dominum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la vel_fw-la romanam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la aliqua_fw-la sinistra_fw-la sive_fw-la praejudicialia_fw-la personarum_fw-la juris_fw-la honoris_fw-la statûs_fw-la &_o potestatis_fw-la eorum_fw-la machinentur_fw-la et_fw-la si_fw-la talia_fw-la à_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la tractari_fw-la cognovero_fw-la aut_fw-la procurari_fw-la impediam_fw-la hoc_fw-la pro_fw-la posse_fw-la &_o quantocyus_fw-la potero_fw-la commodè_fw-la significabo_fw-la eidem_fw-la domino_fw-la nostro_fw-la vel_fw-la alteri_fw-la per_fw-la quem_fw-la ad_fw-la ipsius_fw-la notitiam_fw-la possit_fw-la pervenire_fw-la i_o will_v not_o be_v in_o any_o council_n action_n or_o debate_n in_o which_o they_o shall_v plot_v or_o contrive_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o pope_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o of_o any_o person_n right_a honour_n state_n or_o power_n belong_v to_o they_o be_v not_o this_o now_o a_o fit_a oath_n to_o send_v bishop_n to_o a_o free_a council_n with_o where_o the_o main_a thing_n to_o have_v be_v debate_v have_v be_v the_o usurp_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o that_o can_v believe_v a_o council_n make_v up_o of_o such_o person_n who_o judge_v this_o oath_n lawful_a to_o be_v free_a may_v think_v those_o man_n free_a to_o rebel_v against_o their_o sovereign_n who_o have_v but_o just_a take_v a_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o he_o not_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v any_o right_a or_o power_n to_o impose_v it_o or_o that_o the_o oath_n be_v in_o itself_o lawful_a but_o that_o those_o who_o judge_v both_o these_o thing_n true_a can_v not_o possible_o be_v more_o oblige_v not_o to_o act_v in_o any_o measure_n against_o the_o pope_n than_o they_o be_v and_o therefore_o the_o pope_n know_v what_o he_o do_v when_o he_o utter_o deny_v to_o absolve_v the_o bishop_n of_o this_o oath_n which_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n press_v he_o to_o as_o necessary_a in_o order_n to_o the_o freedom_n of_o the_o council_n no_o say_v he_o i_o do_v not_o mean_v to_o have_v my_o hand_n bind_v up_o so_o he_o know_v well_o enough_o how_o much_o his_o interest_n lie_v at_o stake_n if_o the_o bishop_n be_v release_v of_o this_o oath_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o hold_v they_o fast_o enough_o to_o himself_o by_o it_o what_o restriction_n or_o limitation_n can_v you_o now_o find_v out_o in_o this_o oath_n whereby_o these_o bishop_n may_v free_o debate_v the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n they_o that_o swear_v not_o to_o be_v in_o any_o council_n or_o debate_n against_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o like_a to_o make_v any_o free_a council_n about_o the_o matter_n then_o in_o dispute_n and_o do_v you_o think_v now_o the_o protestant_n have_v no_o cause_n to_o except_v against_o this_o council_n where_o all_o the_o bishop_n be_v swear_v beforehand_o to_o maintain_v and_o defend_v that_o which_o they_o most_o complain_v of_o and_o be_v there_o nothing_o else_o but_o this_o oath_n so_o unheard_a of_o a_o thing_n in_o all_o ancient_a council_n so_o contrary_a to_o the_o end_n of_o a_o free_a council_n this_o be_v enough_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o ever_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o a_o council_n as_o that_o of_o trent_n be_v and_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o all_o neither_o for_o his_o lordship_n add_v that_o the_o pope_n himself_o to_o show_v his_o charity_n have_v declare_v and_o pronounce_v the_o appellant_n heretic_n before_o they_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o council_n i_o hope_v say_v he_o a_o assembly_n of_o enemy_n be_v no_o lawful_a council_n and_o i_o think_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o such_o a_o one_o be_v omni_fw-la jure_fw-la nulla_fw-la and_o carry_v their_o nullity_n with_o they_o through_o all_o law_n all_o the_o answer_v you_o give_v to_o this_o ibid._n be_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v nothing_o therein_o but_o in_o pursuance_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n which_o require_v he_o so_o to_o do_v and_o of_o the_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n which_o have_v already_o condemn_v their_o opinion_n for_o heresy_n you_o mend_v the_o matter_n well_o for_o it_o seem_v the_o pope_n not_o only_o do_v so_o but_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v so_o for_o shame_v than_o never_o talk_v of_o a_o free_a and_o general_a council_n to_o debate_v those_o thing_n which_o you_o say_v be_v already_o condemn_v for_o heresy_n by_o general_a council_n one_o may_v now_o see_v what_o the_o safeconduct_a have_v be_v for_o the_o protestant_n if_o they_o have_v come_v to_o trent_n for_o it_o seem_v they_o be_v condemn_v for_o heretic_n before_o they_o come_v there_o and_o nothing_o then_o be_v want_v but_o execution_n but_o if_o the_o protestant_n opinion_n be_v condemn_v for_o heresy_n before_o by_o general_a council_n why_o be_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n at_o all_o summon_v why_o be_v the_o world_n so_o deceive_v with_o the_o promise_n of_o a_o free_a and_o general_a council_n why_o do_v they_o proceed_v to_o make_v new_a decree_n in_o these_o matter_n in_o what_o ancient_a general_n council_n will_v you_o show_v we_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n decree_v that_o those_o who_o hold_v the_o contrary_n shall_v be_v account_v heretic_n speak_v they_o out_o that_o we_o may_v find_v ourselves_o therein_o condemn_v give_v we_o a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o tridentine_a article_n and_o name_v we_o the_o general_a council_n in_o which_o they_o be_v decree_v as_o they_o be_v there_o but_o this_o be_v not_o a_o work_n for_o you_o to_o meddle_v in_o however_o what_o folly_n and_o madness_n will_v it_o be_v to_o account_v that_o a_o free_a council_n in_o which_o the_o thing_n to_o be_v debate_v be_v look_v on_o as_o condemn_a heresy_n already_o and_o no_o liberty_n allow_v to_o any_o person_n to_o debate_v they_o the_o last_o exception_n you_o say_v of_o his_o lordship_n be_v against_o the_o small_a number_n of_o bishop_n present_a at_o the_o tridentine_a council_n 11._o and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n he_o mention_n the_o greek_n who_o he_o take_v say_v you_o to_o have_v be_v unjust_o exclude_v ibid._n to_o this_o you_o say_v 1._o the_o pope_n call_v all_o who_o have_v right_a to_o come_v you_o shall_v say_v all_o who_o he_o will_v judge_v to_o have_v right_a to_o come_v 2._o the_o greek_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o notorious_a schism_n have_v exclude_v themselves_o and_o may_v not_o the_o greek_n if_o they_o be_v in_o condition_n every_o whit_n as_o well_o hold_v a_o general_n council_n among_o themselves_o and_o say_v the_o latin_n have_v exclude_v themselves_o by_o their_o notorious_a schism_n you_o say_v it_o be_v confess_v that_o no_o know_a heretic_n or_o schismatic_a have_v right_a to_o sit_v in_o council_n but_o still_o you_o make_v your_o own_o self_n judge_n who_o be_v orthodox_n and_o who_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n and_o may_v not_o the_o greek_n again_o say_v the_o very_a same_o of_o you_o and_o for_o all_o that_o i_o know_v with_o much_o more_o truth_n and_o reason_n it_o be_v then_o very_o like_a to_o be_v a_o genegeneral_n council_n when_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o party_n must_v sit_v as_o judge_n who_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v and_o who_o not_o may_v not_o the_o donatist_n in_o africa_n have_v call_v their_o council_n of_o seventy_o bishop_n a_o ecumenical_a council_n upon_o the_o same_o ground_n because_o they_o account_v none_o to_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n but_o such_o as_o be_v of_o their_o own_o party_n and_o if_o they_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n they_o can_v have_v no_o right_a to_o sit_v in_o council_n it_o seem_v the_o more_o uncharitable_a you_o be_v the_o free_a your_o council_n be_v for_o the_o pope_n may_v by_o pronounce_v man_n heretic_n and_o schismatic_n keep_v they_o from_o come_v to_o council_n and_o appear_v against_o he_o there_o and_o the_o council_n be_v never_o the_o less_o general_n for_o all_o that_o if_o the_o greek_n be_v not_o call_v to_o the_o council_n they_o may_v thank_v themselves_o they_o be_v notorious_a schismatic_n and_o if_o we_o believe_v you_o heretic_n too_o if_o the_o protestant_n be_v not_o admit_v it_o be_v their_o own_o fault_n they_o be_v condemn_v
heretic_n if_o none_o appear_v from_o any_o other_o more_o remote_a church_n still_o the_o same_o plea_n will_v serve_v to_o exclude_v they_o all_o for_o my_o part_n i_o much_o approve_v the_o say_n of_o eugenius_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o paucity_n of_o bishop_n for_o a_o general_n council_n that_o where_o he_o and_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v present_a there_o be_v a_o general_a council_n though_o there_o be_v no_o more_o and_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o may_v have_v save_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o money_n in_o his_o purse_n with_o which_o he_o maintain_v his_o bishop_n errant_a at_o that_o council_n have_v he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n but_o the_o scene_n of_o thing_n be_v alter_v in_o europe_n there_o be_v such_o clamour_n make_v for_o a_o general_n council_n that_o something_o must_v be_v do_v to_o satisfy_v the_o world_n and_o as_o long_o as_o the_o pope_n know_v how_o to_o manage_v the_o business_n there_o will_v be_v nothing_o can_v breed_v so_o great_a danger_n in_o it_o he_o therefore_o bare_o summon_v a_o council_n without_o acquaint_v any_o of_o the_o eastern_a patriarch_n with_o it_o as_o be_v the_o custom_n in_o the_o ancient_a general_n council_n among_o who_o it_o be_v debate_v after_o the_o emperor_n indict_v of_o it_o these_o summon_v by_o the_o emperor_n order_n their_o metropolitan_n the_o metropolitan_o the_o bishop_n the_o bishop_n they_o agree_v among_o themselves_o who_o shall_v go_v to_o the_o council_n who_o on_o that_o account_n may_v be_v say_v to_o represent_v those_o church_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v what_o be_v there_o like_o this_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n what_o message_n be_v there_o send_v to_o the_o eastern_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n antioch_n and_o alexanandria_n what_o metropolitan_n come_v thence_o what_o bishop_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o those_o church_n and_o if_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o all_o this_o what_o boldness_n be_v it_o to_o call_v this_o a_o general_n council_n just_o by_o the_o same_o figure_n that_o your_o church_n be_v call_v the_o catholic_n church_n which_o be_v by_o a_o insufferable_a catachresis_fw-la and_o must_v six_o fugitive_a greek-bishop_n give_v vote_n here_o for_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o two_o fugitive_a english-bishop_n for_o all_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o do_v not_o then_o at_o all_o wonder_n how_o easy_o this_o may_v be_v a_o general_n council_n though_o there_o be_v so_o very_a few_o person_n in_o most_o of_o the_o session_n of_o it_o but_o you_o say_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o particular_a send_n from_o the_o greek_n as_o the_o case_n then_o stand_v and_o still_o continue_v 234._o it_o be_v sufficient_a they_o be_v call_v by_o the_o pope_n sufficient_a indeed_o for_o your_o purpose_n but_o not_o at_o all_o for_o a_o general_n council_n for_o if_o the_o greek_a church_n have_v be_v in_o condition_n to_o have_v send_v a_o equal_a number_n of_o eastern_a to_o western_a bishop_n the_o pope_n will_v rather_o have_v lose_v all_o than_o stand_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o a_o council_n and_o this_o you_o know_v well_o enough_o for_o all_o your_o say_n that_o the_o greek_a church_n condemn_v the_o protestant_n you_o dread_v the_o greek_a church_n meet_v you_o in_o a_o free_a general_n council_n and_o therefore_o to_o prevent_v that_o they_o must_v be_v call_v schismatic_n and_o exclude_v as_o such_o though_o you_o will_v never_o permit_v the_o debate_n of_o the_o schism_n in_o a_o free_a council_n as_o the_o case_n then_o stand_v and_o still_o continue_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o send_v and_o why_o so_o be_v it_o because_o those_o church_n be_v then_o under_o persecution_n and_o be_v still_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v come_v to_o a_o general_n council_n but_o all_o that_o thence_o follow_v be_v that_o as_o thing_n stand_v then_o and_o do_v still_o there_o can_v be_v no_o true_o general_n council_n and_o that_o be_v a_o just_a inference_n but_o i_o suppose_v you_o rather_o mean_v because_o those_o church_n be_v then_o in_o schism_n and_o be_v still_o which_o still_o discover_v what_o a_o wonderful_a good_a opinion_n you_o have_v of_o yourselves_o and_o how_o uncharitable_a you_o be_v to_o all_o other_o and_o so_o great_a be_v the_o excellency_n of_o your_o bishop_n that_o one_o of_o they_o may_v represent_v a_o whole_a nation_n and_o so_o about_o fifty_o will_v be_v more_o than_o sufficient_a for_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o therefore_o i_o rather_o wonder_v there_o be_v so_o many_o bishop_n at_o trent_n for_o if_o the_o pope_n please_v as_o he_o make_v patriarch_n primat_n and_o arch-bishop_n of_o such_o place_n where_o they_o never_o dare_v go_v which_o he_o know_v well_o enough_o it_o have_v be_v but_o appoint_v such_o to_o stand_v for_o such_o a_o nation_n and_o such_o for_o another_o and_o a_o small_a number_n may_v have_v serve_v turn_n without_o put_v any_o to_o the_o trouble_n of_o come_v from_o any_o foreign_a country_n at_o all_o for_o otherwise_o if_o we_o go_v about_o to_o examine_v the_o number_n of_o bishop_n by_o their_o proportion_n to_o the_o church_n they_o come_v from_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o general_a council_n we_o shall_v find_v a_o most_o pitiful_a account_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n for_o as_o his_o lordship_n say_v be_v it_o to_o be_v account_v a_o general_n council_n that_o in_o many_o session_n have_v scarce_o ten_o arch-bishop_n 12._o or_o forty_o or_o fifty_o bishop_n present_a in_o all_o the_o session_n under_o paul_n 3._o but_o two_o frenchman_n 215._o and_o sometime_o none_o as_o in_o the_o six_o under_z julius_z 3._o when_o henry_n 2._o of_o france_n protest_v against_o that_o council_n and_o from_o england_n but_o one_o or_o two_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n and_o those_o not_o send_v by_o authority_n and_o the_o french_a he_o say_v hold_v off_o till_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n be_v get_v to_o rome_n as_o for_o the_o spaniard_n they_o labour_v for_o many_o thing_n upon_o good_a ground_n but_o be_v most_o unworthy_o overbear_v now_o to_o this_o you_o have_v a_o double_a answer_n ready_a 1._o that_o mission_n or_o deputation_n be_v not_o of_o absolute_a necessity_n ibid._n but_o only_o of_o canonical_a provision_n when_o time_n or_o state_n of_o the_o country_n whence_o bishop_n be_v send_v will_v permit_v in_o other_o case_n it_o suffice_v they_o be_v call_v by_o the_o pope_n 2._o for_o those_o who_o be_v absent_a the_o impediment_n be_v not_o on_o the_o council_n part_n and_o in_o the_o latter_a session_n wherein_o all_o that_o have_v be_v former_o desined_a by_o the_o council_n be_v the_o novo_fw-la confirm_v and_o ratify_v by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o prelate_n it_o be_v manifest_a the_o council_n be_v so_o full_a that_o in_o the_o number_n of_o bishop_n it_o exceed_v some_o of_o the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n i_o begin_v with_o your_o first_o answer_n which_o necessary_o imply_v that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v not_o so_o call_v by_o representation_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o by_o relation_n to_o the_o pope_n summons_n so_o that_o if_o the_o pope_n make_v a_o general_n summons_n that_o must_v be_v call_v a_o general_n council_n though_o none_o be_v present_a but_o such_o who_o the_o pope_n shall_v think_v fit_a to_o call_v thither_o but_o where_o do_v you_o find_v any_o such_o account_n of_o a_o general_n council_n in_o all_o antiquity_n i_o have_v give_v you_o instance_n already_o of_o general_n council_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n have_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o do_v with_o the_o summon_n of_o they_o nay_o all_o the_o four_o general_a council_n be_v call_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o not_o by_o the_o pope_n as_o any_o one_o may_v see_v that_o do_v not_o wilful_o blind_v himself_o the_o pope_n sometime_o do_v beseech_v and_o entreat_v the_o emperor_n to_o call_v a_o council_n but_o never_o presume_v to_o do_v it_o himself_o in_o those_o day_n and_o this_o be_v evident_a not_o only_o from_o the_o historian_n but_o from_o the_o authentic_a act_n of_o the_o council_n themselves_o and_o perron_n distinction_n of_o the_o temporal_a and_o spiritual_a call_n of_o council_n be_v as_o ill_o ground_v as_o the_o pope_n temporal_a and_o spiritual_a power_n there_o be_v no_o foundation_n at_o all_o in_o anquity_n nor_o any_o reason_n in_o the_o thing_n for_o two_o such_o several_a call_n the_o one_o by_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o other_o by_o the_o pope_n but_o this_o be_v a_o mere_a evasion_n the_o evidence_n be_v so_o clear_a as_o to_o the_o emperor_n call_v those_o council_n the_o nicene_n by_o constantine_n the_o constantinopolitan_a by_o theodosius_n the_o ephesine_n by_o the_o junior_n theodosius_n the_o chalcedonian_a
in_o antiquity_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o ground_n of_o the_o contest_v about_o this_o title_n between_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o constantinople_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n about_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n of_o the_o grammatical_a and_o metaphorical_a sense_n of_o this_o title_n many_o argument_n to_o prove_v it_o impossible_a that_o s._n gregory_n shall_v understand_v it_o in_o the_o grammatical_a sense_n the_o great_a absurdity_n consequent_a upon_o it_o s._n gregory_n reason_n prove_v to_o hold_v against_o that_o sense_n of_o it_o which_o be_v admit_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o irenaeus_n his_o opposition_n to_o victor_n victor_n excommunicate_v the_o asian_a bishop_n argue_v no_o authority_n he_o have_v over_o they_o what_o the_o more_o powerful_a principality_n in_o irenaeus_n be_v ruffinus_n his_o interpretation_n of_o the_o 6._o nicene_n canon_n vindicate_v the_o suburbicary_n church_n can_v be_v understand_v of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o roman_a empire_n the_o pope_n no_o infallible_a successor_n of_o s._n peter_n nor_o so_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v by_o epiphanius_n s._n peter_n have_v no_o supremacy_n of_o power_n over_o the_o apostle_n p._n 422._o chap._n vii_o the_o pope_n authority_n not_o prove_v from_o scripture_n or_o reason_n the_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o proof_n from_o scripture_n acknowledge_v by_o romanist_n themselves_o the_o impertinency_n of_o luke_n 22.32_o to_o that_o purpose_n no_o proof_n offer_v for_o it_o but_o the_o suspect_a testimony_n of_o pope_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n that_o no_o infallibility_n can_v thence_o come_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o s._n peter_n successor_n confess_v and_o prove_v by_o vigorius_n and_o mr._n white_n the_o weakness_n of_o the_o evasion_n of_o the_o pope_n err_v as_o a_o private_a doctor_n but_o not_o as_o pope_n acknowledge_v by_o they_o joh._n 21.15_o prove_v nothing_o towards_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n how_o far_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v own_v by_o the_o romanist_n over_o king_n c's_o begging_n of_o the_o question_n and_o tedious_a repetition_n pass_v over_o the_o argument_n from_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o live_a judge_n consider_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n not_o monarchical_a but_o aristocratical_a the_o inconvenience_n of_o monarchical_a government_n in_o the_o church_n manifest_v from_o reason_n no_o evidence_n that_o christ_n intend_v to_o institute_v such_o government_n in_o his_o church_n but_o much_o against_o it_o the_o communicatory_a letter_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n argue_v a_o aristocracy_n gerson_n testimony_n from_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr auferibilitate_fw-la papae_fw-la explain_v and_o vindicate_v s._n hieroms_n testimony_n full_a against_o a_o monarchy_n in_o the_o church_n the_o inconsistency_n of_o the_o pope_n monarchy_n with_o that_o of_o temporal_a prince_n the_o supremacy_n of_o prince_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n assert_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n as_o well_o as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n 451._o chap._n viii_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o illegality_n of_o it_o manifest_v first_o from_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o rule_n it_o proceed_v by_o different_z from_o that_o of_o the_o first_o general_n council_n and_o from_o the_o pope_n presidency_n in_o it_o the_o matter_n of_o right_o concern_v it_o discuss_v in_o what_o case_n superior_n may_v be_v except_v against_o as_o barty_n the_o pope_n just_o except_v against_o as_o a_o party_n and_o therefore_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v judge_n the_o necessity_n of_o a_o reformation_n in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n acknowledge_v by_o roman_a catholic_n the_o matter_n of_o fact_n inquire_v into_o as_o to_o the_o pope_n presidency_n in_o general_a council_n hosius_n do_v not_o preside_v in_o the_o nicene_n council_n as_o the_o pope_n legat._v the_o pope_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v in_o the_o second_o general_n council_n two_o council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n within_o two_o year_n these_o strange_o confound_v the_o mistake_n make_v evident_a s._n cyril_n not_o precedent_n in_o the_o three_o general_n council_n as_o the_o pope_n legat._v no_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o the_o pope_n presidency_n in_o follow_v council_n the_o justness_n of_o the_o exception_n against_o the_o place_n manifest_v and_o against_o the_o freedom_n of_o the_o council_n from_o the_o oath_n take_v by_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o form_n of_o that_o oath_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n protestant_n not_o condemn_v by_o general_a council_n the_o greek_n and_o other_o unjust_o exclude_v as_o schismatic_n the_o exception_n from_o the_o small_a number_n of_o bishop_n clear_v and_o vindicate_v a_o general_n council_n in_o antiquity_n not_o so_o call_v from_o the_o pope_n general_n summon_v in_o what_o sense_n a_o general_n council_n represent_v the_o whole_a church_n the_o vast_a difference_n between_o the_o proceed_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o that_o at_o trent_n the_o exception_n from_o the_o number_n of_o italian_a bishop_n justify_v how_o far_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o the_o patriarch_n hieremias_n may_v be_v say_v to_o condemn_v protestant_n with_o a_o account_n of_o the_o proceed_n between_o they_o p._n 475._o part_n iii_o of_o particular_a controversy_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n how_o far_o this_o tend_v to_o the_o end_a controversy_n two_o distinct_a question_n concern_v the_o infallibility_n and_o authority_n of_o general_n council_n the_o first_o enter_v upon_o with_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n of_o faith_n that_o general_a council_n be_v infallible_a nor_o that_o the_o particular_a decree_n of_o any_o of_o they_o be_v so_o which_o be_v large_o prove_v pighius_fw-la his_o argument_n against_o the_o divine_a institution_n of_o general_n council_n the_o place_n of_o scripture_n consider_v which_o be_v bring_v for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o that_o these_o can_v prove_v that_o general_a council_n be_v so_o matth._n 18.20_o act._n 15.28_o particular_o answer_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o high_a expression_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n no_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n as_o to_o their_o infallibility_n the_o place_n of_o st._n austin_n about_o the_o amendment_n of_o former_a general_n council_n by_o latter_a at_o large_a vindicate_v no_o other_o place_n in_o st._n austin_n prove_v they_o infallible_a but_o many_o to_o the_o contrary_n general_a council_n can_v be_v infallible_a in_o the_o conclusion_n if_o not_o in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o mean_n no_o such_o infallibility_n without_o as_o immediate_a a_o revelation_n as_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n have_v take_v infallibility_n not_o for_o a_o absolute_a unerring_a power_n but_o such_o as_o come_v by_o a_o promise_n of_o divine_a assistance_n preserve_v from_o error_n no_o obligation_n to_o internal_a assent_n but_o from_o immediate_a divine_a authority_n of_o the_o consistency_n of_o faith_n and_o reason_n in_o thing_n propound_v to_o be_v believe_v the_o suitableness_n of_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n to_o the_o romanist_n principle_n p._n 505._o chap._n ii_o of_o the_o use_n and_o authority_n of_o general_n council_n the_o deny_v the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n take_v not_o away_o their_o use_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o submission_n due_a to_o they_o by_o all_o particular_a person_n how_o far_o external_a obedience_n be_v require_v in_o case_n they_o err_v no_o violent_a opposition_n to_o he_o make_v against_o they_o rare_a inconvenience_n hinder_v not_o the_o effect_n of_o a_o just_a power_n it_o can_v rational_o be_v suppose_v that_o such_o general_a council_n as_o be_v here_o mean_v shall_v often_o or_o dangerous_o err_v the_o true_a notion_n of_o a_o general_n council_n explain_v the_o freedom_n requisite_a in_o the_o proceed_n of_o it_o the_o rule_n it_o must_v judge_v by_o great_a difference_n between_o external_a obedience_n and_o internal_a assent_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n this_o latter_a unite_v man_n in_o error_n not_o the_o former_a as_o great_a uncertainty_n suppose_v general_a council_n infallible_a as_o not_o not_o so_o great_a certainty_n requisite_a for_o submission_n as_o faith_n whether_o the_o romanist_n doctrine_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o council_n or_o we_o tend_v more_o to_o the_o church_n peace_n st._n austin_n explain_v the_o key_n according_a to_o he_o give_v to_o the_o church_n no_o unremediable_a inconvenience_n suppose_v a_o general_n council_n err_v but_o error_n in_o faith_n be_v so_o suppose_v they_o infallible_a when_o they_o be_v not_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o reverse_v the_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n the_o power_n of_o council_n not_o by_o divine_a institution_n the_o unreasonableness_n of_o make_v the_o infallibility_n of_o council_n depend_v on_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n no_o consent_n among_o the_o romanist_n about_o the_o subject_n of_o infallibility_n whether_o in_o pope_n or_o council_n no_o evidence_n from_o
by_o either_o of_o you_o that_o the_o greek_n may_v be_v excuse_v by_o ignorance_n before_o such_o declaration_n of_o your_o church_n concern_v the_o filioque_fw-la and_o not_o be_v excuse_v after_o through_o great_a ignorance_n of_o any_o such_o power_n in_o your_o church_n to_o declare_v such_o thing_n to_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o assertion_n not_o easy_a to_o be_v swallow_v by_o such_o as_o have_v any_o strength_n of_o logic_n or_o one_o drachm_n of_o theological_a reason_n or_o else_o it_o be_v a_o very_a strange_a thing_n you_o shall_v think_v it_o sufficient_a for_o the_o greek_n to_o know_v what_o your_o church_n have_v declare_v without_o a_o antecedent_n knowledge_n that_o your_o church_n have_v power_n to_o declare_v how_o much_o you_o answer_v at_o random_n appear_v by_o your_o answer_v aquinas_n his_o testimony_n instead_o of_o that_o of_o jodocus_n clictoveus_n as_o be_v plain_a enough_o in_o his_o lordship_n margin_n and_o you_o may_v have_v be_v easy_o satisfy_v that_o it_o be_v so_o if_o you_o have_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o look_v into_o either_o of_o they_o but_o the_o art_n of_o it_o be_v aquinas_n his_o testimony_n may_v be_v easy_o answer_v because_o he_o speak_v only_o by_o hear-say_n concern_v the_o opinion_n of_o some_o certain_a greek_n but_o clictoveus_n his_o be_v close_o to_o the_o purpose_n who_o plain_o confess_v that_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o ancient_a greek_n be_v more_o in_o word_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o explain_v the_o procession_n then_o in_o the_o thing_n itself_o this_o therefore_o you_o think_v fit_a to_o slide_v by_o and_o answer_n aquinas_n for_o he_o your_o answer_n to_o scotus_n depend_v on_o the_o former_a distinction_n of_o ancient_n and_o modern_a greek_n and_o therefore_o fall_v with_o it_o bellarmin_n answer_n concern_v damascen_n and_o your_o own_o after_o bonaventure_n of_o his_o non_fw-la dicimus_fw-la have_v be_v sufficient_o disprove_v already_o what_o tolet_n hold_v or_o the_o lutheran_n deny_v the_o word_n of_o neither_o be_v of_o either_o side_n produce_v deserve_v no_o further_o consideration_n you_o tell_v we_o his_o lordship_n argument_n depend_v upon_o this_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v be_v equal_a and_o consubstantial_a with_o the_o son_n 17._o though_o he_o proceed_v not_o from_o it_o ib._n which_o you_o say_v be_v a_o matter_n too_o deep_a for_o his_o lordship_n to_o wade_v into_o but_o any_o indifferent_a reader_n will_v think_v it_o have_v be_v your_o concernment_n to_o have_v show_v the_o contrary_a that_o thereby_o you_o may_v seem_v to_o make_v good_a so_o heavy_a a_o charge_n as_o that_o of_o heresy_n against_o the_o whole_a greek_a church_n for_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v be_v equal_a and_o consubstantial_a with_o the_o son_n if_o it_o proceed_v not_o from_o the_o son_n than_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o who_o deny_v this_o procession_n must_v deny_v that_o equality_n and_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o the_o son_n which_o you_o ought_v to_o prove_v to_o make_v good_a your_o charge_n of_o heresy_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v god_n by_o such_o argument_n as_o do_v not_o at_o all_o infer_v his_o procession_n from_o the_o son_n then_o his_o equality_n and_o consubstantiality_n do_v not_o depend_v upon_o that_o procession_n for_o i_o suppose_v you_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o essence_n in_o the_o person_n which_o make_v they_o equal_a and_o consubstantial_a but_o we_o may_v sufficient_o prove_v the_o spirit_n to_o be_v god_n by_o such_o argument_n as_o do_v not_o infer_v the_o procession_n from_o the_o son_n as_o i_o may_v easy_o make_v appear_v by_o all_o the_o argument_n insist_v on_o to_o that_o purpose_n but_o i_o only_o mention_v that_o which_o the_o second_o general_n council_n think_v most_o cogent_a to_o that_o purpose_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n be_v eternal_a procession_n from_o the_o father_n if_o that_o prove_v the_o spirit_n to_o be_v god_n than_o its_o equality_n with_o the_o son_n be_v prove_v without_o his_o procession_n from_o the_o son_n for_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o prove_v his_o procession_n from_o the_o father_n do_v imply_v procession_n from_o the_o son_n too_o because_o the_o procession_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v from_o the_o essence_n for_o then_o the_o spirit_n will_v proceed_v from_o itself_o but_o from_o the_o hypostasis_fw-la and_o therefore_o one_o can_v imply_v the_o concurrence_n of_o the_o other_o and_o since_o you_o pretend_v so_o much_o to_o understand_v these_o depth_n before_o you_o renew_v a_o charge_n of_o heresy_n against_o the_o greek_a church_n in_o this_o particular_a make_v use_n of_o your_o theological_a reason_n in_o give_v a_o intelligible_a answer_n to_o these_o question_n 1._o why_o the_o spirit_n may_v not_o be_v equal_a and_o consubstantial_a to_o the_o other_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n suppose_v his_o procession_n to_o be_v only_o from_o the_o father_n as_o the_o son_n to_o be_v equal_a and_o consubstantial_a with_o they_o when_o his_o generation_n be_v only_o from_o the_o father_n 2._o if_o the_o procession_n from_o the_o son_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v the_o spirit_n consubstantial_a with_o the_o son_n why_o be_v not_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n by_o the_o spirit_n necessary_a to_o make_v the_o son_n consubstantial_a with_o the_o spirit_n 3._o if_o the_o spirit_n do_v proceed_v from_o father_n and_o son_n as_o distinct_a hypostasis_n how_o he_o can_v proceed_v from_o these_o hypostasis_n as_o one_o principle_n by_o one_o common_a spiration_n without_o confound_v their_o personalty_n or_o else_o show_v how_o two_o distinct_a hypostasis_n always_o remain_v so_o can_v concur_v in_o the_o same_o numerical_a action_n ad_fw-la intra_fw-la 4._o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o necessity_n of_o believe_v this_o as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n why_o have_v not_o god_n think_v fit_a to_o reveal_v to_o we_o the_o distinct_a emanation_n of_o the_o son_n and_o spirit_n and_o wherein_o the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o the_o son_n may_v be_v conceive_v as_o distinct_a from_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o spirit_n when_o both_o equal_o agree_v in_o the_o same_o essence_n and_o neither_o of_o they_o express_v the_o personality_n of_o the_o father_n either_o i_o say_v undertake_v intelligible_o to_o resolve_v these_o thing_n or_o else_o surcease_v your_o charge_n of_o heresy_n against_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o upbraid_v not_o his_o lordship_n for_o not_o enter_v into_o these_o depth_n methinks_v their_o be_v confess_v to_o be_v depth_n on_o both_o side_n may_v teach_v you_o a_o little_a more_o modesty_n in_o handle_v they_o and_o much_o more_o charity_n to_o man_n who_o differ_v about_o they_o for_o you_o may_v see_v the_o greek_n want_v not_o great_a plausibleness_n of_o reason_n on_o their_o side_n as_o well_o as_o authority_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n plain_a for_o they_o but_o not_o so_o against_o they_o as_o long_o therefore_o as_o the_o greek_a church_n confess_v the_o divinity_n consubstantiality_n eternal_a procession_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n there_o must_v be_v something_o more_o in_o it_o then_o the_o bare_a denial_n of_o the_o procession_n from_o the_o son_n which_o must_v make_v you_o so_o eager_a in_o your_o charge_n of_o heresy_n against_o she_o the_o truth_n be_v there_o be_v something_o else_o in_o the_o matter_n by_o this_o article_n of_o filioque_fw-la the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v strike_v at_o and_o therefore_o if_o this_o be_v a_o heresy_n it_o must_v be_v on_o the_o account_n of_o deny_v the_o plenitude_n of_o her_o power_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o anselm_n and_o bonaventure_n ingenuous_o confess_v it_o and_o plead_v it_o on_o that_o account_n and_o therefore_o wise_a man_n be_v not_o apt_a to_o believe_v but_o that_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o be_v particular_o concern_v in_o this_o addition_n to_o the_o creed_n if_o the_o greek_n will_v have_v submit_v in_o all_o other_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o charge_n of_o heresy_n will_v soon_o be_v take_v off_o the_o file_n but_o as_o thing_n stand_v if_o she_o be_v not_o find_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n she_o may_v be_v find_v as_o catholic_n as_o rome_n and_o more_o too_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n for_o it_o she_o must_v be_v content_v to_o bear_v it_o for_o it_o be_v not_o consistent_a with_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o she_o shall_v be_v free_a from_o heresy_n schism_n etc._n etc._n but_o if_o she_o have_v no_o strong_a adversary_n to_o make_v good_a the_o charge_n than_o you_o she_o may_v satisfy_v herself_o that_o though_o the_o blow_n be_v rude_a yet_o they_o be_v give_v she_o by_o feeble_a hand_n for_o
but_o the_o greek_n say_v this_o answer_n be_v unsatisfactory_a on_o these_o account_n 1._o because_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o say_v that_o decree_n do_v not_o forbid_v the_o insert_v declaration_n into_o the_o creed_n 2._o that_o if_o it_o do_v not_o forbid_v that_o yet_o there_o be_v as_o little_a reason_n to_o say_v this_o be_v a_o mere_a declaration_n 1._o because_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o say_v that_o the_o council_n do_v not_o forbid_v the_o insert_v declaration_n into_o the_o creed_n for_o as_o bessarion_n well_o observe_v it_o never_o be_v lawful_a to_o add_v new_a and_o distinct_a article_n of_o faith_n from_o those_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n 626._o but_o the_o church_n only_o undertake_v the_o explication_n and_o declaration_n of_o the_o thing_n therein_o contain_v and_o this_o be_v only_o lawful_a therefore_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v full_a liberty_n of_o explain_v article_n of_o faith_n and_o use_v those_o explication_n as_o they_o judge_v most_o expedient_a and_o to_o place_v they_o where_o they_o think_v good_a so_o it_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n thence_o they_o may_v insert_v they_o into_o the_o creed_n or_o elsewhere_o but_o afterward_o i._n e._n after_o this_o decree_n of_o the_o ephesine_n council_n this_o liberty_n be_v partly_o take_v away_o and_o partly_o continue_v for_o it_o never_o be_v or_o will_v be_v unlawful_a to_o explain_v or_o declare_v article_n of_o faith_n but_o to_o insert_v those_o explication_n into_o the_o creed_n be_v now_o unlawful_a because_o forbid_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n for_o say_v he_o the_o father_n of_o the_o three_o council_n observe_v what_o great_a inconvenience_n have_v follow_v in_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o enlargement_n of_o creed_n and_o that_o no_o injury_n can_v at_o all_o come_v by_o the_o prohibition_n of_o any_o further_a addition_n to_o be_v insert_v for_o by_o that_o mean_v they_o shall_v only_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v no_o more_o than_o what_o those_o holy_a father_n believe_v and_o who_o dare_v charge_v their_o faith_n with_o imperfection_n and_o they_o do_v therefore_o wise_o forbid_v all_o other_o exposition_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v insert_v into_o the_o creed_n as_o he_o there_o at_o large_a prove_n and_o in_o the_o progress_n of_o that_o discourse_n take_v off_o that_o which_o bellarmin_n look_v on_o as_o the_o only_a satisfactory_a answer_n viz._n that_o the_o prohibition_n concern_v only_o private_a person_n for_o say_v he_o it_o can_v be_v conceive_v that_o the_o council_n shall_v take_v care_n about_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o creed_n make_v by_o particular_a person_n whereas_o it_o always_o be_v and_o be_v lawful_a for_o such_o to_o declare_v their_o faith_n more_o particular_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o creed_n of_o charisius_n receive_v in_o this_o council_n but_o this_o they_o look_v after_o that_o the_o creed_n which_o be_v common_o receive_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o into_o which_o man_n be_v baptize_v shall_v receive_v no_o alteration_n at_o all_o and_o to_o show_v what_o their_o meaning_n be_v though_o their_o council_n be_v purposely_o assemble_v against_o nestorius_n yet_o they_o will_v not_o insert_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d into_o the_o creed_n and_o the_o same_o decree_n be_v observe_v in_o the_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o council_n which_o by_o their_o action_n do_v declare_v this_o to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o ephesine_n council_n that_o no_o declaration_n whatsoever_o shall_v hereafter_o be_v insert_v into_o the_o creed_n for_o if_o they_o be_v mere_a declaration_n there_o be_v much_o less_o necessity_n of_o infert_v they_o into_o the_o creed_n which_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v a_o systeme_n of_o the_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n 2._o there_o be_v as_o little_a reason_n to_o say_v that_o this_o article_n be_v a_o mere_a declaration_n for_o the_o latin_n pretend_v that_o the_o article_n of_o filioque_fw-la be_v only_o a_o further_a explication_n of_o that_o ex_fw-la patre_fw-la for_o if_o so_o than_o whosoever_o do_v believe_v the_o procession_n from_o the_o father_n do_v believe_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o therefore_o certain_o it_o can_v be_v no_o heresy_n not_o to_o believe_v the_o procession_n from_o the_o son_n because_o that_o be_v only_o suppose_v to_o be_v a_o declaration_n of_o that_o from_o the_o father_n and_o since_o you_o be_v so_o ready_a to_o charge_v the_o greek_a church_n with_o heresy_n i_o pray_v tell_v we_o whether_o this_o article_n be_v a_o declaration_n or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o the_o latin_n be_v all_o deceive_v who_o plead_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o insert_v filioque_fw-la on_o that_o account_n and_o consequent_o it_o must_v be_v a_o prohibit_v addition_n if_o it_o be_v then_o show_v we_o what_o heresy_n lie_v in_o not_o acknowledge_v a_o mere_a explication_n when_o all_o that_o be_v suppose_v necessary_a be_v believe_v in_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o article_n moreover_o bessarion_n right_o distinguish_v between_o a_o explication_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o therefore_o grant_v 625._o that_o the_o filioque_fw-la may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o explication_n of_o something_o contain_v in_o the_o creed_n but_o not_o out_o of_o any_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o therefore_o the_o medium_fw-la being_n extrinsical_a it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o mere_a declaration_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o necessary_a argument_n draw_v from_o the_o procession_n from_o the_o father_n to_o infer_v the_o procession_n from_o the_o son_n but_o it_o must_v be_v prove_v from_o some_o extrinsical_a distinct_a argument_n 2._o suppose_v this_o to_o be_v no_o prohibit_v addition_n yet_o what_o right_a have_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n 20._o to_o make_v this_o addition_n to_o the_o creed_n for_o the_o greek_n say_v whatever_o authority_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v it_o receive_v by_o the_o canon_n and_o its_o authority_n be_v therefore_o less_o than_o that_o of_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n wherefore_o it_o can_v not_o just_o repeal_v or_o act_v contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n as_o it_o do_v apparent_o in_o this_o case_n by_o which_o mean_n the_o latin_n be_v drive_v off_o from_o those_o which_o they_o look_v on_o as_o slight_a velitation_n and_o take_v sanctuary_n in_o the_o plenitude_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n that_o therefore_o no_o council_n can_v prescribe_v to_o he_o there_o can_v be_v no_o necessity_n of_o his_o calling_n the_o eastern_a church_n to_o debate_v this_o addition_n for_o he_o can_v do_v it_o of_o himself_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o own_o authority_n in_o and_o over_o the_o church_n here_o anselm_n and_o bonaventure_n think_v to_o secure_v themselves_o and_o hither_o they_o be_v all_o drive_v at_o last_o so_o that_o we_o plain_o see_v whatever_o else_o be_v pretend_v the_o pope_n usurp_a power_n be_v that_o which_o true_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o schism_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o latin_n believe_v the_o procession_n from_o the_o son_n which_o make_v the_o separation_n between_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n but_o the_o pope_n pretend_v a_o power_n to_o impose_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o creed_n against_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o former_a and_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o a_o present_a ecumenical_a council_n if_o you_o pretend_v that_o there_o have_v be_v since_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n at_o florence_n which_o have_v declare_v it_o by_o that_o very_a answer_n you_o justify_v the_o greek_n before_o that_o council_n and_o so_o lie_v the_o guilt_n of_o the_o schism_n whole_o on_o the_o pope_n who_o do_v insert_v and_o impose_v this_o article_n before_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n thus_o still_o it_o appear_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o schism_n begin_v at_o rome_n and_o by_o the_o same_o argument_n with_o which_o you_o charge_v they_o with_o heresy_n viz._n the_o council_n at_o florence_n you_o vindicate_v the_o greek_a church_n from_o schism_n in_o all_o the_o action_n of_o it_o before_o that_o council_n and_o this_o may_v suffice_v to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o levity_n vanity_n or_o ambition_n of_o the_o greek_n which_o give_v the_o great_a occasion_n of_o the_o schism_n but_o the_o pride_n encroachment_n and_o usurpation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o may_v large_o be_v manifest_v from_o the_o history_n of_o those_o time_n when_o the_o schism_n begin_v the_o rise_n of_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o constantinopolitan_a and_o chalcedon_n council_n the_o second_o and_o four_o ecumenical_a for_o the_o canon_n of_o those_o council_n decree_a equal_a privilege_n to_o constantinople_n with_o those_o of_o rome_n make_v the_o pope_n have_v a_o continual_a jealousy_n upon_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o watch_v
what_o a_o case_n than_o be_v we_o in_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n in_o heaven_n as_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v on_o earth_n but_o it_o be_v our_o comfort_n he_o be_v neither_o so_o nor_o so_o thus_o we_o see_v what_o repugnancy_n there_o be_v both_o to_o scirpture_n and_o reason_n in_o this_o strange_a doctrine_n of_o your_o church_n definition_n make_v thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v not_o so_o before_o 11._o i_o shall_v now_o proceed_v to_o show_v how_o repugnant_a this_o doctrine_n be_v to_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o antiquity_n but_o i_o find_v myself_o prevent_v in_o that_o by_o the_o late_a write_n of_o one_o of_o your_o own_o communion_n and_o if_o you_o will_v believe_v he_o in_o his_o epistle_n dedicatory_a which_o i_o much_o question_n the_o present_a pope_n most_o humble_a servant_n our_o countryman_n mr._n thomas_n white_a who_o whole_a book_n call_v his_o tabulae_fw-la suffragiales_n be_v purposely_o design_v against_o this_o fond_a and_o absurd_a opinion_n nay_o he_o go_v so_o high_a as_o to_o assert_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o pope_n personal_a infallibility_n 21._o not_o only_o to_o be_v heretical_a but_o archiheretical_a and_o that_o the_o propagate_a of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v in_o its_o kind_n a_o most_o grievous_a sin_n it_o can_v but_o much_o rejoice_v we_o to_o see_v that_o man_n of_o wit_n and_o part_n begin_v to_o discover_v the_o intolerable_a arrogance_n of_o such_o pretence_n and_o that_o such_o man_n as_o d._n holden_n and_o mr._n white_a be_v in_o many_o thing_n come_v so_o near_o the_o protestant_a principle_n and_o that_o since_o they_o quit_v the_o plea_n of_o infallibility_n and_o rely_v on_o universal_a tradition_n we_o be_v in_o hope_n that_o the_o same_o reason_n and_o ingenuity_n which_o carry_v these_o person_n thus_o far_o will_v carry_v other_o who_o go_v on_o the_o same_o principle_n so_o much_o far_o as_o to_o see_v how_o impossible_a it_o be_v to_o make_v good_a the_o point_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o upon_o the_o principle_n of_o universal_a tradition_n which_o the_o bigot_n of_o your_o church_n be_v sufficient_o sensible_a of_o and_o therefore_o like_o the_o man_n at_o athens_n when_o your_o hand_n be_v cut_v off_o you_o be_v resolve_v to_o hold_v this_o infallibility_n with_o your_o tooth_n and_o so_o that_o gentleman_n find_v by_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n against_o he_o for_o that_o and_o his_o other_o piece_n but_o this_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v take_v notice_n of_o lest_o we_o shall_v seem_v to_o see_v as_o who_o do_v not_o that_o be_v not_o stark_o blind_a what_o grow_v division_n and_o animosity_n there_o be_v among_o yourselves_o both_o at_o home_n and_o in_o foreign_a part_n and_o yet_o all_o this_o while_n the_o poor_a silly_a people_n must_v be_v tell_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o division_n out_o of_o your_o church_n and_o nothing_o but_o harmony_n and_o music_n in_o it_o but_o such_o as_o be_v make_v of_o discord_n and_o that_o about_o this_o present_a controversy_n for_o the_o forename_a gentleman_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o present_a pope_n tell_v he_o plain_o that_o it_o be_v find_v true_a by_o frequent_a experience_n that_o there_o be_v no_o defend_v the_o catholic_n faith_n against_o the_o subtlety_n of_o his_o heretical_a countryman_n 7._o without_o the_o principle_n of_o that_o book_n which_o be_v condemn_v at_o rome_n and_o what_o those_o principle_n be_v we_o may_v easy_o see_v by_o this_o book_n which_o be_v write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o former_a wherein_o he_o large_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o power_n to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n which_o he_o prove_v both_o from_o scripture_n reason_n and_o authority_n this_o last_o be_v that_o i_o shall_v refer_v the_o reader_n to_o he_o for_o for_o in_o his_o second_o table_n as_o he_o call_v it_o he_o prove_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o origen_n basil_n chrysostom_n cyril_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n etc._n pope_n stephen_n hierom_n theophylact_fw-mi augustine_n vincentius_n lerinensis_n and_o several_a other_o nay_o the_o testimony_n he_o say_v to_o this_o purpose_n be_v so_o many_o that_o whole_a library_n must_v be_v transcribe_v to_o produce_v they_o all_o and_o afterward_o more_o large_o prove_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n lie_v in_o a_o continue_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n both_o from_o scripture_n and_o reason_n and_o abundance_n of_o church-authority_n in_o his_o 4_o 5_o and_o 6._o table_n and_o through_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o book_n disprove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o council_n and_o pope_n and_o can_v you_o think_v all_o this_o be_v answer_v by_o a_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la or_o by_o publish_v a_o false-latin_a order_n of_o the_o inquisition_n at_o rome_n whereby_o his_o book_n be_v prohibit_v and_o his_o opinion_n condemn_v as_o heretical_a erroneous_a in_o faith_n rash_a scandalous_a seditious_a and_o what_o not_o it_o seem_v then_o it_o be_v grow_v at_o last_o de_fw-la fide_fw-la that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a and_o never_o more_o like_a to_o do_v so_o than_o in_o this_o age_n 9_o for_o the_o same_o person_n give_v we_o this_o character_n of_o it_o in_o his_o purgation_n of_o himself_o to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o the_o inquisition_n say_v that_o their_o eminency_n by_o the_o unhappiness_n of_o the_o present_a age_n in_o which_o knowledge_n be_v banish_v out_o of_o the_o school_n 1662._o and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o theological_a truth_n be_v judge_v by_o most_o voice_n fall_v it_o seem_v upon_o some_o ignorant_a and_o arrogant_a consultor_n who_o hand_n over_o head_n condemn_v those_o proposition_n which_o upon_o their_o oath_n they_o can_v not_o tell_v whether_o they_o be_v true_a or_o false_a if_o these_o be_v your_o proceed_n at_o rome_n happy_a we_o that_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o such_o infallible_a ignorance_n this_o be_v the_o age_n your_o religion_n be_v like_a to_o thrive_v in_o if_o ignorance_n be_v as_o predominant_a elsewhere_o as_o it_o seem_v it_o be_v at_o rome_n but_o i_o leave_v this_o and_o return_v 3._o the_o last_o thing_n be_v 12._o whether_o the_o church_n have_v power_n by_o any_o proposition_n or_o definition_n to_o make_v any_o thing_n become_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o to_o be_v believe_v as_o such_o which_o be_v not_o so_o before_o but_o this_o be_v already_o answer_v by_o the_o forego_n discourse_n for_o if_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v must_v be_v suppose_v antecedent_o to_o the_o church_n be_v if_o that_o which_o be_v not_o before_o necessary_a can_v by_o any_o act_n whatsoever_o afterward_o become_v necessary_a than_o it_o unavoidable_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n neither_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v any_o such_o power_n other_o thing_n which_o relate_v to_o this_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o discuss_v in_o follow_v your_o step_n which_o have_v thus_o far_o clear_v this_o important_a controversy_n i_o betake_v myself_o to_o and_o we_o be_v high_o oblige_v to_o you_o for_o the_o rare_a divertisement_n you_o give_v we_o in_o your_o excellent_a way_n of_o manage_v controversy_n have_v my_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n be_v live_v what_o a_o excellent_a entertainment_n will_v your_o confutation_n of_o his_o book_n have_v afford_v he_o but_o since_o so_o pleasant_a a_o province_n be_v fall_v to_o my_o share_n i_o must_v learn_v to_o command_v myself_o in_o the_o management_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o where_o you_o present_v we_o with_o any_o thing_n which_o deserve_v a_o serious_a answer_n for_o truth_n and_o the_o cause_n sake_n you_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o have_v it_o in_o the_o first_o place_n you_o charge_v his_o lordship_n with_o a_o fallacy_n and_o that_o be_v because_o when_o he_o be_v to_o speak_v of_o fundamental_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o fundamental_a 4._o but_o say_v you_o he_o turn_v the_o difficulty_n which_o only_o proceed_v upon_o a_o fundamentality_n or_o necessity_n derive_v from_o the_o formal_a object_n that_o be_v from_o the_o divine_a authority_n reveal_v that_o point_n to_o the_o material_a object_n that_o be_v to_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o matter_n contain_v in_o the_o point_n reveal_v which_o be_v a_o plain_a fallacy_n in_o pass_v à_fw-la sensu_fw-la formali_fw-la ad_fw-la materialem_fw-la man_n seldom_o suspect_v those_o fault_n in_o other_o which_o they_o find_v not_o strong_a inclination_n to_o in_o themselves_o have_v you_o not_o be_v conscious_a of_o a_o notorious_a fallacy_n in_o this_o distinction_n of_o formal_a and_o material_a object_n as_o here_o apply_v by_o you_o you_o will_v never_o have_v suspect_v any_o such_o sophistry_n in_o his_o lordship_n discourse_n i_o pray_v consider_v what_o kind_n of_o fundamental_o those_o be_v which_o the_o question_n proceed_v on_o viz._n such_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v own_v as_o such_o by_o
be_v prove_v to_o be_v so_o of_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n and_o how_o far_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n the_o difference_n between_o science_n and_o faith_n consider_v and_o the_o new_a art_n of_o man_n believe_v with_o their_o will_n the_o church_n testimony_n must_v be_v according_a to_o their_o principle_n the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n of_o their_o esteem_n of_o father_n scripture_n and_o council_n the_o rare_a distinction_n concern_v the_o church_n infallibility_n discuss_v how_o the_o church_n can_v be_v infallible_a by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o not_o divine_o infallible_a but_o in_o a_o manner_n and_o after_o a_o sort_n t._n c._n applaud_v for_o his_o excellent_a faculty_n in_o contradict_v himself_o he_o that_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o betray_v a_o excellent_a cause_n may_v more_o advantageous_o do_v it_o by_o bring_v weak_a and_o insufficient_a evidence_n for_o it_o 1._o then_o by_o the_o great_a heat_n and_o vigour_n of_o opposition_n against_o it_o for_o there_o can_v possible_o be_v any_o great_a prejudice_n do_v to_o a_o weighty_a and_o important_a truth_n then_o to_o persuade_v man_n to_o believe_v it_o on_o such_o ground_n which_o be_v if_o not_o absolute_o false_a yet_o much_o more_o disputable_a than_o the_o thing_n itself_o for_o hereby_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n be_v take_v off_o from_o the_o native_a evidence_n which_o the_o truth_n inquire_v after_o offer_n to_o they_o and_o build_v their_o assent_n upon_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o medium_n suggest_v as_o the_o only_a ground_n to_o establish_v a_o firm_a assent_n upon_o by_o which_o mean_n when_o upon_o severe_a enquiry_n the_o falsity_n and_o insufficiency_n of_o those_o ground_n be_v discover_v the_o person_n so_o discover_v lie_n under_o a_o dangerous_a temptation_n of_o call_v into_o question_n the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o he_o find_v he_o assent_v to_o upon_o ground_n apparent_o weak_a and_o insufficient_a and_o the_o more_o refine_a and_o subtle_a the_o speculation_n be_v the_o more_o sublime_a and_o mysterious_a the_o matter_n believe_v the_o great_a still_o the_o danger_n of_o scepticism_n be_v upon_o a_o discovery_n of_o the_o unsoundness_n of_o those_o principle_n which_o such_o thing_n be_v believe_v upon_o especial_o if_o the_o more_o confident_a and_o magisterial_a party_n of_o those_o who_o profess_v the_o belief_n of_o such_o thing_n do_v with_o the_o great_a heat_n decry_v all_o other_o way_n as_o uncertain_a and_o obtrude_v these_o principle_n upon_o the_o world_n as_o the_o only_a sure_a foundation_n for_o the_o belief_n of_o they_o it_o be_v ancient_o a_o great_a question_n among_o the_o philosopher_n whether_o there_o be_v any_o certainty_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o knowledge_n or_o suppose_v certainty_n in_o thing_n whether_o there_o be_v any_o undoubted_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o rule_v to_o obtain_v this_o certainty_n of_o knowledge_n by_o if_o then_o any_o one_o sect_n of_o philosopher_n shall_v have_v undertake_v to_o prove_v the_o certainty_n that_o be_v in_o knowledge_n upon_o this_o account_n because_o whatever_o their_o sect_n or_o party_n deliver_v be_v infallible_o true_a they_o have_v not_o only_o shameful_o beg_v the_o thing_n in_o dispute_n but_o make_v it_o much_o more_o liable_a to_o question_v then_o before_o because_o every_o error_n discover_v in_o that_o sect_n will_v not_o only_o prove_v the_o fondness_n and_o arrogance_n of_o their_o pretence_n of_o be_v infallible_a but_o will_v to_o all_o such_o as_o believe_v the_o certainty_n of_o thing_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o sect_n be_v a_o argument_n to_o disprove_v all_o certainty_n of_o knowledge_n when_o they_o once_o discover_v the_o error_n of_o those_o who_o authority_n they_o rely_v upon_o just_o such_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o present_a controversy_n concern_v the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n the_o question_n be_v what_o the_o certain_a ground_n of_o our_o assent_n be_v to_o the_o principle_n and_o rule_n of_o christian_a religion_n the_o romanist_n pretend_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o ground_n of_o true_a and_o divine_a faith_n at_o all_o but_o the_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o their_o church_n let_v then_o any_o rational_a man_n judge_n whether_o this_o be_v not_o the_o most_o compendious_a way_n to_o overthrow_v the_o belief_n of_o christianity_n in_o the_o world_n for_o our_o assent_n must_v be_v whole_o suspend_v upon_o that_o suppose_a infallibility_n which_o when_o once_o it_o fall_v as_o it_o unavoidable_o do_v upon_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o least_o error_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n what_o become_v then_o of_o the_o belief_n of_o christianity_n which_o be_v build_v upon_o that_o as_o it_o be_v only_o sure_a foundation_n so_o that_o it_o be_v hardly_o imaginable_a there_o can_v be_v any_o design_n more_o real_o destructive_a to_o christianity_n or_o that_o have_v a_o great_a tendency_n to_o atheism_n then_o the_o modern_a pretence_n of_o infallibility_n and_o the_o jesuit_n way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n 2._o which_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o his_o lordship_n be_v so_o unwilling_a to_o engage_v in_o that_o controversy_n how_o we_o know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o out_o of_o any_o distrust_n he_o have_v of_o solve_v it_o upon_o protestant_a principle_n as_o you_o vain_o suggest_v nor_o out_o of_o any_o fear_n of_o be_v leave_v himself_o in_o that_o labyrinth_n which_o after_o all_o your_o endeavour_n you_o have_v lose_v yourself_o and_o your_o cause_n in_o as_o appear_v by_o your_o attempt_v this_o way_n and_o that_o way_n to_o get_v out_o and_o at_o last_o stand_v in_o the_o very_a middle_n of_o that_o circle_n you_o think_v yourself_o out_o of_o if_o his_o lordship_n think_v this_o more_o a_o question_n of_o curiosity_n than_o necessity_n it_o be_v because_o out_o of_o his_o great_a charity_n he_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v christian_n he_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o but_o if_o his_o charity_n be_v therein_o deceive_v you_o shall_v see_v how_o able_a we_o be_v to_o make_v good_a the_o ground_n of_o our_o religion_n against_o all_o adversary_n whether_o papist_n or_o other_o and_o so_o far_o be_v the_o answer_v of_o this_o question_n from_o make_v the_o weakness_n of_o our_o cause_n appear_v that_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o our_o cause_n stand_v upon_o the_o same_o ground_n which_o our_o common_a christianity_n do_v and_o that_o we_o be_v protestant_n by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o we_o be_v christian_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o you_o be_v so_o far_o from_o give_v any_o true_a ground_n of_o christian_a faith_n that_o nothing_o will_v more_o advance_v the_o high_a scepticism_n and_o irreligion_n than_o such_o principle_n as_o you_o insist_v on_o for_o resolve_v faith_n the_o true_a reason_n then_o why_o the_o archbishop_n declare_v any_o unwillingness_n to_o enter_v upon_o this_o dispute_n be_v not_o the_o least_o apprehension_n how_o insuperable_o hard_a the_o resolution_n of_o this_o question_n be_v as_o you_o pretend_v but_o because_o of_o the_o great_a mischief_n your_o party_n have_v do_v in_o start_v such_o question_n you_o can_v not_o resolve_v with_o any_o satisfaction_n to_o the_o common_a reason_n of_o mankind_n 55._o and_o that_o you_o run_v yourselves_o into_o such_o a_o circle_n in_o which_o you_o conjure_v up_o more_o spirit_n than_o ever_o you_o be_v able_a to_o lay_v by_o give_v those_o advantage_n to_o infidelity_n which_o all_o your_o sophistry_n can_v never_o answer_v on_o those_o principle_n you_o go_v upon_o that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a ground_n of_o his_o lordship_n seem_a averseness_n from_o this_o controversy_n appear_v by_o his_o plain_a word_n where_o he_o tell_v you_o at_o first_o of_o the_o danger_n of_o man_n be_v dispute_v into_o infidelity_n by_o the_o circle_n between_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n 1._o and_o by_o his_o express_v his_o sense_n of_o the_o great_a harm_n you_o have_v do_v by_o the_o start_n of_o that_o question_n among_o christian_n how_o we_o know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o although_o in_o this_o respect_n he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v draw_v into_o it_o yet_o lest_o you_o shall_v think_v his_o averseness_n argue_v any_o consciousness_n of_o his_o own_o inability_n to_o answer_v it_o you_o may_v see_v how_o close_o he_o follow_v it_o with_o what_o care_n and_o accuracy_n he_o handle_v it_o with_o what_o strength_n of_o reason_n and_o evidence_n he_o have_v discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o your_o way_n which_o he_o have_v do_v with_o that_o success_n that_o he_o have_v put_v you_o to_o miserable_a shift_n to_o avoid_v the_o force_n of_o his_o argument_n as_o will_v appear_v afterward_o i_o be_o therefore_o full_o of_o his_o mind_n that_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o such_o consequence_n it_o deserve_v to_o be_v
sift_v be_v it_o for_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o lay_v open_a the_o juggle_n and_o imposture_n of_o your_o way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n which_o we_o now_o come_v more_o close_o to_o the_o discovery_n of_o for_o 3._o as_o you_o tell_v we_o the_o bishop_n propound_v diverse_a way_n of_o resolve_v the_o question_n first_o fall_v to_o the_o attaque_a your_o way_n ibid._n who_o prove_v it_o by_o tradition_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o his_o first_o onset_n be_v so_o successful_a that_o it_o make_v you_o visible_o recoil_v and_o withdraw_v yourself_o into_o so_o untenable_a a_o shelter_n as_o expose_v you_o to_o all_o the_o attempt_n which_o any_o adversary_n will_v desire_v to_o make_v upon_o you_o for_o whereas_o you_o be_v charge_v by_o his_o lordship_n with_o run_v into_o the_o most_o absurd_a kind_n of_o argumentation_n viz._n by_o prove_v the_o scripture_n infallible_a by_o tradition_n and_o that_o tradition_n infallible_a by_o scripture_n you_o think_v to_o escape_v that_o circle_n by_o tell_v we_o that_o you_o prove_v not_o the_o church_n infallibility_n by_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n this_o then_o be_v your_o main_a principle_n which_o your_o follow_a discourse_n be_v build_v upon_o and_o in_o your_o judgement_n the_o only_a probable_a way_n to_o avoid_v the_o circle_n that_o you_o may_v not_o think_v i_o be_o afraid_a of_o encounter_v you_o in_o your_o great_a strength_n i_o dare_v put_v the_o issue_n of_o the_o cause_n upon_o this_o promise_n that_o beside_o the_o weak_a proof_n you_o bring_v for_o the_o thing_n itself_o which_o shall_v after_o be_v consider_v if_o this_o way_n of_o you_o be_v not_o chargeable_a with_o all_o the_o absurdity_n such_o a_o attempt_n be_v capable_a of_o i_o will_v be_v content_a to_o acknowledge_v what_o you_o say_v to_o be_v true_a which_o be_v that_o your_o way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n have_v no_o difficulty_n at_o all_o and_o that_o we_o be_v insuperable_o hard_a which_o i_o think_v be_v as_o hard_a term_n as_o can_v be_v impose_v upon_o i_o now_o there_o be_v two_o grand_a absurdity_n which_o any_o vindication_n of_o a_o opinion_n be_v subject_a to_o first_o if_o it_o be_v manifest_o unreasonable_a and_o 2._o if_o suppose_v it_o true_a it_o do_v not_o effect_v what_o it_o be_v intend_v for_o now_o these_o two_o i_o undertake_v to_o make_v good_a against_o this_o way_n of_o your_o resolve_v faith_n that_o it_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o high_a unreasonableness_n and_o that_o suppose_v it_o true_a you_o be_v in_o a_o circle_n as_o much_o as_o before_o 1._o first_o i_o begin_v with_o the_o unreasonableness_n of_o it_o which_o be_v so_o great_a that_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o i_o may_v abstain_v from_o call_v it_o ridiculous_a but_o that_o i_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o follow_v you_o in_o assert_v confident_o and_o prove_v weak_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a thorough_o to_o examine_v the_o ground_n on_o which_o your_o opinion_n stand_v and_o then_o raise_v our_o battery_n against_o it_o three_o grand_a principle_n your_o discourse_n rely_v upon_o which_o be_v your_o postulata_fw-la in_o order_n to_o the_o resolve_v faith_n 1._o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o a_o divine_a faith_n that_o it_o be_v build_v on_o the_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o that_o your_o church_n be_v that_o catholic_n church_n who_o testimony_n be_v infallible_a 3._o that_o this_o infallibility_n be_v to_o be_v know_v and_o assent_v to_o upon_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n these_o three_o i_o suppose_v if_o your_o confuse_a discourse_n be_v reduce_v to_o method_n will_v be_v free_o acknowledge_v by_o yourself_o to_o be_v the_o principle_n on_o which_o your_o resolution_n of_o faith_n depend_v and_o although_o i_o be_o sufficient_o assure_v of_o the_o falseness_n of_o your_o two_o first_o principle_n as_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o sequel_n of_o this_o discourse_n yet_o that_o which_o i_o have_v now_o particular_o undertake_v be_v the_o unreasonableness_n of_o resolve_v faith_n upon_o these_o principle_n take_v together_o viz._n that_o the_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o your_o church_n be_v the_o only_a foundation_n for_o divine_a faith_n and_o that_o this_o infallibility_n can_v be_v know_v only_o by_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n if_o then_o in_o this_o way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n you_o require_v assent_n beyond_o all_o proportion_n of_o evidence_n if_o you_o run_v into_o the_o same_o absurdity_n you_o will_v seem_v to_o avoid_v if_o you_o leave_v man_n more_o uncertain_a in_o their_o religion_n than_o you_o find_v they_o you_o can_v certain_o excuse_v this_o way_n from_o unreasonableness_n and_o each_o of_o these_o i_o undertake_v to_o make_v good_a against_o this_o way_n of_o you_o whereby_o you_o will_v assure_v man_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o divinity_n of_o the_o scripture_n 1._o a_o assent_n be_v hereby_o require_v beyond_o all_o proportion_n or_o degree_n of_o evidence_n for_o you_o require_v a_o infallible_a assent_n 4._o only_o upon_o probable_a ground_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o require_v infallibility_n in_o the_o conclusion_n where_o the_o premise_n be_v only_o probable_a now_o that_o you_o require_v a_o assent_n infallible_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n appear_v by_o the_o whole_a series_n of_o your_o discourse_n for_o to_o this_o very_a end_n you_o require_v infallibility_n in_o the_o testimony_n of_o your_o church_n because_o otherwise_o you_o say_v our_o faith_n will_v be_v uncertain_a it_o be_v plain_a then_o you_o require_v a_o infallible_a assent_n in_o faith_n and_o it_o be_v as_o plain_a that_o this_o assent_n according_a to_o you_o can_v be_v build_v only_o upon_o probable_a ground_n for_o you_o acknowledge_v the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o such_o yet_o those_o be_v all_o the_o ground_n you_o give_v why_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v believe_v infallible_a if_o you_o say_v that_o which_o make_v the_o assent_n infallible_a be_v that_o infallibility_n which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n testimony_n i_o reply_v that_o this_o be_v a_o most_o unreasonable_a thing_n to_o go_v about_o to_o establish_v a_o infallible_a assent_n mere_o because_o the_o testimony_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v in_o itself_o infallible_a for_o assent_n be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o objective_a certitude_n of_o thing_n but_o the_o evidence_n of_o they_o to_o our_o understand_n for_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o assent_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o a_o demonstration_n in_o a_o demonstrative_a manner_n because_o any_o mathematician_n tell_v one_o the_o thing_n be_v demonstrable_a for_o in_o that_o case_n the_o assent_n be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n such_o a_o person_n have_v of_o he_o who_o tell_v he_o it_o be_v demonstrable_a nay_o suppose_v that_o person_n infallible_a in_o say_v so_o yet_o if_o the_o other_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o be_v infallible_o assure_v that_o he_o be_v so_o such_o a_o one_o assent_n be_v as_o doubtful_a as_o if_o he_o be_v not_o infallible_a therefore_o suppose_v the_o testimony_n of_o your_o church_n to_o be_v real_o infallible_a yet_o since_o the_o mean_n of_o believe_v it_o be_v but_o probable_a and_o prudential_a the_o assent_n can_v be_v according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o testimony_n consider_v in_o itself_o but_o according_a to_o the_o reason_n which_o induce_v i_o to_o believe_v such_o a_o testimony_n infallible_a and_o in_o all_o such_o case_n where_o i_o believe_v one_o thing_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o another_o my_o assent_n to_o the_o object_n believe_v be_v according_a to_o my_o assent_n to_o the_o medium_fw-la on_o which_o i_o believe_v it_o for_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o that_o the_o other_o be_v convey_v to_o our_o mind_n as_o our_o sight_n be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o light_n in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n but_o that_o which_o press_v upon_o our_o organ_n of_o sense_n so_o that_o suppose_v your_o church_n testimony_n to_o be_v in_o itself_o infallible_a if_o one_o may_v be_v deceive_v in_o judge_v whether_o your_o church_n be_v infallible_a or_o no_o one_o may_v be_v deceive_v in_o such_o thing_n which_o he_o believe_v upon_o that_o suppose_a infallibility_n it_o be_v a_o impossibility_n that_o the_o assent_n to_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n shall_v rise_v high_o or_o stand_v firm_a than_o the_o assent_n to_o the_o testimony_n be_v upon_o which_o those_o thing_n be_v believe_v now_o that_o one_o may_v be_v deceive_v according_a to_o your_o own_o principle_n in_o judge_v whether_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a appear_v by_o this_o that_o you_o have_v no_o other_o mean_n to_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o your_o church_n but_o only_o probable_a and_o prudential_a motive_n for_o i_o desire_v to_o know_v
produce_v be_v that_o a_o tradition_n may_v be_v know_v to_o be_v such_o by_o the_o light_n it_o have_v in_o itself_o in_o which_o you_o say_v you_o find_v not_o one_o word_n of_o tradition_n be_v know_v by_o its_o own_o light_n but_o who_o be_v so_o blind_a as_o those_o who_o will_v not_o see_v i_o pray_v what_o difference_n be_v there_o between_o a_o tradition_n be_v know_v to_o be_v such_o by_o its_o own_o light_n and_o a_o tradition_n be_v know_v by_o its_o own_o light_n yes_o say_v you_o know_v to_o be_v such_o imply_v that_o be_v to_o be_v god_n unwritten_a word_n but_o be_v not_o doctrinal_a tradition_n and_o a_o unwritten_a word_n with_o you_o the_o same_o thing_n can_v therefore_o a_o tradition_n be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o unwritten_a word_n by_o its_o own_o light_n and_o not_o be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o tradition_n by_o its_o own_o light_n nay_o how_o can_v it_o possible_o be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o unwritten_a word_n unless_o it_o first_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o tradition_n for_o tradition_n contain_v under_o it_o both_o those_o that_o be_v unwritten_a word_n and_o those_o that_o be_v not_o it_o must_v in_o order_n of_o nature_n be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o tradition_n before_o it_o can_v be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o other_o as_o i_o must_v first_o know_v you_o to_o be_v a_o live_a creature_n before_o i_o can_v know_v you_o to_o be_v a_o reasonable_a creature_n and_o i_o may_v much_o soon_o know_v the_o one_o than_o the_o other_o you_o do_v therefore_o very_o well_o when_o you_o have_v give_v we_o such_o occasion_n for_o sport_n to_o give_v we_o leave_v to_o laugh_v at_o it_o as_o you_o do_v in_o your_o next_o word_n 9_o but_o before_o you_o leave_v this_o point_n you_o have_v some_o grave_a matter_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o which_o be_v that_o you_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o consider_v what_o the_o relator_n grant_v viz._n that_o the_o church_n now_o admit_v of_o st._n james_n and_o st._n judes_n epistle_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n which_o be_v not_o receive_v for_o diverse_a year_n after_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n from_o which_o you_o wise_o infer_v that_o if_o some_o book_n be_v now_o to_o be_v admit_v for_o canonical_a which_o be_v not_o always_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v such_o then_o upon_o the_o same_o authority_n some_o book_n may_v now_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o canon_n which_o be_v not_o so_o in_o ruffinus_n his_o time_n and_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n do_v elsewhere_o unjust_o charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o it_o have_v err_v in_o receive_v more_o book_n into_o the_o canon_n than_o be_v receive_v in_o ruffinus_n his_o time_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o by_o your_o own_o confession_n then_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v now_o receive_v into_o the_o canon_n more_o book_n than_o she_o do_v in_o ruffinus_n his_o time_n from_o whence_o i_o inquire_v whether_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v infallible_a in_o ruffinus_n his_o time_n in_o determine_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o not_o than_o the_o present_a church_n be_v no_o infallible_a propounder_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o then_o all_o your_o discourse_n come_v to_o nothing_o if_o she_o be_v infallible_a then_o she_o can_v be_v now_o for_o now_o she_o determin_n otherwise_o as_o to_o a_o main_a point_n of_o faith_n than_o she_o do_v then_o unless_o you_o will_v say_v your_o church_n can_v be_v infallible_a in_o determine_v both_o part_n of_o a_o contradiction_n to_o be_v true_a 2._o be_v the_o integrity_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n a_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o no_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o will_v say_v it_o be_v if_o so_o whether_o be_v these_o book_n which_o you_o admit_v now_o and_o be_v not_o admit_v then_o know_v to_o be_v of_o the_o canon_n by_o this_o apostolical_a tradition_n if_o not_o by_o what_o right_a come_v they_o now_o to_o be_v of_o the_o canon_n if_o so_o then_o be_v not_o your_o church_n in_o ruffinus_n time_n much_o to_o seek_v for_o her_o infallibility_n in_o define_v what_o be_v apostolical_a tradition_n and_o what_o not_o 3._o your_o main_a principle_n on_o which_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o add_v more_o book_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v build_v be_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o your_o church_n judicial_o and_o authoritative_o to_o determine_v what_o book_n belong_v to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o what_o not_o which_o i_o utter_o deny_v for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o your_o church_n or_o any_o in_o the_o world_n can_v by_o any_o definition_n make_v that_o book_n to_o be_v divine_a which_o be_v not_o so_o before_o such_o a_o definition_n for_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o book_n do_v mere_o arise_v from_o divine_a revelation_n can_v your_o church_n then_o make_v that_o to_o be_v a_o divine_a revelation_n which_o be_v not_o so_o all_o that_o any_o church_n in_o the_o world_n can_v do_v in_o this_o case_n be_v not_o to_o constitute_v any_o new_a canon_n which_o be_v to_o make_v book_n divine_a which_o be_v not_o so_o but_o to_o use_v its_o utmost_a diligence_n and_o care_n in_o search_v into_o the_o authenticalness_n of_o those_o copy_n which_o have_v any_o pretence_n to_o be_v of_o the_o canon_n and_o whether_o they_o do_v original_o proceed_v from_o such_o person_n as_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v have_v a_o immediate_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o according_a to_o the_o evidence_n they_o find_v the_o church_n may_v declare_v and_o give_v in_o her_o verdict_n for_o the_o church_n in_o this_o case_n be_v but_o a_o jury_n of_o grand_a inquest_n to_o search_v into_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o not_o a_o judge_n upon_o the_o bench_n to_o determine_v in_o point_n of_o law_n and_o that_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n why_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v gradual_o receive_v into_o the_o canon_n and_o some_o a_o great_a while_n after_o other_o as_o st._n james_n st._n judas_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n because_o at_o first_o the_o copy_n be_v not_o so_o public_o disperse_v there_o be_v not_o that_o occasion_n minister_v to_o the_o church_n for_o examination_n of_o they_o upon_o which_o when_o by_o degree_n they_o come_v to_o be_v more_o public_a it_o cause_v scruple_n in_o many_o concern_v they_o because_o they_o appear_v no_o soon_o especial_o if_o any_o passage_n in_o they_o seem_v to_o gratify_v any_o of_o the_o sect_n then_o appear_v as_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o novatian_o and_o the_o apocalypse_n the_o millenary_n but_o when_o upon_o a_o through_o search_n and_o examination_n of_o all_o circumstance_n it_o do_v appear_v that_o these_o copy_n be_v authentical_a and_o do_v original_o proceed_v from_o divine_a person_n than_o they_o come_v to_o be_v admit_v and_o own_a for_o such_o by_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o we_o call_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o i_o take_v to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a and_o just_a account_n of_o that_o which_o be_v call_v the_o constitute_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n not_o as_o though_o either_o the_o apostle_n meet_v to_o do_v it_o or_o st._n john_n intend_v any_o such_o thing_n by_o those_o word_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n for_o that_o book_n be_v as_o much_o liable_a to_o question_v as_o any_o how_o can_v that_o seal_v the_o canon_n for_o all_o the_o rest_n much_o less_o that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o any_o church_n or_o council_n and_o least_o of_o all_o of_o the_o pope_n to_o determine_v what_o be_v canonical_a and_o what_o not_o but_o only_o that_o the_o church_n upon_o examination_n and_o enquiry_n do_v by_o her_o universal_a reception_n of_o these_o book_n declare_v itself_o satisfy_v with_o the_o evidence_n which_o be_v produce_v that_o those_o be_v true_a and_o authentic_a copy_n which_o be_v abroad_o under_o such_o name_n or_o title_n and_o that_o there_o be_v great_a reason_n to_o believe_v by_o a_o continue_a tradition_n from_o the_o age_n and_o time_n these_o book_n be_v write_v in_o that_o they_o be_v write_v by_o such_o person_n who_o be_v not_o only_o free_a from_o any_o design_n of_o imposture_n but_o give_v the_o great_a rational_a evidence_n that_o they_o have_v a_o more_o special_a and_o immediate_a assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n you_o see_v then_o to_o how_o little_a advantage_n to_o your_o cause_n you_o make_v this_o digression_n as_o to_o the_o three_o way_n propound_v for_o resolve_v the_o question_n 10._o how_o we_o know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n viz._n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n three_o thing_n you_o object_n against_o the_o bishop_n discourse_n about_o it_o first_o 71._o that_o his_o discourse_n
report_n of_o such_o man_n who_o i_o can_v make_v it_o appear_v can_v have_v no_o interest_n in_o deceive_v you_o a._n i_o can_v see_v no_o reason_n to_o the_o contrary_n will_v you_o then_o believe_v such_o man_n who_o lose_v their_o life_n to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o their_o testimony_n be_v true_a a._n yes_o will_v you_o believe_v such_o thing_n wherein_o person_n of_o several_a age_n profession_n nation_n religion_n interest_n be_v all_o agree_v that_o they_o be_v so_o a._n yes_o if_o it_o be_v only_o to_o believe_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n on_o their_o testimony_n i_o can_v see_v no_o ground_n to_o question_v it_o that_o be_v all_o i_o desire_v of_o you_o and_o therefore_o you_o must_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n such_o a_o person_n as_o jesus_n christ_n who_o die_v and_o rise_v again_o and_o while_o he_o live_v wrought_v great_a miracle_n to_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n with_o and_o that_o he_o send_v out_o apostle_n to_o preach_v this_o doctrine_n in_o the_o world_n who_o likewise_o do_v work_v many_o miracle_n and_o that_o some_o of_o these_o person_n the_o better_a to_o preserve_v and_o convey_v this_o doctrine_n do_v write_v the_o substance_n of_o all_o that_o christ_n either_o do_v or_o speak_v and_o withal_o pen_v several_a epistle_n to_o those_o church_n which_o be_v plant_v by_o they_o these_o be_v all_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o therefore_o on_o your_o former_a principle_n you_o be_v to_o believe_v they_o there_o be_v then_o but_o two_o scruple_n leave_v suppose_v all_o this_o true_a yet_o this_o do_v not_o prove_v the_o doctrine_n divine_a nor_o the_o scripture_n which_o convey_v it_o to_o be_v infallible_a to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o can_v you_o question_v whether_o that_o doctrine_n be_v divine_a when_o the_o person_n who_o declare_v it_o to_o the_o world_n be_v so_o divine_a and_o extraordinary_a a_o person_n not_o only_o in_o his_o conversation_n but_o in_o those_o frequent_a and_o unparallelled_a miracle_n which_o he_o wrought_v in_o the_o sight_n and_o face_n of_o his_o enemy_n who_o after_o his_o death_n do_v rise_v again_o and_o converse_v with_o his_o disciple_n who_o give_v evidence_n of_o their_o fidelity_n in_o the_o testimony_n they_o give_v of_o it_o by_o lay_v down_o their_o life_n to_o attest_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o again_o can_v you_o question_v the_o divinity_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o tend_v so_o apparent_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o evil_a spirit_n in_o the_o world_n for_o we_o can_v think_v he_o will_v quit_v his_o possession_n willing_o out_o of_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n that_o therefore_o which_o throw_v he_o out_o of_o both_o must_v be_v not_o only_o a_o doctrine_n direct_o contrary_a to_o his_o interest_n but_o infinite_o exceed_v he_o in_o power_n and_o that_o can_v be_v no_o less_o than_o divine_a but_o still_o you_o will_v say_v be_v it_o not_o beside_o all_o this_o necessary_a to_o believe_v these_o very_a book_n you_o call_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v divine_o inspire_v and_o how_o shall_v i_o know_v that_o to_o that_o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o which_o god_n chief_o require_v from_o you_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o divinity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n for_o that_o be_v the_o faith_n which_o will_v bring_v you_o to_o obedience_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n god_n aim_v at_o 2._o if_o you_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a and_o divine_a you_o can_v reasonable_o question_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o in_o that_o you_o read_v that_o not_o only_a christ_n do_v miracle_n but_o his_o apostle_n too_o and_o therefore_o their_o testimony_n whether_o writing_n or_o speak_v be_v equal_o infallible_a all_o that_o you_o want_v evidence_n for_o be_v that_o such_o person_n write_v these_o book_n and_o that_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v sufficient_o prove_v and_o acknowledge_v before_o thus_o you_o see_v if_o we_o take_v a_o right_a method_n and_o not_o jumble_v thing_n confuse_o together_o as_o you_o do_v what_o a_o satisfactory_a account_n may_v be_v give_v to_o any_o inquisitive_a person_n first_o of_o the_o reasonableness_n next_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o last_o of_o the_o divinity_n both_o of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o the_o book_n contain_v it_o which_o we_o call_v the_o scripture_n 12._o let_v we_o now_o again_o see_v how_o you_o make_v the_o bishop_n and_o heathen_a dispute_n the_o substance_n of_o which_o be_v that_o you_o make_v your_o heathen_a desire_n no_o less_o than_o infallible_a evidence_n that_o the_o bible_n be_v god_n word_n by_o conviction_n of_o natural_a reason_n whereas_o his_o lordship_n attempt_v only_o to_o make_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n appear_v by_o such_o argument_n as_o unbeliever_n themselves_o can_v not_o but_o think_v reasonable_a if_o they_o weigh_v they_o with_o indifferency_n for_o though_o say_v he_o this_o truth_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o so_o demonstrative_o evident_a à_fw-la priori_fw-la 15._o as_o to_o enforce_v assent_n yet_o it_o be_v strengthen_v so_o abundant_o with_o probable_a argument_n both_o from_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n itself_o and_o humane_a testimony_n that_o he_o must_v be_v very_o wilful_a and_o self-conceited_a that_o shall_v dare_v to_o suspect_v it_o and_o sure_o any_o reasonable_a man_n in_o the_o world_n will_v think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o deal_v with_o a_o adversary_n upon_o such_o term_n but_o say_v your_o heathen_a a_o man_n can_v be_v infallible_o certain_a of_o what_o be_v strengthen_v with_o but_o probable_a argument_n since_o that_o which_o be_v but_o probable_o true_a may_v also_o be_v say_v to_o be_v but_o probable_o false_a which_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o often_o object_v against_o we_o by_o your_o party_n must_v be_v somewhat_o further_o explain_v how_o far_o infallibility_n may_v be_v admit_v in_o our_o belief_n may_v partly_o be_v perceive_v by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v already_o and_o what_o shall_v be_v say_v more_o afterward_o that_o there_o be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v the_o high_a degree_n of_o actual_a certainty_n i_o assert_v as_o much_o as_o you_o but_o say_v you_o the_o very_a argument_n be_v but_o probable_a destroy_v it_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v by_o explain_v the_o meaning_n of_o probable_a argument_n in_o this_o case_n whereby_o be_v not_o understand_v such_o kind_n of_o probability_n which_o can_v raise_v a_o firm_a assent_n in_o which_o sense_n we_o say_v that_o which_o be_v probable_a to_o be_v be_v probable_a not_o to_o be_v but_o by_o probability_n be_v only_o mean_v such_o kind_n of_o rational_a evidence_n which_o may_v yield_v a_o sufficient_a foundation_n for_o a_o firm_a assent_n but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o which_o a_o obstinate_a person_n may_v deny_v assent_n as_o for_o instance_n if_o you_o be_v to_o dispute_v with_o a_o atheist_n concern_v the_o existence_n of_o a_o deity_n which_o he_o deny_v and_o shall_v proceed_v with_o you_o just_a as_o your_o heathen_a do_v with_o the_o bishop_n sir_n all_z that_o religion_n you_o talk_v of_o be_v build_v only_o upon_o the_o belief_n of_o a_o god_n but_o i_o can_v be_v infallible_o convince_v by_o natural_a reason_n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o one_o you_o present_o tell_v he_o that_o there_o be_v so_o much_o evidence_n for_o a_o deity_n from_o the_o work_n of_o nature_n the_o consent_n of_o all_o people_n etc._n etc._n that_o he_o can_v have_v no_o reason_n to_o question_v it_o but_o still_o he_o reply_v none_o of_o these_o be_v demonstration_n for_o notwithstanding_o i_o have_v consider_v these_o i_o believe_v the_o contrary_a but_o demonstration_n will_v make_v i_o infallible_o certain_a these_o than_o be_v no_o more_o but_o probable_a argument_n and_o therefore_o since_o it_o be_v but_o probable_o true_a it_o may_v be_v probable_o false_a how_o then_o will_v you_o satisfy_v such_o a_o person_n can_v you_o do_v it_o any_o otherwise_o than_o by_o say_v that_o we_o have_v as_o great_a evidence_n as_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n will_v bear_v and_o it_o be_v unreasonable_a to_o require_v more_o unless_o you_o will_v tell_v he_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o believe_v a_o god_n unless_o he_o believe_v it_o infallible_o and_o there_o be_v no_o infallible_a argument_n in_o nature_n he_o must_v believe_v it_o on_o the_o infallibility_n of_o your_o church_n and_o do_v you_o not_o think_v this_o be_v a_o excellent_a way_n to_o confute_v atheist_n but_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o probable_a argument_n we_o mean_v not_o such_o as_o be_v apt_a to_o leave_v the_o mind_n in_o suspense_n whether_o the_o thing_n be_v true_a or_o no_o but_o only_o such_o as_o be_v not_o proper_a and_o rigid_a demonstration_n or_o infallible_a testimony_n but_o the_o high_a evidence_n which_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n will_v bear_v
obtrude_v without_o possibility_n of_o amendment_n of_o they_o excuse_v your_o church_n from_o imposture_n if_o you_o can_v for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v nor_o any_o one_o else_o who_o thorough_o consider_v it_o for_o the_o second_o it_o will_v follow_v indeed_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o your_o church_n be_v as_o much_o as_o nothing_o as_o to_o any_o infallible_a foundation_n of_o faith_n but_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v of_o great_a use_n for_o convey_v universal_a tradition_n to_o we_o and_o so_o by_o that_o deliver_v the_o scripture_n into_o our_o hand_n as_o the_o infallible_a rule_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o three_o it_o by_o no_o mean_n follow_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o sole_a letter_n of_o scripture_n leave_v to_o convince_v we_o of_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o scripture_n i_o hope_v the_o work_a miracle_n fulfil_v prophecy_n the_o nature_n and_o reasonableness_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n be_v all_o leave_v beside_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o scripture_n and_o these_o we_o say_v be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n contain_v the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n now_o your_o profound_a christian_a begin_v to_o reflect_v on_o the_o bishop_n way_n which_o be_v say_v you_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v humane_a and_o fallible_a 15._o and_o that_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o scripture_n rest_v upon_o the_o scripture_n itself_o but_o it_o will_v be_v more_o to_o our_o purpose_n to_o hear_v the_o bishop_n deliver_v his_o own_o mind_n than_o to_o hear_v you_o so_o lame_o deliver_v it_o 83._o which_o in_o short_a he_o sum_n up_o thus_o a_o man_n be_v probable_o lead_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n as_o by_o the_o first_o inform_v induce_v persuade_v mean_n to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o when_o he_o have_v study_v consider_v and_o compare_v this_o word_n with_o its_o self_n and_o with_o other_o write_n with_o the_o help_n of_o ordinary_a grace_n and_o a_o mind_n moral_o induce_v and_o reasonable_o persuade_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n the_o scripture_n than_o give_v great_a and_o high_a reason_n of_o credibility_n to_o itself_o than_o tradition_n alone_o can_v give_v and_o then_o he_o that_o believe_v resolve_v his_o last_o and_o full_a assent_n that_o scripture_n be_v of_o divine_a authority_n into_o internal_a argument_n find_v in_o the_o letter_n itself_o though_o find_v by_o the_o help_n of_o tradition_n without_o and_o grace_n within_o this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o his_o lordship_n opinion_n against_o which_o we_o shall_v now_o consider_v what_o your_o discourser_n have_v to_o object_n 76._o 1._o the_o first_o be_v from_o the_o case_n of_o ignorant_a and_o illiterate_a person_n such_o who_o either_o through_o want_n of_o learning_n can_v not_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o examine_v or_o else_o make_v little_a use_n of_o it_o because_o they_o suppose_v they_o may_v have_v infallible_a faith_n without_o it_o what_o then_o become_v of_o million_o of_o such_o soul_n both_o in_o former_a and_o present_a time_n to_o that_o i_o answer_v although_o the_o ignorance_n and_o carelessness_n of_o man_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a consequence_n be_v so_o great_a in_o all_o age_n as_o be_v not_o to_o be_v justify_v because_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o endeavour_v after_o the_o high_a way_n of_o satisfaction_n in_o a_o matter_n so_o near_o concern_v they_o and_o it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o least_o thing_n to_o be_v blame_v in_o your_o church_n that_o she_o do_v so_o much_o countenance_v this_o ignorance_n and_o neglect_v of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o for_o such_o person_n who_o either_o moral_o or_o invincible_o be_v hinder_v from_o this_o capacity_n of_o examine_v scripture_n there_o may_v be_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o their_o faith_n to_o be_v build_v upon_o for_o although_o such_o illiterate_a person_n can_v themselves_o see_v and_o read_v the_o scripture_n yet_o as_o many_o as_o do_v believe_v do_v receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o by_o that_o sense_n by_o which_o faith_n be_v convey_v that_o be_v hear_v and_o by_o that_o mean_v they_o have_v so_o great_a certainty_n as_o exclude_v all_o doubt_v that_o such_o doctrine_n and_o such_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v contain_v in_o these_o book_n by_o which_o they_o come_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o doctrine_n and_o be_v capable_a of_o judge_v concern_v the_o divinity_n of_o it_o for_o the_o light_n speak_v of_o in_o scripture_n be_v not_o a_o light_n to_o the_o eye_n but_o to_o the_o mind_n now_o the_o mind_n be_v capable_a of_o this_o light_n as_o well_o by_o the_o ear_n as_o by_o the_o eye_n the_o case_n then_o of_o such_o honest_a illiterate_a person_n as_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o read_v scripture_n but_o diligent_o and_o devout_o hear_v it_o read_v to_o they_o be_v much_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o those_o who_o hear_v the_o apostle_n preach_v this_o doctrine_n before_o it_o be_v write_v for_o whatever_o be_v a_o argument_n to_o such_o to_o believe_v the_o apostle_n in_o what_o they_o speak_v become_v a_o argument_n to_o such_o who_o hear_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o be_v certain_o convey_v to_o we_o by_o a_o unquestionable_a tradition_n so_o that_o nothing_o hinder_v but_o such_o illiterate_a person_n may_v resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o motive_n which_o other_o do_v only_o those_o be_v convey_v to_o they_o by_o the_o ear_n which_o be_v convey_v to_o other_o by_o the_o eye_n but_o if_o you_o suppose_v person_n so_o rude_a and_o illiterate_a as_o not_o to_o understand_v any_o thing_n but_o that_o they_o be_v to_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v do_v you_o if_o you_o can_v resolve_v their_o faith_n for_o they_o for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v and_o be_o so_o far_o from_o it_o that_o i_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v they_o can_v have_v any_o 2._o the_o second_o thing_n object_v by_o your_o discourser_n be_v that_o if_o the_o church_n judgement_n be_v fallible_a then_o much_o more_o one_o own_o judgement_n be_v fallible_a and_o therefore_o if_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o care_n and_o pain_n take_v by_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n their_o persuasion_n be_v only_o humane_a and_o fallible_a what_o reason_n have_v any_o particular_a person_n to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v divine_o and_o infallible_o certain_a by_o his_o read_v the_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v divine_a truth_n but_o 1._o be_v there_o no_o difference_n between_o the_o church_n persuasion_n and_o the_o church_n tradition_n do_v the_o bishop_n deny_v but_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o infallible_a as_o that_o of_o any_o particular_a person_n but_o this_o he_o deny_v that_o they_o can_v derive_v that_o infallibility_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o persuasion_n into_o their_o tradition_n so_o as_o those_o who_o be_v to_o receive_v it_o on_o their_o testimony_n may_v be_v competent_a judge_n of_o it_o may_v we_o not_o then_o suppose_v their_o tradition_n to_o be_v humane_a and_o fallible_a who_o persuasion_n of_o what_o they_o deliver_v be_v establish_v on_o infallible_a ground_n as_o a_o mathematician_n be_v demonstrative_o convince_v himself_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o any_o particular_a problem_n but_o if_o he_o bid_v another_o believe_v it_o on_o his_o testimony_n the_o other_o thereby_o have_v no_o demonstrative_a evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o but_o only_o so_o great_a moral_a evidence_n as_o the_o testimony_n of_o that_o person_n carry_v along_o with_o it_o the_o case_n be_v the_o same_o here_o suppose_v those_o person_n in_o the_o church_n in_o every_o age_n of_o it_o have_v to_o themselves_o infallible_a evidence_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o when_o they_o be_v to_o deliver_v this_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o other_o unless_o their_o testimony_n have_v infallible_a evidence_n in_o it_o man_n can_v never_o have_v more_o than_o humane_a or_o moral_a certainty_n of_o it_o 2._o it_o do_v not_o at_o all_o follow_v that_o if_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a no_o particular_a person_n can_v be_v infallible_o assure_v of_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o scripture_n unless_o this_o assurance_n do_v whole_o depend_v upon_o that_o testimony_n indeed_o if_o it_o do_v so_o the_o argument_n will_v hold_v but_o otherwise_o it_o do_v not_o at_o all_o now_o you_o know_v the_o bishop_n deny_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o any_o particular_a person_n do_v rest_n upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n only_o he_o say_v this_o may_v be_v a_o motive_n and_o inducement_n to_o man_n to_o consider_v further_o but_o that_o which_o they_o rely_v upon_o be_v that_o rational_a evidence_n which_o appear_v in_o the_o scripture_n itself_o 3._o he_o go_v on_o and_o argue_v against_o this_o use_n of_o
can_v not_o at_o so_o small_a a_o distance_n of_o time_n prove_v any_o corruption_n by_o any_o copy_n which_o be_v extant_a for_o say_v he_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v they_o will_v not_o embrace_v their_o write_n because_o they_o be_v write_v by_o such_o who_o be_v not_o careful_a of_o write_v truth_n their_o evasion_n will_v be_v more_o s●y_n and_o their_o error_n more_o pardonable_a but_o thus_o it_o seem_v they_o do_v by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n utter_o deny_v they_o to_o contain_v matter_n of_o truth_n in_o they_o and_o the_o reason_n be_v very_o obvious_a for_o it_o because_o that_o book_n give_v so_o clear_a a_o account_n of_o the_o send_v the_o spirit_n upon_o the_o apostle_n which_o the_o manichee_n pretend_v be_v to_o be_v only_o accomplish_v in_o the_o person_n of_o manichaeus_n and_o both_o before_o and_o after_o s._n austin_n mention_n it_o as_o their_o common_a speech_n capiebant_fw-la that_o before_o the_o time_n of_o manichaeus_n there_o have_v be_v corrupter_n of_o the_o sacred_a book_n who_o have_v mix_v several_a thing_n of_o their_o own_o with_o what_o be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o they_o lay_v upon_o the_o judaize_v christian_n because_o their_o great_a pique_n be_v against_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o probable_o some_o further_a reason_n may_v be_v from_o the_o nazarene_n gospel_n wherein_o many_o thing_n be_v insert_v by_o such_o as_o do_v judaize_v the_o same_o thing_n st._n austin_n charge_v they_o with_o when_o he_o give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o heresy_n and_o this_o likewise_o appear_v by_o the_o management_n of_o the_o dispute_n between_o s._n austin_n and_o faustus_n 2._o who_o be_v much_o the_o subtle_a man_n among_o they_o faustus_n acknowledge_v no_o more_o to_o be_v gospel_n than_o what_o contain_v the_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o therefore_o deny_v the_o genealogy_n to_o be_v any_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o afterward_o dispute_v against_o it_o both_o in_o s._n matthew_n and_o s._n luke_n and_o after_o this_o s._n austin_n note_v it_o as_o their_o usual_a custom_n when_o they_o can_v not_o avoid_v a_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n to_o deny_v it_o thus_o we_o see_v what_o kind_n of_o person_n these_o be_v and_o what_o their_o pretence_n be_v which_o s._n austin_n dispute_v against_o they_o embrace_v so_o much_o of_o scripture_n as_o please_v they_o and_o no_o more_o to_o this_o therefore_o s._n austin_n return_v these_o very_a substantial_a answer_n ib._n that_o if_o such_o proceed_n may_v be_v admit_v the_o divine_a authority_n of_o any_o book_n can_v signify_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o the_o convince_a of_o error_n that_o it_o be_v much_o more_o reasonable_a either_o with_o the_o pagan_n to_o deny_v the_o whole_a bible_n or_o with_o the_o jew_n to_o deny_v the_o new_a testament_n than_o thus_o to_o acknowledge_v in_o general_a the_o book_n divine_a and_o to_o quarrel_v with_o such_o particular_a passage_n as_o pinch_v they_o most_o that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o suspicion_n of_o corruption_n they_o ought_v to_o produce_v more_o true_a copy_n and_o more_o ancient_a book_n than_o they_o or_o else_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o original_a language_n with_o many_o other_o thing_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n to_o apply_v this_o now_o to_o the_o present_a place_n in_o dispute_n s._n austin_n in_o that_o book_n against_o the_o epistle_n of_o manichaeus_n begin_v with_o the_o preface_n to_o it_o which_o be_v make_v in_o imitation_n of_o the_o apostle_n strain_n and_o begin_v thus_o manichaeus_n apostolus_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la providentià_fw-la dei_fw-la patris_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o this_o s._n austin_n say_v he_o believe_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o that_o manichaeus_n be_v a_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o hope_n they_o will_v not_o be_v angry_a with_o he_o for_o it_o for_o he_o have_v learn_v of_o they_o not_o to_o believe_v without_o reason_n and_o therefore_o desire_v they_o to_o prove_v it_o it_o may_v be_v say_v he_o one_o of_o you_o may_v read_v i_o the_o gospel_n and_o thence_o persuade_v i_o to_o believe_v it_o but_o 5._o what_o if_o you_o shall_v meet_v with_o one_o who_o when_o you_o read_v the_o gospel_n shall_v say_v to_o you_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o but_o i_o shall_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o move_v i_o who_o therefore_o i_o obey_v in_o say_v believe_v the_o gospel_n shall_v i_o not_o obey_v in_o say_v believe_v not_o manichaeus_n the_o question_n we_o see_v be_v concern_v the_o prove_v the_o apostleship_n of_o manichaeus_n which_o can_v in_o itself_o be_v prove_v but_o from_o some_o record_n which_o must_v specify_v such_o a_o apostleship_n of_o he_o and_o to_o any_o one_o who_o shall_v question_v the_o authenticalness_n of_o those_o record_n it_o can_v only_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n without_o which_o s._n austin_n profess_v he_o shall_v never_o have_v believe_v the_o gospel_n i._n e._n that_o these_o be_v the_o only_a true_a and_o undoubted_a record_n which_o be_v leave_v we_o of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o action_n of_o christ._n and_o he_o have_v very_o good_a reason_n to_o say_v so_o for_o otherwise_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o book_n shall_v be_v question_v every_o time_n any_o one_o such_o as_o manichaeus_n shall_v pretend_v himself_o a_o apostle_n which_o controversy_n there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o way_n of_o decide_v but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n which_o have_v receive_v and_o embrace_v these_o copy_n from_o the_o time_n of_o their_o first_o publish_v and_o that_o this_o be_v s._n augustine_n meaning_n will_v appear_v by_o several_a parallel_n place_n in_o his_o dispute_n against_o the_o manichee_n for_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n speak_v concern_v the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o book_n say_v he_o i_o must_v believe_v ib._n as_o well_o as_o the_o gospel_n because_o the_o same_o catholic_n authority_n commend_v both_o i._n e._n the_o same_o testimony_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o deliver_v the_o gospel_n as_o the_o authentic_a write_n of_o the_o evangelist_n do_v likewise_o deliver_v the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o a_o authentic_a writing_n of_o one_o of_o the_o same_o evangelist_n so_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v the_o one_o and_o not_o the_o other_o so_o when_o he_o dispute_v against_o faustus_n who_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o some_o thing_n in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n he_o bid_v he_o show_v a_o true_a copy_n than_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n receive_v which_o copy_n if_o he_o shall_v produce_v he_o desire_v to_o know_v how_o he_o will_v prove_v it_o to_o be_v true_a to_o one_o that_o shall_v deny_v it_o what_o will_v you_o do_v say_v he_o whither_o will_v you_o turn_v yourself_o 2._o what_o original_a of_o your_o book_n can_v you_o show_v what_o antiquity_n what_o testimony_n of_o a_o succession_n of_o person_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o write_n of_o it_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a what_o huge_a advantage_n the_o catholic_n have_v who_o ib._n by_o a_o constant_a succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o apostolical_a see_v and_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o so_o many_o people_n have_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n confirm_v to_o they_o for_o the_o clear_n the_o validity_n of_o its_o testimony_n concern_v the_o record_n of_o scripture_n and_o after_o lay_v down_o rule_n for_o the_o try_v of_o copy_n where_o there_o appear_v any_o difference_n between_o they_o viz._n by_o compare_v they_o with_o the_o copy_n of_o other_o country_n ib._n from_o whence_o the_o doctrine_n original_o come_v and_o if_o those_o copy_n vary_v too_o the_o more_o copy_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o the_o few_o the_o ancient_a before_o the_o latter_a if_o yet_o any_o uncertainty_n remain_v the_o original_a language_n must_v be_v consult_v this_o be_v in_o case_n a_o question_n arise_v among_o the_o acknowledge_a authentical_a copy_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o which_o case_n we_o see_v he_o never_o send_v man_n to_o the_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n for_o certainty_n as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o copy_n but_o if_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o any_o writing_n itself_o be_v authentical_a or_o no_o than_o it_o stand_v to_o the_o great_a reason_n that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n shall_v be_v rely_v on_o which_o by_o reason_n of_o its_o large_a spread_v and_o continual_a succession_n from_o the_o very_a time_n of_o those_o write_n can_v but_o give_v the_o most_o indubitable_a testimony_n concern_v the_o authenticalness_n of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n and_o be_v it_o not_o for_o this_o testimony_n s._n austin_n may_v just_o say_v he_o shall_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n i._n e._n suppose_v those_o write_n which_o
to_o belief_n but_o the_o belief_n itself_o that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n rest_v upon_o scripture_n 84._o when_o a_o man_n find_v it_o to_o answer_v and_o exceed_v that_o which_o the_o church_n give_v in_o testimony_n for_o this_o his_o lordship_n cite_v origen_n who_o though_o much_o near_a the_o prime_a tradition_n than_o we_o be_v yet_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v inspire_v from_o god_n he_o say_v de_fw-fr hoc_fw-la assignabimus_fw-la ex_fw-la ipsis_fw-la scripture_n divinis_fw-la 1._o quae_fw-la nos_fw-la competentèr_fw-la moverint_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o will_v mention_v those_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n which_o have_v persuade_v we_o etc._n etc._n to_o this_o you_o answer_v though_o origen_n prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o that_o they_o be_v inspire_v from_o god_n 88_o yet_o do_v he_o never_o avow_v that_o this_o can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o they_o unless_o they_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o answer_n be_v very_o unreasonable_a for_o 1._o it_o may_v be_v just_o expect_v that_o his_o lordship_n have_v produce_v a_o express_a testimony_n to_o his_o purpose_n out_o of_o origen_n you_o shall_v have_v bring_v some_o other_o as_o clear_v for_o his_o believe_a scripture_n on_o the_o church_n infallibility_n which_o you_o be_v so_o far_o from_o that_o you_o will_v put_v we_o to_o prove_v a_o negative_a but_o if_o you_o will_v deal_v fair_o and_o as_o you_o ought_v to_o do_v produce_v your_o testimony_n out_o of_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n concern_v your_o church_n infallibility_n till_o then_o excuse_v we_o if_o we_o take_v their_o express_a word_n and_o leave_v you_o to_o gather_v infallibility_n out_o of_o their_o latent_fw-la meaning_n 2._o what_o do_v your_o infallibility_n conduce_v to_o the_o believe_a scripture_n for_o themselves_o for_o you_o say_v the_o scripture_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o themselves_o to_o be_v god_n word_n unless_o they_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n it_o seem_v then_o if_o they_o be_v so_o receive_v they_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o themselves_o to_o be_v god_n word_n be_v those_o proof_n by_o themselves_o sufficient_a for_o faith_n or_o no_o if_o not_o they_o be_v very_o slender_a proof_n if_o they_o be_v what_o need_v your_o church_n infallibility_n unless_o you_o will_v suppose_v no_o man_n can_v discern_v those_o proof_n without_o your_o church_n testimony_n and_o then_o they_o be_v not_o proof_n by_o themselves_o but_o from_o your_o church_n infallibility_n which_o may_v serve_v for_o one_o accession_n more_o to_o the_o heap_n of_o your_o contradiction_n his_o lordship_n assert_v the_o last_o resolution_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v into_o simple_o divine_a authority_n cite_v that_o speech_n of_o henr._n à_fw-la gandavo_fw-la that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n when_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o speak_v they_o do_v believe_v principal_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o god_n and_o not_o the_o apostle_n from_o whence_o he_o infer_v if_o where_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o speak_v the_o last_o resolution_n of_o faith_n be_v into_o god_n and_o not_o into_o themselves_o on_o their_o own_o account_n much_o more_o shall_v it_o now_o be_v into_o god_n and_o not_o the_o present_a church_n and_o into_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n than_o into_o the_o word_n of_o their_o successor_n make_v up_o into_o tradition_n all_o that_o you_o answer_v be_v that_o this_o argument_n must_v be_v solve_v by_o the_o bishop_n as_o well_o as_o you_o because_o he_o have_v grant_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v divine_a as_o well_o as_o you_o ibid._n be_v there_o ever_o a_o more_o senseless_a answer_n do_v gandavo_n deny_v the_o apostle_n authority_n to_o have_v be_v divine_a nay_o do_v he_o not_o imply_v it_o when_o he_o say_v man_n do_v not_o believe_v for_o the_o apostle_n sake_n but_o for_o god_n who_o speak_v by_o they_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v you_o receive_v our_o word_n not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o as_o it_o be_v indeed_o the_o word_n of_o god_n how_o the_o bishop_n shall_v be_v concern_v to_o answer_v this_o be_v beyond_o my_o skill_n to_o imagine_v if_o origen_n speak_v to_o such_o as_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o do_v the_o bishop_n too_o viz._n on_o the_o account_n of_o tradition_n and_o education_n if_o origen_n endeavour_v by_o those_o proof_n to_o confirm_v and_o settle_v their_o faith_n that_o be_v all_o the_o bishop_n aim_v at_o that_o a_o faith_n take_v up_o on_o the_o church_n tradition_n may_v be_v settle_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o internal_a argument_n of_o scripture_n but_o how_o you_o shall_v from_o this_o discourse_n assert_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v infallible_a in_o deliver_v the_o scripture_n be_v again_o beyond_o my_o reach_n neither_o can_v i_o possible_o think_v what_o shall_v bear_v the_o face_n of_o premise_n to_o such_o a_o conclusion_n unless_o it_o be_v if_o origen_n assert_v that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v believe_v for_o themselves_o if_o gandavo_n say_v that_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v into_o god_n himself_o than_o the_o church_n authority_n must_v be_v infallible_a but_o it_o appear_v already_o that_o the_o premise_n be_v true_a and_o what_o then_o remain_v but_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n which_o may_v indeed_o be_v list_v among_o your_o rare_a argumentation_n for_o infallibility_n 2._o that_o scripture_n can_v manifest_v itself_o to_o be_v a_o infallible_a light_n the_o proof_n of_o which_o be_v the_o design_n of_o your_o follow_a discourse_n 13._o wherein_o you_o first_o quarrel_n with_o the_o bishop_n for_o his_o argue_v from_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o light_n for_o thence_o you_o say_v it_o will_v only_o follow_v that_o the_o scripture_n manifest_v itself_o to_o be_v a_o light_n which_o you_o grant_v but_o that_o it_o shall_v manifest_v itself_o to_o be_v a_o infallible_a light_n you_o deny_v 89._o for_o say_v you_o unless_o he_o can_v show_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o light_n save_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o such_o as_o be_v infallible_a he_o can_v never_o make_v good_a his_o consequence_n for_o in_o seneca_n plutarch_n aristotle_n you_o read_v many_o light_n and_o those_o manifest_v themselves_o to_o be_v light_n but_o they_o do_v not_o therefore_o manifest_v themselves_o to_o be_v infallible_a light_n the_o substance_n of_o your_o argument_n lie_v in_o this_o the_o scripture_n discover_v the_o be_v of_o god_n so_o do_v the_o talmud_n and_o alcoran_n as_o well_o as_o it_o the_o scripture_n deliver_v abundance_n of_o moral_a instruction_n but_o these_o may_v be_v find_v in_o multitude_n of_o other_o book_n both_o of_o christian_n and_o jew_n and_o heathen_n and_o as_o we_o do_v not_o thence_o infer_v that_o these_o book_n be_v infallible_a so_o neither_o can_v we_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v this_o be_v the_o utmost_a of_o sense_n or_o reason_n which_o i_o can_v extract_v out_o of_o your_o discourse_n which_o reduce_v into_o form_n will_v come_v to_o this_o if_o the_o scripture_n contain_v nothing_o in_o they_o but_o what_o may_v be_v find_v in_o other_o book_n that_o be_v not_o infallible_a than_o the_o scripture_n can_v show_v themselves_o to_o be_v infallible_a but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a and_o therefore_o the_o consequent_a i_o can_v wish_v you_o will_v have_v take_v a_o little_a more_o pain_n in_o prove_v that_o which_o must_v be_v your_o assumption_n viz._n that_o scripture_n contain_v nothing_o in_o it_o but_o what_o may_v be_v see_v in_o seneca_n plutarch_n aristotle_n the_o talmud_n alcoran_n and_o other_o book_n of_o jew_n and_o heathen_n these_o be_v rare_a thing_n to_o assert_v among_o christian_n without_o offer_v at_o any_o more_o proof_n of_o they_o than_o you_o do_v which_o lie_v in_o this_o syllogism_n if_o scripture_n contain_v some_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v see_v in_o these_o book_n than_o it_o contain_v nothing_o but_o what_o may_v be_v see_v in_o these_o book_n but_o the_o scripture_n contain_v some_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v see_v in_o other_o book_n viz._n the_o existence_n of_o god_n and_o moral_a instruction_n therefore_o it_o contain_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v in_o they_o and_o do_v you_o real_o think_v that_o you_o have_v now_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o scripture_n that_o can_v show_v itself_o to_o be_v infallible_a because_o some_o thing_n be_v common_a to_o other_o write_n will_v you_o not_o take_v it_o very_o ill_o that_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o you_o have_v no_o more_o brain_n than_o a_o horse_n or_o a_o creature_n of_o a_o like_a nature_n because_o they_o have_v sense_n and_o motion_n as_o well_o as_o you_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o very_a same_o argument_n whereby_o you_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n can_v show_v
represent_v his_o meaning_n for_o where_o he_o do_v most_o full_o and_o large_o express_v himself_o he_o use_v these_o word_n which_o for_o clear_v his_o meaning_n must_v be_v full_o produce_v scripture_n teach_v all_o supernatural_o reveal_v truth_n 8_o without_o the_o knowledge_n whereof_o salvation_n can_v be_v attain_v the_o main_a principle_n whereon_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o thing_n therein_o contain_v depend_v be_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o oracle_n of_o god_n himself_o this_o in_o itself_o we_o can_v say_v be_v evident_a for_o then_o all_o man_n that_o hear_v it_o will_v acknowledge_v it_o in_o heart_n as_o they_o do_v when_o they_o hear_v that_o every_o whole_a be_v more_o than_o any_o part_n of_o that_o whole_a because_o this_o in_o itself_o be_v evident_a the_o other_o we_o know_v that_o all_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v it_o when_o they_o hear_v it_o there_o must_v be_v therefore_o some_o former_a knowledge_n presuppose_v which_o do_v herein_o assure_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o believer_n scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o save_a truth_n which_o god_n have_v discover_v to_o the_o world_n by_o revelation_n and_o it_o presume_v we_o teach_v otherwise_o that_o itself_o be_v divine_a and_o sacred_a the_o question_n then_o be_v by_o what_o mean_v we_o be_v teach_v this_o some_o answer_n that_o to_o learn_v it_o we_o have_v no_o other_o way_n then_o only_a tradition_n as_o namely_o that_o so_o we_o believe_v because_o both_o we_o from_o our_o predecessor_n and_o they_o from_o they_o have_v so_o receive_v but_o be_v this_o enough_o that_o which_o all_o man_n experience_n teach_v they_o may_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a be_v deny_v and_o by_o experience_n we_o all_o know_v that_o the_o first_o motive_n lead_v man_n so_o to_o esteem_v of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n church_n for_o when_o we_o know_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n have_v that_o opinion_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o judge_v it_o even_o at_o the_o first_o a_o impudent_a thing_n for_o any_o man_n breed_v and_o bring_v up_o in_o the_o church_n to_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a mind_n without_o cause_n afterward_o the_o more_o we_o bestow_v our_o labour_n in_o read_v or_o hear_v the_o mystery_n thereof_o the_o more_o we_o find_v that_o the_o thing_n itself_o do_v answer_v our_o receive_a opinion_n concern_v it_o so_o that_o the_o former_a inducement_n prevail_v somewhat_o with_o we_o before_o do_v now_o much_o more_o prevail_v when_o the_o very_a thing_n have_v minister_v far_a reason_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v more_o plain_a if_o man_n meaning_n may_v be_v gather_v from_o their_o word_n especial_o when_o purposely_o they_o treat_v of_o a_o subject_n than_o that_o hooker_n make_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o primary_n inducement_n to_o faith_n and_o that_o rational_a evidence_n which_o discover_v itself_o in_o the_o doctrine_n reveal_v to_o be_v that_o which_o it_o be_v final_o resolve_v into_o for_o as_o his_o lordship_n say_v on_o this_o very_a place_n of_o hooker_n the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n ever_o settle_v upon_o the_o far_a reason_n it_o can_v not_o upon_o the_o first_o inducement_n 90._o by_o this_o place_n then_o where_o this_o worthy_a author_n most_o clear_o and_o full_o deliver_v his_o judgement_n we_o ought_v in_o reason_n to_o interpret_v all_o other_o occasional_a and_o incidental_a passage_n on_o the_o same_o subject_n so_o in_o that_o other_o place_n for_o whatsoever_o we_o believe_v concern_v salvation_n by_o christ_n although_o the_o scripture_n be_v therein_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o belief_n yet_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n be_v 7._o if_o we_o mark_v it_o the_o key_n which_o open_v the_o door_n of_o entrance_n into_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n i_o will_v not_o dispute_v whether_o here_o he_o speak_v concern_v the_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v scripture_n or_o concern_v the_o natural_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o scripture_n suppose_v i_o shall_v grant_v you_o the_o latter_a it_o will_v make_v little_a for_o your_o purpose_n for_o when_o he_o add_v the_o scripture_n do_v not_o teach_v we_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o god_n unless_o we_o do_v credit_n man_n who_o have_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n do_v signify_v those_o thing_n you_o need_v not_o here_o bid_v we_o stay_v a_o while_n for_o his_o sense_n be_v plain_a and_o obvious_a viz._n that_o man_n can_v come_v to_o the_o natural_a sense_n and_o importance_n of_o the_o word_n use_v in_o scripture_n unless_o they_o rely_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n for_o the_o signification_n of_o those_o word_n he_o speak_v not_o here_o then_o at_o all_o concern_v church-tradition_n proper_o take_v but_o mere_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n which_o he_o contend_v must_v in_o many_o case_n be_v rely_v on_o particular_o in_o that_o of_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n which_o occur_v in_o scripture_n therefore_o with_o his_o lordship_n leave_n and_o you_o too_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o in_o this_o place_n hooker_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n do_v understand_v church-tradition_n but_o if_o i_o may_v so_o call_v it_o humane-tradition_n viz._n that_o which_o acquaint_v we_o with_o the_o force_n and_o signification_n of_o word_n in_o use_n when_o therefore_o you_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v tradition_n only_o which_o be_v all_o the_o ground_n he_o put_v of_o believe_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n from_o those_o word_n of_o he_o that_o utter_o to_o infringe_v the_o force_n and_o strength_n of_o man_n testimony_n be_v to_o shake_v the_o very_a fortress_n of_o god_n truth_n now_o say_v you_o how_o can_v that_o fortress_n the_o scripture_n be_v shake_v be_v not_o that_o authority_n esteem_v by_o he_o the_o ground_n of_o that_o fortress_n that_o may_v very_o easy_o be_v show_v viz._n by_o call_v in_o question_n the_o truth_n of_o humane_a testimony_n in_o general_a for_o he_o plain_o speak_v of_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o humane_a testimony_n as_o that_o be_v whereby_o we_o know_v there_o be_v such_o a_o city_n as_o rome_n that_o such_o and_o such_o be_v pope_n of_o rome_n wherein_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o persuasion_n can_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o humane_a testimony_n now_o take_v away_o the_o credit_n and_o validity_n of_o this_o testimony_n the_o very_a fortress_n of_o truth_n must_v needs_o be_v shake_v for_o we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v such_o person_n as_o moses_n the_o prophet_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o the_o world_n we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a of_o the_o meaning_n of_o any_o thing_n write_v by_o they_o but_o how_o far_o be_v this_o from_o the_o final_a resolution_n of_o faith_n into_o church-tradition_n but_o the_o place_n you_o lay_v the_o great_a force_n on_o be_v that_o which_o you_o first_o cite_v out_o of_o he_o final_o we_o all_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n be_v sacred_a 4._o and_o that_o they_o have_v proceed_v from_o god_n ourselves_o we_o assure_v that_o we_o do_v right_a well_o in_o so_o believe_v we_o have_v for_o this_o a_o demonstration_n sound_a and_o infallible_a but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o do_v or_o can_v possible_o assure_v we_o that_o we_o do_v well_o to_o think_v it_o his_o word_n from_o hence_o you_o infer_v that_o either_o he_o must_v settle_v no_o infallible_a ground_n at_o all_o or_o must_v say_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o ground_n no_o infallible_a ground_n in_o your_o sense_n i_o grant_v it_o but_o well_o enough_o in_o his_o own_o for_o all_o the_o difficulty_n lie_v in_o understanding_n what_o he_o mean_v by_o infallible_a which_o he_o take_v not_o in_o your_o sense_n for_o a_o supernatural_a but_o only_o for_o a_o rational_a infallibility_n not_o such_o a_o one_o as_o exclude_v possibility_n of_o deception_n but_o all_o reasonable_a doubt_n in_o which_o sense_n he_o say_v of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v capable_a only_o of_o moral_a certainty_n that_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n will_v stand_v as_o a_o ground_n of_o infallible_a assurance_n 8._o and_o present_o instance_v in_o these_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o city_n of_o rome_n that_o pius_n 5._o be_v pope_n there_o etc._n etc._n so_o afterward_o he_o say_v that_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n desire_v evermore_o to_o know_v the_o truth_n according_a to_o the_o most_o infallible_a certainty_n which_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n can_v yield_v by_o which_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o utmost_a certainty_n which_o thing_n be_v capable_a of_o be_v with_o he_o infallible_a certainty_n and_o so_o a_o sound_n and_o infallible_a ground_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o certain_a ground_n which_o we_o all_o assert_v may_v be_v have_v without_o your_o church_n infallible_a testimony_n whether_o therefore_o briere_o and_o you_o be_v not_o guilty_a if_o
catholic_n church_n may_v be_v easy_o discern_v which_o it_o be_v plain_a from_o the_o proceed_n in_o it_o be_v as_o in_o all_o such_o emergent_a case_n what_o shall_v be_v determine_v and_o agree_v on_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n i._n e._n of_o those_o church_n which_o all_o consent_v in_o the_o same_o catholic_n faith_n and_o therefore_o make_v up_o one_o catholic_n church_n now_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v the_o centre_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n and_o have_v infuse_v catholic_n unity_n into_o the_o church_n at_o this_o time_n what_o way_n or_o possibility_n have_v there_o be_v for_o restore_v the_o church_n unity_n neither_o be_v the_o appeal_n make_v to_o foreign_a church_n mere_o because_o rome_n itself_o be_v divide_v and_o so_o the_o controversy_n can_v not_o be_v end_v there_o but_o it_o appear_v from_o the_o whole_a story_n of_o the_o proceed_n that_o this_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o proper_a mean_n for_o preserve_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o apostolical_a church_n be_v so_o full_o know_v and_o distinguish_v from_o all_o other_o these_o thing_n will_v more_o full_o appear_v from_o st._n cyprian_n epistle_n to_o antonianus_n upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o this_o schism_n rigalt_n who_o it_o seem_v at_o first_o adhere_v to_o cornelius_n and_o with_o he_o to_o the_o catholic_n church_n not_o as_o though_o his_o join_n with_o cornelius_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o be_v with_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o because_o in_o join_v with_o he_o he_o join_v with_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o declare_v for_o he_o but_o it_o seem_v afterward_o by_o some_o letter_n of_o novatianus_n he_o begin_v to_o stagger_v and_o desire_v cyprian_a to_o give_v he_o a_o account_n what_o heresy_n novatianus_n broach_v and_o what_o the_o reason_n be_v why_o cornelius_n communicate_v with_o the_o lapse_v person_n as_o to_o which_o particular_n he_o endeavour_v to_o satisfy_v he_o and_o withal_o to_o give_v a_o account_n why_o they_o join_v with_o cornelius_n in_o opposition_n to_o novatianus_n and_o what_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o to_o lapse_v person_n and_o on_o what_o reason_n it_o be_v build_v wherein_o he_o tell_v he_o that_o though_o some_o of_o their_o own_o bishop_n have_v former_o deny_v communion_n to_o lapse_v person_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o recede_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o communion_n of_o their_o fellowship_n because_o by_o they_o they_o be_v admit_v for_o say_v he_o the_o bond_n of_o concord_n remain_v and_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n continue_v 52._o every_o bishop_n order_n and_o dispose_v his_o own_o action_n as_o one_o that_o must_v give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o design_n to_o god_n do_v st._n cyprian_n here_o speak_v like_o one_o that_o believe_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o centre_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n or_o that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n lie_v in_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v christ_n vicar_n or_o in_o dependence_n on_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o every_o bishop_n be_v leave_v to_o himself_o and_o god_n in_o all_o such_o thing_n which_o he_o may_v do_v and_o yet_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o therefore_o afterward_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v one_o church_n divide_v into_o many_o member_n throughout_o the_o world_n 81._o and_o one_o episcopal_a office_n spread_v abroad_o by_o the_o consent_a multitude_n of_o many_o bishop_n if_o this_o church_n be_v one_o in_o this_o sense_n and_o the_o whole_a government_n of_o the_o church_n but_o as_o one_o bishopric_n as_o all_o the_o bishop_n unanimous_o consent_v in_o the_o management_n of_o it_o then_o here_o be_v not_o the_o least_o foundation_n for_o the_o catholic_n church_n take_v its_o denomination_n causal_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o much_o less_o for_o the_o bishop_n have_v dependence_n on_o she_o or_o relation_n to_o she_o since_o the_o care_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o these_o word_n of_o cyprian_a appear_v to_o be_v equal_o commit_v to_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o from_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o in_o this_o epistle_n we_o read_v that_o st._n cyprian_a write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n after_o the_o death_n of_o fabianus_n to_o advise_v they_o what_o to_o do_v in_o the_o case_n of_o lapse_v person_n which_o letter_n of_o he_o be_v send_v through_o the_o world_n which_o rigaltius_n well_o observe_v do_v arise_v from_o that_o unity_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n 64._o whereby_o cyprian_n not_o doubt_v but_o the_o care_n of_o all_o church_n be_v upon_o he_o dispatch_v these_o letter_n to_o the_o clergy_n at_o rome_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v send_v through_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o a_o evidence_n that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o episcopal_a office_n in_o the_o whole_a church_n part_n of_o which_o be_v commit_v in_o full_a power_n to_o every_o bishop_n thus_o we_o see_v a_o quite_o different_a account_n give_v of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n then_o what_o you_o from_o cardinal_n perron_n will_v persuade_v we_o of_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n for_o man_n of_o wit_n and_o part_n especial_o such_o as_o that_o great_a cardinal_n be_v master_n of_o to_o coin_v distinction_n to_o make_v the_o most_o absurd_a thing_n seem_v plausible_a but_o yet_o when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v examine_v they_o be_v find_v to_o have_v no_o other_o bottom_n but_o the_o invention_n of_o that_o person_n who_o coin_v they_o and_o that_o it_o be_v so_o as_o to_o this_o distinction_n of_o the_o formal_a causal_n and_o participative_a catholic_n church_n 9_o will_v be_v further_a evident_a from_o another_o case_n which_o happen_v in_o st._n cyprian_n time_n which_o be_v this_o felicissimus_n and_o fortunatus_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o communion_n by_o a_o synod_n of_o african_a bishop_n when_o they_o see_v they_o can_v do_v little_a good_a in_o africa_n run_v over_o to_o rome_n and_o bring_v letter_n to_o cornelius_n the_o bishop_n there_o misrepresent_v the_o whole_a business_n of_o their_o be_v eject_v out_o of_o the_o church_n on_o purpose_n to_o persuade_v cornelius_n to_o admit_v they_o into_o communion_n who_o at_o first_o be_v unwilling_a to_o hearken_v to_o they_o be_v at_o last_o by_o their_o threat_n and_o menace_n bring_v to_o receive_v their_o letter_n upon_o which_o st._n cyprian_n write_v a_o epistle_n to_o cornelius_n wherein_o he_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o the_o threat_n of_o such_o profligate_v person_n shall_v relax_v the_o church_n discipline_n all_o the_o power_n and_o strength_n of_o it_o will_v be_v soon_o take_v away_o that_o the_o ground_n of_o all_o schism_n and_o heresy_n arise_v from_o disobedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n certain_o he_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o every_o bishop_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o it_o be_v not_o cornelius_n but_o cyprian_a and_o the_o african_a bishop_n who_o be_v disobey_v upon_o which_o he_o fall_v upon_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o appeal_n to_o a_o foreign_a church_n and_o after_o some_o fair_a commendation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o meaning_n of_o which_o will_v be_v afterward_o examine_v he_o very_o sharp_o condemn_v these_o appeal_n to_o foreign_a church_n as_o unreasonable_a unjust_a and_o dishonourable_a to_o those_o bishop_n who_o sentence_n they_o appeal_v from_o for_o what_o cause_n say_v he_o can_v these_o person_n have_v of_o come_v and_o declare_v against_o their_o bishop_n for_o either_o they_o be_v please_v in_o what_o they_o have_v do_v and_o continue_v in_o their_o wickedness_n or_o if_o they_o be_v displease_v at_o it_o and_o recede_v from_o it_o they_o know_v whither_o to_o return_v for_o since_o it_o be_v decree_v by_o we_o all_o and_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n just_a and_o reasonable_a in_o itself_o 95._o that_o every_o one_o cause_n be_v hear_v where_o the_o fault_n be_v commit_v and_o every_o pastor_n have_v a_o part_n of_o the_o flock_n commit_v to_o he_o which_o he_o be_v to_o rule_v and_o govern_v as_o be_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o it_o to_o god_n it_o be_v requisite_a that_o those_o who_o we_o rule_v over_o ought_v not_o to_o run_v about_o and_o break_v the_o concord_n of_o bishop_n by_o their_o headdiness_n and_o subtlety_n but_o there_o to_o defend_v their_o cause_n where_o they_o may_v have_v accuser_n and_o witness_n of_o their_o fault_n unless_o it_o be_v that_o to_o a_o few_o desperate_a and_o profligate_v person_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n seem_v less_o to_o they_o who_o have_v already_o sit_v in_o judgement_n upon_o they_o and_o solemn_o condemn_v they_o late_o for_o their_o crime_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v more_o express_a
proceed_v so_o high_a in_o the_o letter_n of_o excommunication_n against_o andronicus_n that_o he_o forbid_v all_o the_o church_n upon_o earth_n to_o receive_v he_o into_o their_o communion_n and_o withal_o add_v petau._n that_o if_o any_o shall_v contemn_v his_o church_n because_o it_o be_v of_o a_o little_a city_n and_o shall_v receive_v those_o who_o be_v condemn_v by_o it_o as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o obey_v so_o poor_a a_o church_n he_o let_v they_o know_v that_o they_o make_v a_o schism_n in_o that_o church_n which_o christ_n will_v have_v to_o be_v one_o we_o see_v here_o on_o what_o equal_a term_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n then_o stand_v when_o so_o small_a a_o church_n as_o that_o of_o ptolemais_n can_v so_o far_o oblige_v by_o she_o act_v the_o catholic_n church_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n who_o admit_v they_o to_o communion_n who_o she_o have_v cast_v out_o of_o it_o if_o synesius_n have_v believe_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o have_v be_v the_o centre_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n have_v it_o not_o be_v good_a manner_n nay_o duty_n in_o he_o to_o have_v ask_v first_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o case_n before_o he_o have_v pass_v so_o full_a and_o definitive_a a_o sentence_n as_o this_o be_v but_o the_o wise_a and_o great_a man_n of_o those_o age_n be_v utter_o stranger_n to_o these_o rare_a distinction_n of_o a_o causal_n formal_a and_o participative_a catholic_n church_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o they_o do_v then_o speak_v honourable_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o their_o age_n as_o a_o principal_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o have_v advantage_n above_o other_o church_n by_o its_o be_v fix_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n on_o which_o account_n her_o communion_n be_v much_o desire_v by_o other_o person_n but_o still_o we_o find_v the_o person_n most_o apt_a to_o extol_v her_o authority_n be_v such_o as_o be_v most_o obnoxious_a who_o not_o be_v able_a to_o hold_v any_o reputation_n in_o their_o own_o church_n where_o their_o crime_n and_o scandal_n be_v sufficient_o know_v run_v present_o to_o rome_n which_o be_v ready_a still_o to_o take_v their_o part_n thereby_o to_o enhance_v her_o power_n as_o be_v most_o evident_a in_o the_o many_o dispute_n which_o arise_v upon_o such_o account_n between_o the_o roman_a and_o african_a bishop_n but_o these_o thing_n we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o discuss_v more_o particular_o afterward_o at_o the_o present_a it_o may_v be_v sufficient_a by_o these_o few_o of_o very_a many_o example_n which_o may_v be_v produce_v to_o have_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v far_o from_o be_v a_o know_a and_o receive_v truth_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o centre_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n or_o that_o the_o church_n be_v call_v catholic_n from_o the_o union_n with_o she_o and_o dependence_n upon_o she_o but_o we_o must_v now_o consider_v what_o strenuous_a proof_n you_o produce_v for_o so_o confident_a a_o affirmation_n 11._o your_o instance_n therefore_o be_v the_o most_o pregnant_a to_o your_o purpose_n which_o you_o can_v find_v in_o antiquity_n must_v be_v particular_o examine_v your_o first_o be_v of_o st._n ambrose_n 131._o relate_v that_o his_o brother_n satyrus_n go_v on_o shore_n in_o a_o certain_a city_n of_o sardinia_n where_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v baptise_a demand_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n whether_o he_o consent_v with_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n that_o be_v say_v he_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n frair_n these_o word_n i_o grant_v to_o be_v in_o st._n ambrose_n but_o whosoever_o thorough_o consider_v they_o will_v find_v how_o little_o they_o make_v for_o your_o purpose_n for_o which_o it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o look_v on_o the_o follow_a word_n which_o tell_v we_o that_o at_o that_o time_n there_o be_v a_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n and_o sardinia_n be_v the_o chief_a seat_n of_o it_o for_o lucifer_n caralitanus_n have_v new_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o church_n scholiis_fw-la and_o have_v leave_v society_n there_o which_o join_v in_o his_o schism_n for_o caralis_n be_v the_o metropolis_n of_o sardinia_n and_o it_o appear_v by_o st._n hierome_n that_o the_o luciferian_o confine_v the_o church_n only_o to_o sardinia_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o expression_n of_o he_o that_o christ_n do_v not_o come_v mere_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o sardinian_o so_o that_o those_o luciferian_o be_v much_o like_o the_o donatist_n confine_v the_o church_n only_o to_o their_o own_o number_n now_o there_o be_v such_o a_o schism_n at_o that_o time_n in_o sardinia_n what_o do_v satyrus_n any_o more_o than_o inquire_v whether_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o place_n he_o resort_v to_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o schism_n or_o no_o but_o say_v you_o he_o make_v that_o the_o trial_n whether_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_n or_o no_o by_o ask_v whether_o he_o agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v very_o great_a reason_n for_o his_o particular_a instance_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 1._o because_o satyrus_n be_v original_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n himself_o for_o paulinus_n in_o the_o life_n of_o s._n ambrose_n satyrus_n his_o brother_n speak_v of_o he_o after_o his_o consecration_n to_o be_v bishop_n say_v ad_fw-la urbem_fw-la romam_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la natale_fw-la solum_fw-la perrexit_fw-la he_o go_v to_o rome_n i._n e._n to_o the_o place_n of_o his_o birth_n now_o satyrus_n be_v original_o a_o roman_n what_o wonder_n be_v it_o that_o he_o shall_v particular_o inquire_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o suppose_v one_o of_o the_o gallican_n church_n of_o arles_n or_o vienna_n shall_v have_v be_v cast_v upon_o shore_n in_o another_o island_n belong_v to_o france_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o understand_v there_o be_v a_o schism_n in_o the_o place_n shall_v particular_o inquire_v whether_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n i._n e._n with_o the_o church_n of_o arles_n or_o vienna_n can_v you_o hence_o infer_v that_o either_o of_o these_o be_v the_o centre_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n and_o if_o not_o from_o hence_o how_o can_v you_o from_o the_o other_o or_o suppose_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o donatists_n schism_n in_o africa_n a_o stranger_n come_v accidental_o thither_o and_o desire_a communion_n with_o the_o christian_n of_o that_o city_n he_o be_v in_o shall_v inquire_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n whether_o he_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n i._n e._n with_o the_o church_n of_o hippo_n or_o carthage_n can_v you_o hence_o infer_v that_o hippo_n be_v causal_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o if_o not_o with_o what_o reason_n can_v you_o do_v it_o from_o so_o parallel_v a_o case_n 2._o because_o sardinia_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o metropolitan_a province_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o suburbicarian_a province_n under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o roman_a lieutenant_n and_o consequent_o one_o of_o the_o suburbicarian_a church_n appertain_v to_o the_o metropolitan_a power_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v but_o reason_n to_o ask_v whether_o the_o church_n in_o sardinia_n do_v agree_v with_o their_o mother_n church_n or_o no._n but_o all_o this_o be_v very_o far_o from_o imply_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n come_v from_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n on_o this_o account_n because_o at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v preserve_v by_o that_o continual_a correspondence_n between_o the_o part_n of_o it_o by_o the_o form_a letter_n and_o otherwise_o who_o ever_o be_v know_v to_o have_v communion_n with_o any_o one_o particular_a church_n which_o communicate_v with_o the_o rest_n have_v thereby_o communion_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n so_o that_o on_o that_o account_n the_o question_n may_v as_o well_o have_v be_v ask_v of_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n agobio_n or_o any_o other_o in_o italy_n as_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o whosoever_o communicate_v with_o any_o of_o they_o do_v communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o well_o as_o those_o who_o do_v communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o that_o your_o first_o instance_n will_v prove_v no_o more_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o fountain_n and_o centre_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n than_o any_o other_o particular_a church_n your_o second_o be_v from_o st._n hieromes_n saying_n that_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n make_v it_o her_o glory_n to_o participate_v of_o the_o roman_a faith_n theophil_n but_o do_v it_o hence_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n be_v therefore_o catholic_n because_o she_o participate_v of_o
be_v to_o show_v that_o their_o church_n from_o which_o the_o donatist_n separate_v be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n which_o he_o prove_v from_o their_o communion_n with_o all_o the_o apostolical_a church_n which_o have_v a_o clear_a and_o distinct_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n their_o planter_n and_o because_o of_o the_o vicinity_n and_o fame_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o easy_a know_v the_o succession_n there_o he_o instance_v in_o that_o in_o the_o first_o place_n and_o then_o proceed_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o they_o but_o withal_o to_o show_v the_o unity_n of_o all_o these_o apostolical_a church_n when_o he_o have_v mention_v siricius_n as_o the_o present_a bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o add_v that_o all_o the_o world_n agree_v with_o he_o in_o the_o intercourse_n of_o the_o form_v letter_n not_o thereby_o intimate_v any_o supremacy_n of_o that_o church_n above_o other_o but_o to_o show_v that_o that_o succession_n he_o instance_v in_o at_o rome_n be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n because_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n do_v agree_v in_o communion_n with_o he_o that_o be_v the_o bishop_n there_o and_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o one_o chair_n it_o be_v plain_a he_o mean_v it_o of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n because_o every_o apostolical_a church_n have_v a_o apostolical_a chair_n belong_v to_o it_o so_o tertullian_n express_o that_o in_o all_o the_o apostolical_a church_n there_o be_v their_o chair_n still_o remain_v 32._o and_o eusebius_n particular_o mention_n the_o apostolical_a throne_n or_o chair_n at_o jerusalem_n as_o other_o do_v that_o of_o mark_n at_o alexandria_n and_o of_o the_o rest_n elsewhere_o nothing_o then_o can_v possible_o be_v infer_v from_o these_o word_n of_o optatus_n concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o what_o will_v equal_o hold_v for_o any_o other_o apostolical_a church_n and_o how_o much_o that_o be_v let_v the_o reader_n judge_n and_o how_o much_o soever_o it_o be_v it_o will_v be_v very_o little_a for_o your_o advantage_n who_o pretend_v to_o something_o peculiar_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n above_o all_o other_o church_n from_o optatus_n you_o proceed_v or_o rather_o return_v to_o s._n hierom_n who_o say_v you_o profess_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o s._n peter_n be_v see_v 15._o ibid._n and_o that_o whoever_o eat_v the_o lamb_n that_o be_v pretend_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o partake_v of_o the_o sacrament_n out_o of_o that_o house_n that_o be_v damas._n out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n be_v profane_a and_o a_o alien_n yea_o that_o he_o belong_v to_o antichrist_n and_o not_o to_o christ_n whoever_o consent_v not_o with_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n this_o testimony_n sound_v big_a and_o high_a at_o first_o and_o i_o shall_v not_o impute_v these_o expression_n either_o to_o s._n hierome_n heat_n or_o his_o flattery_n although_o it_o look_v the_o more_o suspicious_a because_o at_o that_o time_n he_o have_v so_o great_a a_o pique_n against_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n and_o that_o these_o word_n be_v contain_v in_o a_o complemental_a address_n to_o damasus_n but_o set_v aside_o what_o advantage_n may_v be_v gain_v on_o that_o account_n to_o weaken_v the_o force_n of_o this_o testimony_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o occasion_n or_o nature_n of_o these_o expression_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o reach_v not_o the_o purpose_n you_o design_v they_o for_o we_o must_v therefore_o consider_v that_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o write_v this_o epistle_n s._n hierom_n seem_v to_o be_v in_o a_o great_a perplexity_n what_o to_o do_v in_o that_o division_n which_o be_v then_o in_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n concern_v paulinus_n vitalis_n and_o miletius_n but_o beside_o this_o schism_n it_o seem_v s._n hierom_n suspect_v some_o remainder_n of_o arrianism_n to_o be_v still_o among_o they_o from_o their_o demand_v of_o he_o whether_o he_o acknowledge_v three_o distinct_a hypostasis_n in_o the_o trinity_n 8._o now_o s._n hierom_n by_o hypostasis_fw-la understand_v the_o essence_n as_o many_o of_o the_o greek_a father_n do_v and_o thence_o the_o sardian_n council_n define_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o hypostasis_fw-la of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o he_o suspect_v that_o when_o they_o require_v of_o he_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o three_o hypostasis_n they_o may_v design_v to_o entrap_v he_o and_o unaware_o betray_v he_o into_o arrianism_n and_o therefore_o argue_v stiff_o in_o the_o remainder_n of_o that_o epistle_n that_o hypostasis_fw-la proper_o signify_v essence_n and_o nothing_o else_o and_o from_o thence_o urge_v the_o inconvenience_n of_o admit_v the_o term_n of_o three_o hypostasis_n ib._n now_o s._n hierom_n be_v thus_o set_v upon_o by_o these_o eastern_a bishop_n he_o keep_v off_o from_o communion_n with_o they_o and_o advise_v with_o the_o egyptian_a confessor_n and_o follow_v they_o at_o present_a but_o have_v receive_v his_o baptism_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o be_v look_v on_o as_o a_o roman_a where_o he_o be_v he_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o address_v himself_o to_o pope_n damasus_n ib._n to_o know_v what_o he_o shall_v do_v in_o this_o case_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o if_o s._n hierom_n have_v consent_v with_o they_o they_o will_v have_v look_v on_o it_o as_o a_o evidence_n of_o the_o agreement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o they_o therefore_o he_o so_o earnest_o and_o importunate_o write_v to_o damasus_n concern_v it_o as_o be_v original_o part_v of_o his_o charge_n have_v be_v baptize_v in_o that_o church_n but_o say_v you_o whatever_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o word_n be_v be_v it_o not_o plain_a that_o he_o make_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v on_o s._n peter_n see_v and_o that_o whosoever_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n be_v a_o alien_n and_o belong_v to_o antichrist_n to_o that_o therefore_o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v build_v on_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n for_o it_o be_v not_o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la as_o refer_v to_o the_o cathedra_fw-la immediate_o precede_v but_o super_fw-la illam_fw-la and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o improbable_o suppose_v by_o some_o that_o the_o rock_n here_o refer_v to_o christ._n and_o although_o erasmus_n do_v imagine_v that_o some_o particular_a privilege_n and_o dignity_n do_v belong_v to_o rome_n above_o other_o church_n from_o this_o place_n which_o be_v not_o the_o thing_n we_o contend_v about_o yet_o withal_o he_o say_v that_o by_o the_o rock_n we_o must_v not_o understand_v rome_n for_o that_o may_v degenerate_v but_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o faith_n which_o peter_n profess_v 57_o and_o it_o be_v a_o much_o easy_a matter_n for_o marianus_n victorius_n to_o tell_v he_o he_o lie_v as_o he_o do_v here_o in_o plain_a term_n than_o to_o be_v able_a to_o confute_v what_o he_o say_v and_o that_o the_o rather_o because_o he_o begin_v his_o discourse_n in_o that_o manner_n ego_fw-la nullum_fw-la primum_fw-la nisi_fw-la christum_fw-la sequens_fw-la whereby_o he_o attribute_n the_o supreme_a power_n and_o infallible_a judgement_n in_o the_o church_n only_o to_o christ._n for_o as_o for_o your_o learned_a correction_n of_o praemium_fw-la for_o primum_fw-la though_o you_o follow_v cardinal_n perron_n in_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v without_o any_o probability_n at_o all_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o the_o mss._n use_v by_o erasmus_n victorius_n gravius_n possevin_n and_o other_o and_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o vouch_v it_o but_o only_o gratian_n who_o be_v condemn_v by_o your_o own_o writer_n for_o a_o falsifier_n and_o corrupter_n of_o author_n 2._o i_o answer_v when_o s._n hierom_n pronounce_v those_o alien_n and_o profane_a who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n either_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n or_o if_o it_o do_v it_o make_v not_o much_o for_o your_o purpose_n 1._o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n that_o he_o there_o speak_v of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n but_o that_o he_o rather_o speak_v of_o the_o true_a universal_a church_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a he_o speak_v of_o that_o church_n which_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o rock_n now_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n that_o can_v be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o that_o you_o suppose_v to_o be_v the_o rock_n itself_o viz._n the_o see_v of_o peter_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n build_v upon_o it_o must_v be_v the_o universal_a church_n and_o that_o this_o must_v be_v his_o meaning_n appear_v from_o his_o plain_a word_n for_o he_o say_v upon_o that_o rock_n the_o church_n be_v build_v and_o whosoever_o eat_v the_o lamb_n without_o this_o house_n be_v profane_a he_o can_v certain_o mean_v whosoever_o eat_v without_o the_o rock_n but_o without_o the_o house_n build_v upon_o it_o so_o that_o the_o house_n in_o the_o latter_a clause_n
consider_v they_o any_o further_a than_o have_v be_v do_v already_o in_o the_o very_a entrance_n into_o this_o conference_n and_o here_o you_o tell_v we_o you_o now_o come_v to_o perform_v your_o promise_n 16._o viz._n to_o examine_v more_o full_o his_o lordship_n pretend_a solution_n as_o you_o call_v they_o of_o bellarmine_n be_v authority_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o for_o all_o your_o boast_n at_o first_o what_o great_a thing_n you_o will_v do_v you_o seem_v a_o little_a fearful_a of_o engage_v too_o far_o and_o therefore_o be_v resolve_v only_o to_o maintain_v they_o in_o general_a as_o they_o make_v for_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o pope_n define_v article_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o general_n council_n but_o as_o far_o as_o you_o dare_v go_v i_o shall_v attend_v your_o motion_n and_o doubt_v not_o to_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o none_o of_o these_o authority_n have_v any_o reference_n to_o that_o sense_n which_o you_o only_o offer_v to_o maintain_v they_o in_o and_o that_o though_o they_o have_v yet_o no_o such_o thing_n as_o infallibility_n can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o they_o the_o first_o authority_n be_v out_o of_o s._n cyprian_n letter_n to_o cornelius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o word_n i_o be_o content_v shall_v be_v recite_v as_o full_o as_o may_v be_v 133._o in_o which_o he_o charge_v felicissimus_n and_o fortunatus_n with_o their_o complice_n 16._o that_o have_v set_v up_o a_o bishop_n against_o he_o at_o carthage_n they_o sail_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o the_o sacerdotal_a unity_n have_v its_o rise_n and_o carry_v letter_n from_o profane_a and_o schismatical_a person_n not_o consider_v that_o the_o roman_n who_o faith_n be_v commend_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v such_o to_o who_o perfidiousness_n can_v not_o have_v access_n now_o the_o meaning_n of_o this_o place_n you_o will_v have_v to_o be_v this_o and_o no_o other_o viz._n that_o the_o see_v of_o s._n peter_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a of_o all_o church_n be_v so_o infallible_o direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o no_o error_n in_o faith_n can_v have_v access_n to_o it_o or_o be_v admit_v by_o it_o if_o not_o as_o a_o particular_a church_n 134._o yet_o at_o least_o as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o the_o fountain_n of_o priestly_a unity_n which_o s._n cyprian_n here_o express_o affirm_v that_o church_n and_o see_v to_o be_v this_o you_o sum_n up_o at_o last_o as_o the_o most_o which_o can_v be_v make_v of_o this_o testimony_n and_o which_o be_v indeed_o far_o more_o in_o all_o particular_n than_o it_o can_v amount_v to_o which_o will_v appear_v by_o particular_a examination_n of_o what_o you_o return_v in_o answer_n to_o his_o lordship_n three_o thing_n his_o lordship_n answer_v to_o this_o place_n etc._n 1._o that_o perfidia_fw-la can_v hardly_o stand_v here_o for_o error_n in_o faith_n and_o if_o so_o then_o this_o can_v make_v nothing_o for_o infallibility_n 2._o that_o suppose_v it_o grant_v to_o signify_v error_n in_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n yet_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o roman_n absolute_o but_o with_o a_o respect_n to_o those_o first_o roman_n who_o faith_n be_v commend_v by_o the_o apostle_n 3._o that_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v rather_o a_o rhetorical_a insinuation_n than_o a_o dogmatical_a assertion_n and_o that_o s._n cyprian_a can_v not_o be_v suppose_v to_o assert_v herein_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n appear_v by_o the_o contract_n between_o he_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o be_v the_o short_a of_o his_o lordship_n answer_n to_o this_o place_n to_o which_o we_o must_v consider_v what_o you_o reply_v 1._o his_o lordship_n say_v that_o perfidia_fw-la can_v hardly_o stand_v for_o error_n in_o faith_n or_o misbelief_n but_o it_o proper_o signify_v malicious_a falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o trust_n and_o action_n not_o error_n in_o faith_n but_o in_o fact_n against_o the_o discipline_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o make_v this_o interpretation_n appear_v the_o more_o probable_a his_o lordship_n give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o story_n which_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o write_v that_o epistle_n which_o be_v this_o as_o his_o lordship_n report_v it_o from_o binius_fw-la and_o baronius_n in_o the_o year_n 255._o there_o be_v a_o council_n in_o carthage_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o two_o schismatic_n felicissimus_n and_o novatian_n about_o restore_v of_o they_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n which_o have_v lapse_v in_o time_n of_o danger_n from_o christianity_n to_o idolatry_n felicissimus_n will_v admit_v all_o even_a without_o penance_n and_o novatian_n will_v admit_v none_o no_o not_o after_o penance_n the_o father_n 42_o in_o number_n go_v as_o truth_n lead_v they_o between_o both_o extreme_n to_o this_o council_n come_v privatus_fw-la a_o know_a heretic_n but_o be_v not_o admit_v because_o he_o be_v former_o excommunicate_v and_o often_o condemn_v hereupon_o he_o gather_v his_o complice_n together_o and_o chooses_z one_o fortunatus_n who_o be_v former_o condemn_v as_o well_o as_o himself_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o set_v he_o up_o against_o st._n cyprian_n this_o do_v felicissimus_n and_o his_o fellow_n haste_v to_o rome_n with_o letter_n testimonial_a from_o their_o own_o party_n and_o pretend_v that_o 25_o bishop_n concur_v with_o they_o and_o their_o desire_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o to_o have_v their_o new_a bishop_n acknowledge_v cornelius_z then_o pope_n though_o their_o haste_n have_v now_o prevent_v st._n cyprian_n letter_n have_v former_o hear_v from_o he_o both_o of_o they_o and_o their_o schism_n in_o africa_n will_v neither_o hear_v they_o nor_o receive_v their_o letter_n they_o grow_v insolent_a and_o furious_a the_o ordinary_a way_n that_o schismatic_n take_v upon_o this_o cornelius_n write_v to_o st._n cyprian_n and_o st._n cyprian_n in_o this_o epistle_n give_v cornelius_n thanks_o for_o refuse_v these_o african_a fugitive_n declare_v their_o schism_n and_o wickedness_n at_o large_a and_o encourage_v he_o and_o all_o bishop_n to_o maintain_v the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o censure_n against_o any_o the_o bold_a threaten_n of_o wicked_a schismatic_n this_o be_v the_o story_n his_o lordship_n say_v he_o will_v fain_o know_v why_o perfidia_fw-la all_o circumstance_n consider_v may_v not_o stand_v here_o in_o its_o proper_a sense_n for_o cunning_a and_o perfidious_a deal_n which_o these_o man_n have_v practise_v at_o carthage_n think_v now_o to_o obtrude_v upon_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n also_o but_o that_o he_o be_v wary_a enough_o not_o to_o be_v overreach_v by_o busy_a schismatic_n this_o demand_n of_o his_o lordship_n seem_v very_o just_a and_o reasonable_a we_o be_v bind_v to_o consider_v what_o reason_n you_o give_v why_o perfidia_fw-la must_v be_v understand_v for_o error_n in_o faith_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sense_n here_o mention_v why_o call_v he_o say_v you_o st._n peter_n chair_n ecclesiam_fw-la principalem_fw-la the_o chief_a church_n but_o because_o it_o be_v the_o head_n to_o which_o all_o other_o church_n must_v be_v subordinate_a in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n 133._o the_o word_n follow_v signify_v as_o much_o unde_fw-la unitas_fw-la sacerdotalis_fw-la exorta_fw-la est_fw-la from_o which_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n as_o it_o be_v from_o its_o fountain_n unity_n in_o priesthood_n and_o consequent_o unity_n in_o faith_n be_v derive_v why_o bring_v he_o the_o apostle_n as_o panegyrist_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v it_o forsooth_o because_o no_o malicious_a falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o trust_n or_o error_n in_o fact_n against_o the_o discipline_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n can_v have_v access_n unto_o they_o as_o the_o bishop_n will_v needs_o misinterpret_v the_o place_n or_o rather_o because_o no_o error_n in_o faith_n can_v approach_v the_o see_v apostolic_a certain_a it_o be_v perfidia_fw-la in_o this_o sense_n be_v diametrical_o oppose_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_n immediate_o before_o commend_v by_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v true_a christian_a faith_n and_o consequent_o it_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v take_v for_o the_o quite_o contrary_a viz._n misbelief_n or_o error_n in_o faith_n three_o argument_n in_o these_o word_n you_o produce_v why_o perfidia_fw-la must_v be_v understand_v of_o error_n in_o faith_n 1._o because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v the_o chief_a church_n but_o be_v it_o not_o possible_a it_o shall_v be_v call_v so_o in_o any_o other_o sense_n but_o as_o the_o head_n of_o all_o other_o church_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n be_v it_o not_o sufficient_o clear_a from_o antiquity_n that_o there_o be_v other_o account_n of_o call_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o chief_a or_o principal_a church_n as_o the_o eminency_n of_o it_o join_v
with_o the_o power_n of_o the_o city_n the_o potentior_fw-la principalitas_fw-la in_o irenaeus_n which_o advance_v its_o reputation_n to_o the_o height_n it_o be_v then_o at_o what_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n do_v you_o find_v bring_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v infallible_o decide_v there_o in_o st._n cyprian_n time_n how_o little_a do_v st._n cyprian_n believe_v this_o when_o he_o so_o vehement_o oppose_v the_o judgement_n of_o stephen_n bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o case_n of_o rebaptisation_n do_v he_o write_v speak_v or_o carry_v himself_o in_o that_o controversy_n like_o one_o that_o own_v that_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v head_n of_o all_o other_o church_n to_o which_o they_o must_v be_v subordinate_a in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n nay_o in_o the_o very_a next_o word_n st._n cyprian_n argue_v against_o appeal_n to_o rome_n and_o be_v it_o possible_a then_o to_o think_v that_o in_o these_o word_n he_o shall_v give_v such_o a_o absolute_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o it_o and_o therefore_o any_o one_o who_o will_v reconcile_v st._n cyprian_n to_o himself_o must_v by_o those_o word_n of_o ecclesia_fw-la principalis_fw-la only_o understand_v the_o dignity_n and_o eminency_n and_o not_o the_o power_n much_o less_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o no_o more_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o second_o that_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o sacerdotal_a unity_n which_o some_o think_v may_v probable_o refer_v to_o the_o priesthood_n of_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n which_o have_v its_o rise_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o appear_v by_o tertullian_n and_o other_o 32._o in_o which_o sense_n he_o may_v very_o well_o say_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o priesthood_n do_v spring_n from_o thence_o or_o if_o it_o be_v take_v in_o a_o more_o large_a and_o comprehensive_a sense_n it_o can_v import_v no_o more_o than_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v own_v as_o the_o principium_fw-la vnitatis_fw-la which_o certain_o be_v a_o very_a different_a thing_n from_o a_o infallible_a judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o what_o connexion_n be_v there_o between_o unity_n in_o government_n and_o infallibility_n in_o faith_n suppose_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v own_v as_o the_o principal_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v begin_v there_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o it_o do_v it_o thence_o follow_v that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o absolute_a subordination_n of_o all_o other_o church_n to_o it_o nothing_o then_o can_v be_v infer_v from_o either_o of_o those_o particular_n that_o by_o perfidia_fw-la error_n in_o faith_n must_v be_v understand_v take_v those_o two_o expression_n in_o the_o most_o favourable_a sense_n that_o can_v be_v put_v upon_o they_o but_o consider_v the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o the_o time_n when_o felicissimus_n and_o fortunatus_n come_v thither_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v another_o interpretation_n more_o probable_a than_o either_o of_o the_o forego_n for_o which_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o there_o be_v a_o schism_n at_o rome_n between_o novatianus_n and_o cornelius_n the_o former_a challenge_v to_o be_v bishop_n there_o as_o well_o as_o the_o latter_a upon_o which_o a_o great_a breach_n be_v make_v among_o they_o now_o these_o person_n go_v out_o of_o africa_n to_o rome_n that_o they_o may_v manage_v their_o business_n with_o the_o more_o advantage_n address_v themselves_o to_o cornelius_n and_o his_o party_n upon_o which_o st._n cyprian_n say_v navigare_fw-la audent_fw-la ad_fw-la petri_n cathedram_fw-la atque_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la principalem_fw-la unde_fw-la vnitas_fw-la sacerdotalis_fw-la exorta_fw-la est_fw-la thereby_o express_v their_o confidence_n that_o they_o not_o only_o go_v to_o rome_n but_o when_o they_o be_v there_o they_o do_v not_o present_o side_n with_o the_o schismatical_a party_n of_o the_o novatian_o there_o but_o as_o though_o they_o have_v be_v true_a catholic_n they_o go_v to_o cornelius_n who_o be_v the_o legal_a successor_n of_o st._n peter_n in_o opposition_n to_o novatianus_n call_v his_o see_v the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n and_o the_o spring_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o priesthood_n because_o the_o contrary_a party_n of_o novatianus_n have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o schism_n and_o disunion_n which_o have_v be_v among_o they_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n which_o seem_v very_o agreeable_a to_o st._n cyprian_n word_n and_o design_n we_o may_v easy_o understand_v what_o this_o perfidia_fw-la be_v viz._n that_o falseness_n and_o perfidious_a deal_n of_o these_o person_n that_o although_o they_o be_v schismatic_n themselves_o yet_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o seem_v so_o at_o their_o come_n to_o rome_n that_o as_o though_o they_o have_v be_v very_o good_a catholic_n they_o seek_v to_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o cornelius_n and_o the_o catholic_n party_n with_o he_o by_o which_o we_o see_v what_o little_a probability_n there_o be_v from_o those_o expression_n that_o perfidia_fw-la must_v be_v take_v for_o a_o error_n in_o faith_n but_o 3._o you_o say_v to_o what_o purpose_n else_o do_v he_o mention_v st._n paul_n commendation_n of_o their_o faith_n if_o this_o perfidia_fw-la be_v not_o immediate_o opposite_a to_o it_o but_o then_o inform_v we_o what_o part_n of_o that_o apostolical_a faith_n be_v it_o which_o felicissimus_n and_o fortunatus_n seek_v to_o violate_v at_o rome_n it_o be_v apparent_a their_o whole_a design_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v into_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o in_o all_o probability_n be_v that_o access_n here_o speak_v of_o if_o therefore_o this_o perfidia_fw-la import_v some_o error_n in_o faith_n it_o must_v be_v some_o error_n broach_v by_o those_o particular_a person_n as_o contrary_a to_o the_o old_a roman_a faith_n which_o be_v extol_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o although_o these_o person_n may_v be_v guilty_a of_o error_n yet_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o go_v to_o rome_n be_v not_o upon_o any_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n whereby_o they_o seek_v to_o corrupt_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o in_o order_n to_o the_o justify_n of_o their_o schism_n by_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n notwithstanding_o then_o any_o thing_n you_o have_v produce_v to_o the_o contrary_a there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o understanding_n perfidia_fw-la for_o a_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o st._n cyprian_n mention_v the_o praise_n give_v to_o the_o roman_n for_o their_o faith_n by_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o to_o show_v the_o opposition_n between_o that_o and_o the_o perfidia_fw-la as_o a_o error_n in_o faith_n but_o that_o be_v the_o great_a elogium_fw-la of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n extant_a in_o scripture_n he_o think_v it_o now_o most_o convenient_a to_o use_v it_o the_o better_a to_o engage_v cornelius_n to_o oppose_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o schismatic_n there_o although_o withal_o i_o suppose_v st._n cyprian_a may_v give_v he_o some_o taste_n of_o his_o old_a office_n of_o a_o rhetorician_n in_o the_o allusion_n between_o fides_fw-la and_o perfidia_fw-la without_o ever_o intend_v that_o perfidia_fw-la shall_v be_v take_v in_o any_o other_o sense_n then_o what_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o cause_n in_o hand_n you_o have_v effect_v so_o little_a in_o the_o solution_n of_o his_o lordship_n first_o answer_n you_o have_v little_a cause_n to_o boast_v in_o your_o follow_a word_n that_o hence_o his_o other_o explication_n also_o vanish_v into_o smoke_n ibid._n viz._n when_o he_o assert_n that_o perfidia_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la may_v be_v take_v hyperbolical_o for_o non_fw-la facile_fw-la potest_fw-la because_o this_o interpretation_n suit_v not_o with_o those_o high_a eulogium_n give_v by_o st._n cyprian_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o be_v the_o principal_a church_n the_o church_n whence_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o discipline_n be_v derive_v to_o all_o other_o christian_a church_n if_o you_o indeed_o may_v have_v the_o liberty_n to_o interpret_v st._n cyprian_n word_n as_o you_o please_v by_o add_v such_o thing_n to_o they_o of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o intimation_n in_o what_o he_o say_v you_o may_v make_v what_o you_o please_v unsuitable_a to_o they_o for_o although_o he_o call_v it_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o priesthood_n be_v spring_v yet_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o discipline_n as_o derive_v from_o thence_o to_o all_o other_o church_n as_o you_o will_v persuade_v the_o unwary_a reader_n that_o these_o be_v st._n cyprian_n word_n which_o be_v only_o your_o groundless_a interpretation_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o such_o improbability_n in_o what_o his_o lordship_n say_v that_o this_o may_v be_v only_o a_o rhetorical_a excess_n of_o speech_n in_o which_o st._n cyprian_n may_v
cyprian_n the_o second_o authority_n be_v out_o of_o st._n hierome_n who_o word_n be_v the_o roman_a faith_n commend_v by_o the_o apostle_n admit_v not_o such_o praestigiae_fw-la 4._o deceit_n and_o delusion_n into_o it_o though_o a_o angel_n shall_v preach_v it_o otherwise_o than_o it_o be_v preach_v at_o first_o be_v arm_v and_o fence_v by_o st._n paul_n authority_n it_o can_v be_v change_v here_o you_o tell_v we_o you_o willing_o agree_v with_o his_o lordship_n that_o by_o romanam_fw-la fidem_fw-la st._n hierom_n understand_v the_o catholic_n faith_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o you_o concur_v with_o he_o against_o bellarmine_n that_o it_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n but_o by_o the_o way_n you_o charge_v your_o adversary_n with_o great_a inconsequence_n that_o in_o this_o place_n they_o make_v roman_a and_o catholic_n to_o be_v the_o same_o and_o yet_o usual_o condemn_v you_o for_o join_v as_o synonyma_fw-la be_v roman_n and_o catholic_n together_o a_o wonderful_a want_n of_o judgement_n as_o though_o the_o roman_a faith_n may_v not_o be_v the_o catholic_n faith_n then_o and_o yet_o the_o catholic_n faith_n not_o be_v the_o roman_a faith_n now_o the_o former_a speech_n only_o affirm_v that_o the_o faith_n at_o rome_n be_v true_o catholic_n the_o latter_a imply_v that_o no_o faith_n can_v be_v catholic_n but_o what_o agree_v with_o rome_n and_o think_v you_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o these_o two_o but_o you_o say_v further_o that_o this_o catholic_n faith_n must_v not_o here_o be_v take_v abstract_o that_o so_o it_o can_v be_v change_v for_o ruffinus_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o that_o 135._o but_o that_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o immutable_a faith_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a so_o high_o commend_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o st._n hierom_n which_o be_v found_v upon_o such_o a_o rock_n that_o even_o a_o angel_n himself_o be_v not_o able_a to_o shake_v it_o but_o st._n hierom_n speak_v this_o with_o a_o reference_n to_o that_o faith_n he_o suppose_v the_o apostle_n commend_v in_o they_o although_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o so_o much_o commend_v the_o catholickness_n or_o soundness_n of_o their_o faith_n as_o the_o act_n of_o believe_v in_o they_o and_o therefore_o whatever_o be_v draw_v from_o thence_o whether_o by_o st._n hierome_n or_o any_o else_o can_v have_v no_o force_n in_o it_o for_o if_o he_o shall_v infer_v the_o immutability_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o so_o apparent_o weak_a a_o foundation_n there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a strength_n in_o his_o testimony_n than_o there_o be_v in_o the_o ground_n on_o which_o it_o be_v build_v and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o force_n in_o this_o argument_n the_o church_n of_o thessalonica_n will_v be_v as_o infallible_a as_o rome_n for_o her_o faith_n be_v commend_v rather_o in_o a_o more_o ample_a manner_n by_o the_o apostle_n then_o that_o of_o rome_n be_v st._n hierome_n i_o say_v 1.8_o refer_v to_o that_o faith_n he_o suppose_v the_o apostle_n commend_v in_o they_o must_v only_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o unchangeableness_n of_o that_o first_o faith_n which_o appear_v by_o the_o mention_n of_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v otherwise_o which_o certain_o can_v with_o any_o tolerable_a sense_n be_v mean_v thus_o that_o st._n hierome_n suppose_v it_o beyond_o the_o power_n of_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n to_o alter_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o in_o the_o very_a same_o apology_n he_o express_v his_o great_a fear_n lest_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_n shall_v be_v corrupt_v by_o the_o book_n of_o ruffinus_n but_o say_v you_o what_o be_v this_o then_o to_o ruffinus_n who_o know_v as_o well_o as_o st._n hierom_n that_o faith_n can_v not_o change_v its_o essence_n however_o though_o st._n hierome_n shall_v here_o speak_v of_o the_o primitive_a and_o apostolical_a faith_n which_o be_v then_o receive_v at_o rome_n that_o this_o can_v receive_v no_o alteration_n yet_o this_o be_v very_o pertinent_a to_o be_v tell_v ruffinus_n because_o st._n hierome_n charge_v he_o with_o a_o endeavour_n to_o subvert_v the_o faith_n not_o mere_o at_o rome_n but_o in_o all_o other_o place_n by_o publish_v the_o book_n of_o origen_n with_o a_o encomiastic_a preface_n to_o they_o and_o therefore_o the_o tell_v he_o the_o catholic_n faith_n will_v admit_v of_o no_o alteration_n which_o be_v receive_v at_o rome_n as_o elsewhere_o may_v be_v a_o argument_n to_o discourage_v he_o from_o any_o attempt_n of_o that_o nature_n and_o the_o main_a charge_n against_o ruffinus_n be_v not_o a_o endeavour_n to_o subvert_v mere_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n ib._n but_o the_o latin_a church_n by_o his_o translation_n and_o therefore_o these_o word_n ought_v to_o be_v take_v in_o their_o great_a latitude_n and_o so_o imply_v not_o at_o all_o any_o infallibility_n in_o the_o roman_a see_n the_o remain_a testimony_n of_o gregory_n nazianzen_n cyril_n and_o ruffinus_n 137._o as_o appear_v to_o any_o one_o who_o read_v they_o only_a import_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v to_o their_o time_n preserve_v the_o catholic_n faith_n but_o they_o do_v not_o assert_v it_o impossible_a it_o shall_v ever_o do_v otherwise_o or_o that_o she_o be_v a_o infallible_a preserver_n of_o it_o and_o none_o of_o their_o testimony_n be_v so_o proper_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o they_o will_v equal_o hold_v for_o any_o other_o apostolical_a church_n at_o that_o time_n gregory_n nazianzen_n indeed_o say_v that_o it_o will_v become_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o hold_v the_o entire_a faith_n always_o and_o will_v it_o not_o become_v any_o other_o church_n to_o do_v so_o to_o do_v this_o import_n that_o she_o shall_v infallible_o do_v it_o or_o rather_o that_o it_o be_v her_o duty_n to_o do_v it_o and_o if_o these_o than_o be_v such_o pregnant_a authority_n with_o you_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n there_o be_v little_a or_o nothing_o to_o be_v find_v in_o antiquity_n for_o your_o purpose_n but_o before_o we_o end_v this_o chapter_n 18._o we_o be_v call_v to_o a_o new_a task_n on_o occasion_n of_o a_o testimony_n of_o st._n cyril_n produce_v by_o his_o lordship_n in_o stead_n of_o that_o in_o bellarmin_n which_o appear_v not_o in_o that_o chapter_n where_o his_o name_n be_v mention_v in_o which_o he_o assert_n that_o the_o foundation_n and_o firmness_n which_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v place_v not_o in_o or_o upon_o the_o person_n much_o less_o the_o successor_n of_o st._n peter_n but_o upon_o the_o faith_n which_o by_o god_n spirit_n in_o he_o he_o so_o firm_o profess_v 1604._o which_o say_v his_o lordship_n be_v the_o common_a receive_v opinion_n both_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o of_o the_o protestant_n upon_o this_o rock_n that_o be_v upon_o this_o faith_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n on_o which_o occasion_n you_o run_v present_o out_o into_o that_o large_a common_a place_n concern_v tu_fw-la es_fw-la petrus_n and_o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la and_o although_o i_o shall_v grant_v all_o that_o you_o so_o earnest_o contend_v for_o viz._n that_o these_o word_n be_v not_o speak_v of_o st._n peter_n confession_n 139._o but_o of_o his_o person_n i_o know_v no_o advantage_n which_o will_v accrue_v to_o your_o cause_n by_o it_o for_o although_o very_o many_o of_o the_o father_n understand_v this_o place_n of_o st._n peter_n confession_n as_o contain_v in_o it_o the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o therefore_o may_v well_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o christ_n will_v build_v his_o church_n and_o although_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o difficulty_n to_o defend_v this_o interpretation_n from_o all_o exception_n yet_o because_o i_o think_v it_o not_o improbable_a the_o word_n run_v by_o way_n of_o address_n to_o st._n peter_n that_o something_o peculiar_a to_o he_o be_v contain_v in_o they_o i_o shall_v not_o contend_v with_o you_o about_o that_o but_o then_o if_o you_o say_v that_o the_o meaning_n of_o st._n peter_n be_v the_o rock_n be_v the_o constant_a infallibility_n in_o faith_n which_o be_v derive_v from_o st._n peter_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o you_o seem_v to_o suggest_v you_o must_v remember_v you_o have_v a_o new_a task_n to_o make_v good_a and_o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o st._n peter_n be_v mean_v by_o the_o rock_n will_v come_v within_o some_o league_n of_o do_v it_o i_o pass_v therefore_o by_o that_o discourse_n as_o a_o thing_n we_o be_v not_o much_o concern_v in_o for_o it_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o his_o lordship_n as_o the_o last_o thing_n out_o of_o that_o testimony_n of_o cyril_n but_o you_o be_v content_v to_o let_v go_v the_o other_o more_o material_a observation_n that_o you_o may_v more_o
which_o need_v reformation_n and_o although_o it_o be_v plain_o affirm_v that_o judah_n keep_v not_o the_o command_n of_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n 17.19_o but_o walk_v in_o the_o statute_n of_o israel_n which_o they_o have_v make_v yet_o you_o who_o it_o seem_v know_v judah_n innocency_n better_a than_o god_n or_o the_o prophet_n do_v say_v very_o magisterial_o that_o as_o long_o as_o she_o be_v unite_v with_o her_o head_n the_o highpriest_n what_o need_n i_o pray_v be_v there_o of_o her_o reformation_n and_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o judah_n i_o may_v easy_o grant_v you_o that_o judah_n be_v not_o the_o protestant_a party_n but_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n i._n e._n while_n judah_n be_v under_o her_o corruption_n and_o yet_o you_o say_v she_o need_v no_o reformation_n she_o be_v the_o fit_a parallel_n you_o can_v think_v of_o for_o your_o church_n but_o we_o pretend_v to_o no_o parallel_n between_o judah_n and_o the_o protestant_a party_n in_o not_o need_v a_o reformation_n but_o in_o her_o power_n to_o reform_v herself_o which_o we_o say_v still_o that_o she_o have_v though_o israel_n will_v not_o join_v with_o she_o by_o virtue_n of_o these_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n though_o israel_n transgress_v yet_o let_v not_o judah_n sin_n thereby_o manifest_v that_o though_o the_o great_a part_n be_v degenerate_v in_o the_o ten_o tribe_n yet_o judah_n may_v prevent_v the_o same_o in_o herself_o by_o reform_v those_o abuse_n which_o be_v creep_v among_o they_o and_o therefore_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n let_v not_o judah_n sin_n must_v in_o this_o case_n imply_v a_o power_n to_o reform_v herself_o if_o therefore_o we_o speak_v of_o judah_n degenerate_v we_o grant_v the_o parallel_n lie_v whole_o between_o judah_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o although_o there_o be_v great_a corruption_n in_o judah_n and_o as_o great_a in_o your_o church_n yet_o with_o the_o same_o reason_n you_o say_v that_o neither_o need_v reformation_n but_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o judah_n reform_v herself_o under_o hezekiah_n than_o we_o say_v the_o parallel_n lie_v between_o judah_n and_o the_o protestant_a party_n whatever_o you_o say_v to_o the_o contrary_n but_o you_o shrewd_o ask_v ibid._n if_o you_o be_v judah_n who_o i_o pray_v be_v the_o revolt_a ten_o tribe_n who_o be_v of_o jeroboam_n cabal_n even_o they_o who_o set_v up_o the_o calf_n at_o dan_n and_o bethel_n such_o who_o worship_v image_n instead_o of_o the_o true_a god_n though_o they_o intend_v they_o only_o as_o symbol_n of_o the_o divine_a presence_n for_o no_o more_o do_v jeroboam_n and_o the_o israelite_n intend_v by_o their_o calf_n and_o there_o be_v no_o pretence_n which_o you_o use_v to_o justify_v yourselves_o from_o idolatry_n but_o will_v excuse_v jeroboam_n and_o the_o ten_o tribe_n from_o it_o if_o the_o protestant_a party_n then_o be_v judah_n it_o be_v easy_a find_v out_o the_o revolt_a ten_o tribe_n and_o jeroboam'_v cabal_n the_o court_n of_o rome_n answer_v to_o this_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v to_o the_o other_o but_o we_o can_v be_v judah_n because_o we_o leave_v the_o catholic_n jerusalem_n that_o be_v rome_n the_o city_n of_o peace_n by_o who_o i_o pray_v be_v rome_n christen_v the_o catholic_n jerusalem_n for_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o worship_n there_o use_v and_o the_o politic_a end_n of_o it_o it_o much_o more_o look_n like_o samaria_n or_o dan_n and_o bethel_n if_o rome_n be_v our_o catholic_n jerusalem_n show_v we_o when_o god_n make_v choice_n of_o that_o for_o the_o peculiar_a place_n of_o his_o worship_n where_o we_o be_v command_v to_o resort_v thither_o for_o divine_a worship_n when_o god_n place_v his_o name_n there_o as_o he_o do_v of_o old_a in_o jerusalem_n when_o you_o have_v show_v we_o these_o thing_n we_o may_v think_v the_o worse_a of_o ourselves_o for_o leave_v rome_n but_o not_o before_o and_o let_v the_o world_n judge_n whether_o it_o be_v more_o likely_a one_o shall_v meet_v with_o the_o worship_n of_o golden_a calf_n at_o rome_n or_o among_o the_o protestant_n it_o be_v you_o who_o have_v find_v out_o new_a sacrifice_n new_a object_n of_o worship_n new_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n in_o it_o new_a altar_n and_o consequent_o new_a priest_n too_o and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o you_o must_v be_v orthodox_n judah_n which_o need_v no_o reformation_n and_o who_o i_o pray_v do_v in_o point_n of_o obedience_n most_o resemble_v the_o ten_o tribe_n have_v not_o you_o set_v up_o a_o spiritual_a jeroboam_n as_o a_o new_a head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o son_n of_o david_n and_o that_o you_o may_v advance_v the_o interest_n of_o this_o spiritual_a head_n you_o raise_v his_o authority_n far_o above_o that_o of_o king_n and_o temporal_a prince_n who_o you_o ought_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o declare_v it_o in_o his_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v depose_v and_o absolve_v subject_n from_o obedience_n to_o they_o and_o therefore_o be_v not_o the_o parallel_n between_o the_o ten_o tribe_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n very_o pat_o and_o much_o to_o the_o purpose_n but_o when_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o return_v this_o upon_o we_o by_o a_o false_a and_o scurrilous_a parallel_n between_o jeroboam_n 161_o and_o that_o excellent_a princess_n queen_n elizabeth_n in_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n you_o only_o betray_v the_o badness_n of_o your_o cause_n which_o make_v detraction_n so_o necessary_a to_o maintain_v it_o for_o as_o her_o title_n to_o the_o crown_n be_v undoubted_a so_o her_o proceed_n in_o the_o reformation_n be_v such_o as_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o nation_n and_o her_o carriage_n in_o her_o reign_n towards_o jesuit_n and_o priest_n no_o other_o than_o what_o the_o apparent_a necessity_n of_o her_o own_o and_o her_o kingdom_n preservation_n put_v she_o upon_o but_o if_o she_o must_v be_v account_v like_o jeroboam_n for_o banish_v priest_n and_o jesuit_n often_o convict_v of_o treasonable_a practice_n upon_o pain_n of_o death_n if_o they_o be_v find_v in_o england_n what_o must_v we_o think_v of_o the_o catholic_n jerusalem_n the_o city_n of_o peace_n that_o sweet_a and_o gentle_a mother_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o have_v carry_v herself_o so_o peaceable_o towards_o those_o who_o have_v dissent_v from_o she_o witness_v the_o blood_n of_o so_o many_o hundred_o thousand_o which_o she_o have_v imbrue_v her_o hand_n in_o mere_o for_o oppose_v her_o doctrine_n and_o superstition_n witness_v that_o excellent_a school_n of_o humanity_n the_o inquisition_n and_o the_o easy_a lesson_n she_o teach_v those_o who_o come_v under_o her_o discipline_n there_o witness_v the_o proceed_n in_o england_n in_o the_o day_n of_o queen_n mary_n and_o then_o let_v any_o judge_n if_o the_o parallel_n must_v be_v carry_v by_o cruelty_n towards_o dissenter_n which_o of_o their_o two_o reign_n come_v the_o near_a that_o of_o jeroboam_n the_o only_a true_a word_n then_o that_o you_o say_v be_v but_o enough_o of_o this_o parallel_n and_o more_o than_o enough_o too_o of_o such_o impudent_a slander_n against_o the_o memory_n of_o that_o famous_a queen_n but_o your_o church_n will_v have_v be_v more_o unlike_o the_o ten_o tribe_n if_o there_o have_v not_o be_v a_o lie_a prophet_n there_o you_o dispute_v very_o manful_o against_o his_o lordship_n for_o assert_v that_o israel_n remain_v a_o church_n after_o the_o separation_n between_o judah_n and_o the_o ten_o tribe_n ibid._n and_o yet_o after_o you_o have_v spend_v many_o word_n about_o it_o you_o yield_v all_o that_o he_o assert_n when_o you_o say_v 162._o that_o in_o a_o general_a sense_n they_o be_v call_v the_o people_n of_o god_n as_o they_o be_v abraham_n seed_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o promise_n make_v to_o abraham_n i_o will_v be_v a_o god_n to_o thou_o and_o to_o thy_o seed_n after_o thou_o and_o what_o be_v there_o more_o than_o this_o that_o his_o lordship_n contend_v for_o for_o he_o never_o dream_v that_o the_o ten_o tribe_n be_v abraham_n seed_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n but_o only_o say_v that_o there_o be_v salvation_n for_o those_o thousand_o that_o have_v not_o bow_v their_o knee_n to_o baal_n which_o can_v be_v in_o the_o ordinary_a way_n where_o there_o be_v no_o church_n and_o if_o as_o you_o say_v abraham_n seed_n only_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n i._n e._n the_o faithful_a make_v the_o true_a church_n than_o it_o follow_v where_o there_o be_v so_o many_o faithful_a there_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o thus_o for_o any_o thing_n you_o have_v say_v to_o the_o contrary_a his_o lordship_n argument_n from_o the_o case_n of_o judah_n hold_v for_o every_o particular_a church_n power_n to_o reform_v itself_o when_o the_o general_n will_v not_o reform_v his_o lordship_n further_o argue_v 6._o
impose_v those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v before_o only_o the_o error_n of_o particular_a person_n as_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n and_o the_o necessary_a condition_n of_o communion_n with_o she_o 3._o i_o may_v answer_v yet_o further_o that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o prove_v any_o doctrine_n to_o be_v catholic_n that_o it_o be_v general_o receive_v by_o christian_a church_n in_o any_o one_o age_n but_o it_o must_v be_v make_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v so_o receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n so_o that_o if_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o these_o doctrine_n be_v own_v for_o catholic_n not_o only_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o all_o other_o christian_a church_n so_o far_o as_o it_o can_v be_v discern_v by_o their_o communion_n yet_o this_o do_v not_o prove_v these_o doctrine_n so_o own_v to_o be_v true_o catholic_n unless_o you_o can_v first_o prove_v that_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n of_o one_o age_n can_v never_o believe_v a_o doctrine_n to_o be_v catholic_n which_o be_v not_o so_o you_o see_v therefore_o your_o task_n increase_v further_a upon_o you_o for_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o say_v that_o a._n d._n 1517._o such_o and_o such_o doctrine_n be_v look_v on_o as_o catholic_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v so_o but_o that_o for_o 1517._o year_n successive_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o that_o time_n they_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v so_o and_o then_o we_o shall_v more_o easy_o believe_v you_o when_o you_o will_v therefore_o prove_v transubstantiation_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n image-worship_n invocation_n of_o saint_n or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o good_a doctrine_n mention_v by_o you_o in_o a_o constant_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o have_v be_v look_v on_o as_o catholic_n doctrine_n you_o may_v then_o say_v that_o protestant_n in_o deny_v these_o do_v take_v away_o something_a catholic_n from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n but_o till_o that_o time_n these_o answer_n may_v abundant_o suffice_v we_o now_o come_v close_o to_o the_o business_n of_o the_o reformation_n but_o 9_o before_o we_o examine_v the_o particular_n of_o it_o the_o general_a ground_n on_o which_o it_o proceed_v must_v somewhat_o further_o be_v clear_v which_o his_o lordship_n tell_v you_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o power_n of_o particular_a church_n reform_v themselves_o in_o case_n the_o whole_a church_n be_v negligent_a or_o will_v not_o to_o which_o you_o say_v 6._o that_o you_o grant_v in_o effect_n as_o great_a power_n as_o the_o bishop_n himself_o do_v to_o particular_a church_n to_o national_a and_o provincial_a council_n in_o reform_v error_n and_o abuse_n either_o of_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n only_o we_o require_v that_o they_o proceed_v with_o due_a respect_n to_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v recourse_n to_o he_o in_o all_o matter_n and_o decree_n of_o faith_n especial_o when_o they_o define_v or_o declare_v point_v not_o general_o know_v and_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v catholic_n truth_n what_o you_o grant_v in_o effect_n at_o first_o you_o in_o effect_n deny_v again_o afterward_o for_o the_o question_n be_v about_o reformation_n of_o such_o error_n and_o abuse_n as_o may_v come_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o when_o you_o grant_v a_o power_n to_o reform_v only_o in_o case_n the_o pope_n consent_n you_o grant_v no_o power_n to_o reform_v at_o all_o for_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o world_n have_v sufficient_o teach_v we_o how_o little_a his_o consent_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v in_o any_o thing_n of_o reformation_n for_o his_o lordship_n true_o say_v in_o answer_n to_o capellus_n who_o deny_v particular_a church_n any_o power_n of_o make_v canon_n of_o faith_n without_o consult_v the_o roman_a see_v 3._o that_o as_o capellus_n can_v never_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a see_v must_v be_v consult_v with_o before_o any_o reformation_n be_v make_v so_o it_o be_v as_o certain_a that_o be_v it_o prove_v and_o practise_v we_o shall_v have_v no_o reformation_n for_o it_o will_v be_v long_o enough_o before_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v cure_v if_o that_o see_v alone_o shall_v be_v her_o physician_n which_o in_o truth_n be_v her_o disease_n now_o to_o this_o you_o say_v that_o even_o capellus_n himself_o require_v this_o as_o though_o capellus_n be_v not_o the_o man_n who_o his_o lordship_n answer_v as_o to_o this_o very_a thing_n but_o beside_o you_o say_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n be_v evident_a for_o it_o in_o the_o example_n of_o the_o milevitan_n and_o carthaginian_a council_n which_o as_o st._n austin_n witness_v send_v their_o decree_n touch_v grace_n original_a sin_n in_o infant_n and_o other_o matter_n against_o pelagius_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o business_n of_o reformation_n that_o nothing_o of_o that_o nature_n be_v to_o be_v attempt_v without_o the_o pope_n consent_n that_o these_o council_n do_v by_o julius_n a_o african_a bishop_n communicate_v their_o decree_n to_o pope_n innocent_a who_o deny_v but_o what_o be_v it_o you_o will_v thence_o infer_v to_o your_o purpose_n for_o the_o utmost_a which_o can_v be_v draw_v hence_o be_v that_o they_o desire_v the_o pope_n to_o contribute_v his_o assistance_n in_o condemn_v pelagius_n and_o coelestius_n by_o add_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolical_a see_v to_o their_o decree_n that_o so_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n that_o grow_a heresy_n may_v the_o more_o easy_o be_v suppress_v and_o who_o deny_v but_o at_o that_o time_n the_o roman_a church_n have_v great_a reputation_n which_o be_v all_o that_o authority_n imply_v and_o by_o that_o mean_n may_v be_v more_o serviceable_a in_o prevent_v the_o growth_n of_o pelagianism_n if_o it_o do_v concur_v with_o the_o african_a council_n in_o condemn_v that_o doctrine_n but_o because_o they_o communicate_v their_o decree_n to_o pope_n innocent_n desire_v his_o consent_n with_o they_o that_o therefore_o no_o reformation_n shall_v be_v attempt_v in_o the_o church_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o very_a far-fetched_a inference_n and_o unhappy_o draw_v from_o those_o african_a father_n who_o so_o stout_o oppose_v zosimus_n innocent_n successor_n in_o the_o case_n of_o appeal_n about_o the_o business_n of_o apiarius_n do_v they_o think_v you_o look_v on_o themselves_o as_o oblige_v to_o do_v nothing_o in_o the_o reform_v the_o church_n without_o the_o pope_n authority_n who_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n yield_v to_o those_o encroachment_n of_o power_n which_o zosimus_n will_v have_v usurp_v over_o they_o nay_o it_o appear_v that_o till_o the_o african_a father_n have_v better_o inform_v he_o zosimus_n do_v not_o a_o little_a favour_n coelestius_n himself_o and_o in_o case_n he_o have_v go_v on_o so_o to_o do_v do_v you_o think_v they_o will_v have_v think_v themselves_o ever_o the_o less_o oblige_v to_o reform_v their_o church_n from_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n which_o begin_v to_o spread_v among_o they_o and_o in_o this_o time_n of_o the_o controversy_n between_o zosimus_n and_o they_o though_o they_o carry_v it_o with_o all_o fairness_n towards_o the_o roman_a see_v yet_o they_o be_v still_o careful_a to_o preserve_v and_o defend_v their_o own_o privilege_n and_o in_o case_n the_o pope_n shall_v then_o have_v challenge_v that_o power_n over_o they_o which_o he_o have_v do_v since_o no_o doubt_n they_o will_v not_o have_v strike_v at_o call_v such_o encroachment_n the_o disease_n of_o the_o church_n without_o any_o unhandsomness_n or_o incivility_n and_o will_v have_v be_v far_o from_o look_v on_o he_o as_o the_o only_a physician_n of_o it_o to_o that_o pretence_n that_o thing_n shall_v have_v be_v bear_v with_o till_o the_o time_n of_o a_o general_n council_n 10._o his_o lordship_n answer_v first_o it_o be_v true_a a_o general_n council_n free_a and_o entire_a 4._o will_v have_v be_v the_o best_a remedy_n and_o most_o able_a for_o a_o gangrene_n that_o have_v spread_v so_o far_o and_o eat_v so_o deep_a into_o christianity_n but_o what_o shall_v we_o have_v suffer_v this_o gangrene_n to_o endanger_v life_n and_o all_o rather_o than_o be_v cure_v in_o time_n by_o a_o physician_n of_o weak_a knowledge_n and_o a_o less_o able_a hand_n second_o we_o live_v to_o see_v since_o if_o we_o have_v stay_v and_o expect_v a_o general_n council_n what_o manner_n of_o one_o we_o shall_v have_v have_v if_o any_o for_o that_o at_o trent_n be_v neither_o general_n nor_o free_a and_o for_o the_o error_n which_o rome_n have_v contract_v it_o confirm_v they_o it_o cure_v they_o not_o and_o yet_o i_o much_o doubt_v whether_o ever_o that_o council_n such_o as_o it_o be_v will_v have_v be_v call_v if_o some_o provincial_n and_o national_a synod_n under_o supreme_a and_o regal_a power_n have_v not_o first_o set_v upon_o this_o great_a work_n of_o reformation_n which_o
the_o sad_a complaint_n of_o the_o usurpation_n and_o abuse_n which_o be_v in_o it_o and_o these_o abundant_o deliver_v by_o classical_a author_n of_o both_o the_o present_a and_o precedent_a time_n and_o to_o use_v more_o of_o your_o own_o word_n all_o ecclesiastical_a monument_n be_v full_a of_o they_o so_o that_o this_o be_v no_o false_a calumny_n or_o bitter_a pasquil_n as_o you_o call_v it_o but_o a_o very_a plain_a and_o evident_a truth_n but_o that_o there_o be_v likewise_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o art_n subtlety_n and_o fraud_n use_v in_o the_o get_n keep_v and_o manage_v the_o pope_n power_n he_o have_v but_o a_o small_a measure_n of_o wit_n who_o do_v not_o understand_v and_o they_o as_o little_a of_o honesty_n who_o dare_v not_o confess_v it_o chap._n v._o of_o the_o roman_a church_n authority_n the_o question_n concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n authority_n enter_v upon_o how_o far_o our_o church_n in_o reform_v herself_o condemn_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o pope_n equality_n with_o other_o patriarch_n assert_v the_o arabic_a canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n prove_v to_o be_v supposititious_a the_o polity_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n discover_v from_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o right_n of_o primate_fw-la and_o metropolitan_n settle_v by_o it_o the_o suitableness_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a to_o the_o civil_a government_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v then_o a_o limit_a jurisdiction_n within_o the_o suburbicary_n church_n as_o primate_n of_o the_o roman_a diocese_n of_o the_o cyprian_a privilege_n that_o it_o be_v not_o peculiar_a but_o common_a to_o all_o primate_fw-la of_o dioceses_fw-la of_o the_o pope_n primacy_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n how_o far_o pertinent_a to_o our_o dispute_n how_o far_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n requisite_a to_o new_a elect_a patriarch_n of_o the_o synodical_a and_o communicatory_a letter_n the_o testimony_n of_o petrus_n de_fw-fr marcâ_fw-la concern_v the_o pope_n power_n of_o confirm_v and_o depose_v bishop_n the_o instance_n bring_v for_o it_o consider_v the_o case_n of_o athanasius_n be_v restore_v by_o julius_n true_o state_v the_o proceed_n of_o constantine_n in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o donatist_n clear_v and_o the_o evidence_n thence_o against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n of_o the_o appeal_n of_o bishop_n to_o rome_n how_o far_o allow_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n the_o great_a case_n of_o appeal_n between_o the_o roman_a and_o african_a bishop_n discuss_v that_o the_o appeal_v of_o bishop_n be_v prohibit_v as_o well_o as_o those_o of_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n c's_o fraud_n in_o cite_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n for_o acknowledge_v appeal_n to_o rome_n the_o contrary_a manifest_v from_o the_o same_o epistle_n to_o boniface_n and_o the_o other_o to_o celestine_n the_o exemption_n of_o the_o ancient_a britannic_a church_n from_o any_o subjection_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n assert_v the_o case_n of_o wilfrid_n appeal_v answer_v the_o primacy_n of_o england_n not_o derive_v from_o gregory_n grant_n to_o augustine_n the_o monk_n the_o ancient_a primacy_n of_o the_o britannic_a church_n not_o lose_v upon_o the_o saxon_a conversion_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o african_a church_n after_o their_o deny_v appeal_v to_o rome_n the_o rise_n of_o the_o pope_n greatness_n under_o christian_a emperor_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o sardican_a synod_n in_o case_n of_o appeal_n whether_o ever_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n no_o evidence_n thence_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n zosimus_n his_o forgery_n in_o send_v the_o sardican_a canon_n instead_o of_o the_o nicene_n the_o weakness_n of_o the_o plea_n for_o it_o manifest_v 1._o that_o which_o now_o remain_v to_o be_v discuss_v in_o the_o question_n of_o schism_n be_v concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n of_o rome_n whether_o that_o be_v so_o large_a and_o extensive_a as_o to_o bind_v we_o to_o a_o universal_a submission_n so_o that_o by_o renounce_v of_o it_o we_o violate_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v thereby_o guilty_a of_o schism_n but_o before_o we_o come_v to_o a_o particular_a discussion_n of_o that_o 14._o we_o must_v cast_v our_o eye_n back_o on_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n in_o which_o the_o title_n promise_v we_o that_o protestant_n shall_v be_v further_o convince_v of_o schism_n but_o upon_o examination_n of_o it_o there_o appear_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o shadow_n of_o any_o new_a matter_n but_o it_o whole_o depend_v upon_o principle_n already_o refute_v and_o so_o contain_v a_o bare_a repetition_n of_o what_o have_v be_v abundant_o answer_v in_o the_o first_o part_n so_o your_o first_o section_n have_v no_o more_o of_o strength_n than_o what_o lie_v in_o your_o church_n infallibility_n for_o when_o you_o will_v plead_v that_o though_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o accuse_a party_n yet_o she_o may_v judge_v in_o she_o own_o cause_n 172._o you_o do_v it_o upon_o this_o ground_n that_o you_o have_v already_o prove_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v infallible_a and_o therefore_o your_o church_n may_v as_o well_o condemn_v her_o accuser_n as_o the_o apostle_n they_o and_o that_o protestant_n not_o pretend_v infallibility_n can_v rational_o be_v permit_v to_o be_v accuser_n and_o witness_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o what_o do_v all_o this_o come_v to_o in_o case_n your_o church_n be_v not_o infallible_a as_o we_o have_v evident_o prove_v she_o be_v not_o in_o the_o first_o part_n and_o that_o she_o be_v so_o far_o from_o it_o that_o she_o have_v most_o gross_o err_v as_o we_o shall_v prove_v in_o the_o three_o part_n your_o second_o section_n suppose_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n evident_a 173._o that_o protestant_n do_v contradict_v the_o public_a doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o all_o christian_n general_o throughout_o the_o world_n which_o we_o have_v late_o prove_v to_o be_v a_o egregious_a falsity_n and_o shall_v do_v more_o afterward_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o separatist_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v vast_o different_a whether_o we_o look_v on_o the_o authority_n cause_n or_o manner_n of_o their_o proceed_n and_o in_o your_o other_o instance_n you_o still_o beg_v the_o question_n that_o your_o church_n be_v our_o mother-church_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o her_o judgement_n though_o she_o be_v the_o accuse_a party_n but_o as_o to_o this_o whole_a business_n of_o quô_o judice_fw-la nothing_o can_v be_v speak_v with_o more_o solidity_n and_o satisfaction_n than_o what_o his_o lordship_n say_v if_o it_o be_v a_o cause_n common_a to_o both_o as_o certain_a it_o be_v here_o between_o the_o protestant_n and_o roman_a church_n than_o neither_o part_n alone_o may_v be_v judge_n if_o neither_o alone_a may_v judge_v 157._o then_o either_o they_o must_v be_v judge_v by_o a_o three_o which_o stand_v indifferent_a to_o both_o and_o that_o be_v the_o scripture_n or_o if_o there_o be_v a_o jealousy_n or_o a_o doubt_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o must_v either_o both_o repair_v to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o submit_v to_o that_o or_o both_o call_v and_o submit_v to_o a_o general_n council_n which_o shall_v be_v lawful_o call_v and_o fair_o and_o free_o hold_v with_o indifferency_n to_o all_o party_n and_o that_o must_v judge_v the_o difference_n according_a to_o scripture_n which_o must_v be_v their_o rule_n as_o well_o as_o private_a man_n when_o you_o either_o attempt_n to_o show_v the_o unreasonableness_n of_o this_o or_o substitute_v any_o thing_n more_o reasonable_a instead_o of_o it_o you_o may_v expect_v a_o further_a answer_n to_o the_o question_n quô_o judice_fw-la as_o far_o as_o it_o concern_v the_o difference_n between_o your_o church_n or_o we_o the_o remainder_n of_o this_o whole_a chapter_n be_v only_o a_o repetition_n of_o somewhat_o concern_v fundamental_o 181._o and_o a_o further_o expatiate_v in_o word_n without_o the_o addition_n of_o any_o more_o strength_n from_o reason_n or_o authority_n upon_o the_o church_n infallibility_n be_v prove_v from_o scripture_n which_o have_v be_v thorough_o consider_v already_o and_o a_o account_n give_v not_o only_o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o place_n one_o except_v which_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o again_o but_o of_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o as_o to_o infallibility_n shall_v be_v restrain_v to_o the_o apostle_n i_o find_v no_o sufficient_a motive_n induce_v i_o to_o follow_v you_o in_o distrust_v the_o reader_n memory_n and_o trespass_v on_o his_o patience_n so_o much_o as_o to_o inculcate_v the_o same_o thing_n over_o and_o over_o as_o you_o do_v pass_v by_o therefore_o the_o thing_n already_o handle_v and_o leave_v the_o rest_n if_o any_o such_o thing_n appear_v to_o a_o more_o convenient_a place_n where_o these_o very_a place_n of_o scripture_n be_v again_o bring_v upon_o
but_o it_o belong_v likewise_o to_o he_o to_o depose_v unworthy_a one_o and_o restore_v the_o unjust_o depose_v by_o other_o imperat_fw-la we_o read_v of_o no_o less_o than_o eight_o several_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n depose_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n sixtus_n the_o three_o depose_v also_o polychronius_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n as_o his_o act_n set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o tome_n of_o the_o council_n testify_v on_o the_o contrary_a athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o paulus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n 7._o be_v by_o julius_n the_o first_o restore_v to_o their_o respective_a see_v have_v be_v unjust_o expel_v by_o heretic_n the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o divers_a other_o over_o who_o the_o pope_n do_v exercise_v the_o like_a authority_n which_o he_o can_v never_o have_v do_v upon_o any_o other_o ground_n then_o that_o of_o divine_a right_n and_o as_o be_v general_o acknowledge_v st._n peter_n successor_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n three_o thing_n i_o shall_v return_v you_o in_o answer_n to_o this_o discourse_n 1._o that_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o show_v any_o such_o inequality_n as_o you_o contend_v for_o between_o the_o pope_n and_o other_o patriarch_n 2._o that_o no_o such_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v prove_v from_o the_o instance_n by_o you_o bring_v and_o therefore_o last_o it_o by_o no_o mean_n follow_v that_o the_o pope_n exercise_v any_o such_o authority_n by_o divine_a right_n or_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v st._n peter_n successor_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n i_o begin_v with_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o evidence_n of_o such_o a_o inequality_n of_o patriarch_n as_o that_o you_o contend_v for_o that_o nothing_o do_v more_o confirm_v that_o which_o his_o lordship_n say_v concern_v the_o equality_n of_o they_o then_o that_o do_v for_o which_o we_o appeal_v to_o that_o famous_a testimony_n to_o this_o purpose_n in_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n 6._o let_v ancient_a custom_n prevail_v according_a to_o which_o let_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v power_n over_o they_o who_o be_v in_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n because_o this_o be_v likewise_o the_o custom_n for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o according_o in_o antioch_n and_o other_o province_n let_v the_o privilege_n be_v preserve_v to_o the_o church_n which_o canon_n be_v the_o more_o remarkable_a because_o it_o be_v the_o first_o that_o ever_o be_v make_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n for_o regulate_v the_o right_n and_o privilege_n of_o church_n over_o each_o other_o which_o there_o be_v like_a to_o be_v now_o more_o contest_v about_o not_o only_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o church_n liberty_n under_o constantine_n but_o because_o of_o the_o new_a disposition_n of_o the_o empire_n by_o he_o which_o be_v make_v not_o long_o before_o the_o sit_v of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o the_o particular_a occasion_n of_o this_o canon_n be_v general_o suppose_v to_o be_v this_o meletius_n a_o ambitious_a bishop_n in_o egypt_n much_o about_o the_o time_n that_o arrius_n broach_v his_o heresy_n at_o alexandria_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o ordain_v bishop_n and_o other_o in_o egypt_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n this_o case_n be_v bring_v before_o the_o nicene_n father_n they_o pronounce_v these_o ordination_n null_n depose_v meletius_n and_o to_o prevent_v the_o like_a practice_n for_o the_o future_a do_v by_o this_o canon_n confirm_v the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o that_o nature_n in_o the_o church_n so_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n shall_v enjoy_v as_o full_a right_n and_o power_n over_o the_o province_n of_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v over_o those_o subject_n to_o he_o as_o likewise_o antioch_n and_o other_o church_n shall_v enjoy_v their_o former_a privilege_n where_o we_o plain_o see_v that_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o extent_n of_o power_n be_v not_o attribute_v to_o any_o divine_a right_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o metropolitan_a but_o to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o it_o have_v obtain_v that_o such_o church_n that_o be_v deduce_v as_o it_o be_v so_o many_o colony_n from_o the_o mother-church_n shall_v retain_v so_o much_o respect_n to_o and_o dependence_n upon_o she_o as_o not_o to_o receive_v any_o bishop_n into_o they_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o that_o bishop_n who_o govern_v in_o the_o metropolis_n which_o be_v the_o prime_a reason_n of_o the_o subordination_n of_o those_o lesser_a church_n to_o the_o metropolis_n and_o this_o custom_n be_v draw_v down_o from_o the_o first_o plantation_n of_o church_n and_o likewise_o much_o conduce_v to_o the_o preserve_n of_o unity_n in_o they_o these_o nicene_n father_n see_v no_o reason_n to_o alter_v it_o but_o much_o to_o confirm_v it_o for_o otherwise_o there_o may_v have_v be_v continual_a bandy_n and_o opposition_n of_o lesser_a bishop_n and_o church_n against_o the_o great_a and_o therefore_o the_o discipline_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n do_v call_v for_o this_o subordination_n which_o can_v not_o be_v better_o determine_v then_o by_o the_o ancient_a custom_n which_o have_v obtain_v in_o the_o several_a church_n it_o be_v find_v most_o convenient_a that_o the_o church_n in_o their_o subordination_n shall_v be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o civil_a disposition_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o therefore_o for_o our_o better_a understanding_n the_o force_n and_o effect_n of_o this_o nicene_n canon_n we_o must_v cast_v our_o eye_n a_o little_a upon_o the_o civil_a disposition_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n by_o constantine_n then_o late_o alter_v from_o the_o former_a disposition_n of_o it_o under_o augustus_n and_o adrian_n he_o therefore_o distribute_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n under_o four_o praefecti_fw-la praetorio_fw-la but_o for_o the_o more_o convenient_a management_n of_o it_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v cast_v into_o several_a jurisdiction_n contain_v many_o province_n within_o they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o law_n call_v diocese_n over_o every_o one_o of_o which_o there_o be_v appoint_v a_o vicarius_fw-la or_o lieutenant_n to_o one_o of_o the_o praefecti_fw-la praetorio_fw-la who_o residence_n be_v in_o the_o chief_a city_n of_o the_o diocese_n where_o the_o praetorium_n be_v and_o justice_n be_v administer_v to_o all_o within_o that_o diocese_n and_o thither_o appeal_n be_v make_v under_o these_o be_v those_o proconsul_n or_o correctore_n who_o rule_v in_o the_o particular_a province_n and_o have_v their_o residence_n in_o the_o metropolis_n of_o it_o under_o who_o be_v the_o particular_a magistrate_n of_o every_o city_n now_o according_a to_o this_o disposition_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o western_a part_n of_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o seven_o of_o these_o diocese_n as_o under_o the_o praefectus_fw-la praetorio_fw-la galliarum_n be_v the_o diocese_n of_o gaul_n which_o contain_v seventeen_o province_n the_o diocese_n of_o britain_n which_o contain_v five_o afterward_o but_o three_o in_o constantine_n time_n the_o diocese_n of_o spain_n seven_o under_o the_o praefectus_fw-la praetorio_fw-la italiae_fw-la be_v the_o diocese_n of_o africa_n which_o have_v six_o province_n the_o diocese_n of_o italy_n who_o seat_n be_v milan_n 7._o the_o diocese_n of_o rome_n 10._o under_o the_o praefectus_fw-la praetorio_fw-la illyrici_fw-la be_v the_o diocese_n of_o illyricum_n in_o which_o be_v seventeen_o province_n in_o the_o eastern_a division_n be_v the_o diocese_n of_o thrace_n which_o have_v six_o province_n the_o diocese_n of_o pontus_n 11._o and_o so_o the_o diocese_n of_o asia_n the_o oriental_a proper_o so_o call_v wherein_o antioch_n be_v 15._o all_o which_o be_v under_o the_o praefectus_fw-la praetorio_fw-la orientis_fw-la the_o egyptian_a diocese_n which_o have_v six_o province_n be_v under_o the_o praefectus_fw-la augustalis_n in_o the_o time_n of_o theodosius_n the_o elder_a illyricum_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o diocese_n the_o eastern_a who_o metropolis_n be_v thessalonica_n and_o have_v eleven_o province_n the_o western_a who_o metropolis_n be_v syrmium_fw-la and_o have_v six_o province_n according_a to_o this_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n we_o may_v better_o understand_v the_o affair_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v model_v much_o after_o the_o same_o way_n unless_o where_o ancient_a custom_n or_o the_o emperor_n edict_n do_v cause_v any_o variation_n for_o as_o the_o city_n have_v their_o bishop_n so_o the_o province_n have_v their_o arch-bishop_n and_o the_o diocese_n their_o primate_fw-la who_o jurisdiction_n extend_v as_o far_o as_o the_o diocese_n do_v and_o as_o the_o conventus_fw-la juridici_fw-la be_v keep_v in_o the_o chief_a city_n of_o the_o diocese_n for_o matter_n of_o civil_a judicature_n so_o the_o chief_a ecclesiastical_a
and_o by_o a_o epistle_n of_o pelagius_n 1_o a._n d._n 555._o it_o appear_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o aquileia_n and_o milan_n be_v wont_a to_o ordain_v each_o other_o which_o though_o he_o will_v have_v believe_v be_v only_o to_o save_v charge_n in_o go_v to_o rome_n yet_o as_o that_o learned_a and_o ingenuous_a person_n petrus_n de_fw-fr marcâ_fw-la observe_v the_o true_a reason_n of_o it_o be_v because_o milan_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o italic_a diocese_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o council_n of_o aquileia_n 7._o and_o therefore_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o aquileia_n do_v of_o right_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o milan_n and_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o milan_n do_v belong_v to_o he_o of_o aquileia_n as_o the_o chief_a metropolitan_a of_o the_o general_a synod_n of_o the_o italic_a diocese_n although_o afterward_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n get_v it_o so_o far_o into_o their_o hand_n that_o their_o consent_n be_v necessary_a for_o such_o a_o ordination_n yet_o that_o be_v only_a when_o they_o begin_v more_o open_o to_o encroach_v upon_o the_o liberty_n of_o other_o church_n but_o as_o the_o same_o learned_a author_n go_v on_o 8._o those_o province_n which_o lay_v out_o of_o italy_n do_v undoubted_o ordain_v their_o own_o metropolitan_n without_o the_o authority_n or_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o he_o there_o large_o prove_v of_o the_o african_a spanish_a and_o french_a church_n it_o follow_v then_o from_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o nicene_n canon_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v a_o limit_a jurisdiction_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n and_o other_o primate_fw-la have_v 2._o that_o what_o church_n do_v enjoy_v privilege_n before_o 6._o have_v they_o confirm_v by_o this_o canon_n as_o not_o to_o be_v alter_v for_o it_o make_v provision_n against_o any_o such_o alteration_n by_o ordain_v that_o the_o ancient_a custom_n shall_v be_v in_o force_n still_o and_o according_o we_o find_v it_o decree_v in_o the_o second_o canon_n of_o the_o constantinopolitan_a council_n that_o the_o same_o limit_n of_o diocese_n shall_v be_v observe_v which_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o that_o none_o shall_v intrude_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o diocese_n of_o other_o and_o by_o the_o earnest_n and_o vehement_a epistle_n of_o pope_n leo_n to_o anatolius_n we_o see_v the_o main_a thing_n he_o have_v to_o plead_v against_o the_o advancement_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v that_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o most_o sacred_a decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_n will_v be_v violate_v we_o see_v then_o that_o those_o privilege_n which_o belong_v to_o church_n then_o ought_v still_o to_o be_v inviolable_o observe_v so_o that_o those_o church_n which_o then_o have_v primate_fw-la and_o metropolitan_n of_o their_o own_o may_v plead_v their_o own_o right_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o nicene_n canon_n so_o we_o find_v it_o decree_v in_o that_o council_n of_o ephesus_n in_o the_o famous_a case_n of_o the_o cyprian_a bishop_n for_o their_o metropolitan_a be_v dead_a troilus_z the_o bishop_n of_o constance_n the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n pretend_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o ordain_v their_o metropolitan_a 424._o because_o cyprus_n be_v within_o the_o civil_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o diocese_n of_o antioch_n upon_o this_o the_o cyprian_a bishop_n make_v their_o complaint_n to_o the_o general_n council_n at_o ephesus_n and_o ground_n it_o upon_o that_o ancient_a custom_n which_o the_o niccne_n canon_n insist_o on_o viz._n that_o their_o metropolitan_a have_v be_v exempt_a from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o be_v ordain_v by_o a_o synod_n of_o cyprian_a bishop_n which_o privilege_n be_v not_o only_o confirm_v to_o they_o by_o the_o ephesine_n council_n but_o a_o general_a decree_n pass_v that_o the_o right_n of_o every_o province_n shall_v be_v preserve_v whole_a and_o inviolate_a which_o it_o have_v of_o old_a according_a to_o ancient_a custom_n 426._o which_o be_v not_o a_o decree_n make_v mere_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o cyprian_a bishop_n but_o a_o common_a assert_v the_o right_n of_o metropolitan_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v hold_v inviolate_a now_o therefore_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o the_o church_n than_o be_v far_o from_o be_v under_o one_o of_o the_o three_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n antioch_n or_o alexandria_n for_o not_o only_o the_o three_o diocese_n of_o pontus_n asia_n and_o thracia_n be_v exempt_a although_o afterward_o they_o voluntary_o submit_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n but_o likewise_o all_o those_o church_n which_o be_v in_o distinct_a diocese_n from_o these_o have_v primate_fw-la of_o their_o own_o who_o be_v independent_a upon_o any_o other_o upon_o which_o account_n it_o have_v not_o only_o be_v just_o plead_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o britannic_a church_n that_o they_o be_v exempt_a from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n but_o it_o be_v ingenuous_o confess_v by_o father_n barn_n 3._o that_o the_o britannic_a church_n may_v plead_v the_o cyprian_a privilege_n that_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o no_o patriarch_n and_o although_o this_o privilege_n be_v take_v away_o by_o force_n and_o tumult_n yet_o be_v restore_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o henry_n 8._o time_n and_o quiet_o enjoy_v since_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v retain_v for_o peace_n sake_n without_o prejudice_n of_o catholicism_n and_o the_o brand_n of_o schism_n if_o so_o certain_o it_o can_v be_v no_o schism_n to_o withdraw_v from_o the_o usurp_a authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v more_o large_o insist_v on_o by_o other_o and_o therefore_o i_o pass_v they_o over_o 3._o from_o thence_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v then_o a_o equality_n not_o only_o among_o the_o patriarch_n who_o name_n come_v not_o up_o till_o some_o time_n after_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o among_o the_o several_a primate_fw-la of_o dioceses_fw-la all_o enjoy_v equal_a power_n and_o authority_n over_o their_o respective_a diocese_n without_o subordination_n to_o each_o other_o but_o here_o it_o be_v vehement_o plead_v by_o some_o who_o yet_o be_v no_o friend_n to_o the_o unlimited_a power_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n that_o it_o be_v hardly_o conceivable_a that_o he_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o power_n in_o the_o church_n but_o mere_o as_o head_n of_o the_o roman_a diocese_n and_o that_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o church_n he_o have_v a_o regular_a pre-eminence_n above_o other_o in_o order_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o if_o this_o be_v grant_v it_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o that_o universal_a pastorship_n over_o the_o church_n which_o our_o adversary_n contend_v for_o as_o due_a by_o divine_a right_n and_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v so_o by_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n let_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o quit_v his_o former_a plea_n and_o insist_v only_o on_o this_o and_o we_o shall_v speedy_o return_v a_o answer_n and_o show_v how_o far_o this_o canonical_a primacy_n do_v extend_v but_o as_o long_o as_o he_o challenge_v a_o supremacy_n upon_o other_o ground_n he_o forfeit_v this_o right_a whatever_o it_o be_v which_o come_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o what_o mere_o come_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n can_v bind_v the_o church_n to_o a_o absolute_a submission_n in_o case_n that_o authority_n be_v abuse_v to_o the_o church_n apparent_a prejudice_n for_o the_o church_n can_v never_o give_v away_o her_o power_n to_o secure_v herself_o against_o whatever_o encroachment_n tend_v to_o the_o injury_n of_o it_o this_o power_n then_o may_v be_v rescind_v by_o the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n when_o it_o tend_v to_o the_o mischief_n of_o it_o 3._o this_o canonical_a pre-eminence_n be_v not_o the_o main_a thing_n we_o dispute_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n let_v she_o reform_v herself_o from_o all_o those_o error_n and_o corruption_n which_o be_v in_o her_o communion_n and_o reduce_v the_o church_n to_o the_o primitive_a purity_n and_o simplicity_n of_o faith_n and_o worship_n and_o then_o see_v if_o we_o will_v quarrel_v with_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n or_o any_o regular_a pre-eminence_n in_o he_o mere_o in_o order_n to_o the_o church_n peace_n and_o unity_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o case_n between_o we_o and_o they_o they_o challenge_v a_o unlimited_a power_n and_o that_o by_o divine_a right_n and_o nothing_o else_o will_v satisfy_v they_o but_o this_o although_o there_o be_v neither_o any_o ground_n in_o scripture_n for_o it_o nor_o any_o evidence_n of_o it_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n but_o however_o we_o must_v see_v what_o you_o produce_v for_o it_o first_o
have_v prove_v 189._o and_o not_o mere_o say_v but_o what_o a_o unreasonable_a man_n be_v you_o who_o will_v put_v his_o lordship_n to_o prove_v negative_n if_o you_o challenge_v a_o right_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v over_o we_o it_o be_v your_o business_n to_o prove_v it_o his_o lordship_n give_v a_o sufficient_a reason_n for_o what_o he_o say_v in_o say_v that_o britain_n be_v one_o of_o the_o diocese_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o therefore_o have_v a_o primate_n of_o her_o own_o this_o you_o deny_v not_o but_o say_v this_o only_a prove_n that_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n can_v not_o appeal_v to_o rome_n what_o again_o but_o this_o subterfuge_n have_v be_v prevent_v already_o but_o to_o pass_v by_o what_o without_o any_o shadow_n of_o proof_n you_o say_v of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o pope_n urban_n be_v call_v anselm_n the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o other_o world_n which_o we_o be_v far_o from_o make_v the_o least_o ground_n to_o make_v canterbury_n a_o patriarchal_a see_v which_o as_o far_o as_o concern_v the_o right_n of_o primacy_n be_v so_o long_o before_o the_o synod_n of_o bar_n in_o apulia_n we_o come_v to_o that_o which_o be_v more_o material_a viz._n your_o attempt_n to_o prove_v that_o britain_n be_v ancient_o subject_a to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n for_o which_o you_o instance_n in_o wilfrid_n archbishop_n of_o york_n appeal_n to_o rome_n about_o a._n d._n 673._o who_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o bishopric_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o sentence_n pass_v in_o his_o behalf_n at_o rome_n 20._o and_o so_o be_v a_o second_o time_n expel_v appeal_v as_o former_o and_o be_v again_o restore_v to_o which_o i_o shall_v return_v you_o a_o clear_a and_o full_a answer_n in_o the_o word_n of_o another_o archbishop_n the_o late_a learned_a l._n primate_n of_o ireland_n 60._o the_o most_o famous_a say_v he_o i_o have_v almost_o say_v the_o only_a appellant_n from_o england_n to_o rome_n that_o we_o read_v of_o before_o the_o conquest_n be_v wilfride_n archbishop_n of_o york_n who_o notwithstanding_o that_o he_o gain_v sentence_n upon_o sentence_n at_o rome_n in_o his_o favour_n and_o notwithstanding_o that_o the_o pope_n do_v send_v express_a nuncio_n into_o england_n on_o purpose_n to_o see_v his_o sentence_n execute_v yet_o he_o can_v not_o obtain_v his_o restitution_n or_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o sentence_n for_o six_o year_n during_o the_o reign_v of_o king_n egbert_n and_o alfrede_n his_o son_n yea_o king_n alfrede_v tell_v the_o nunioes_n express_o that_o he_o honour_v they_o as_o his_o parent_n for_o their_o grave_a life_n and_o honourable_a aspect_n but_o he_o can_v not_o give_v any_o assent_n to_o their_o legation_n because_o it_o be_v against_o reason_n 705._o that_o a_o person_n twice_o condemn_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o the_o english_a shall_v be_v restore_v upon_o the_o pope_n letter_n if_o they_o have_v believe_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v their_o competent_a judge_n either_o as_o universal_a monarch_n or_o so_o much_o as_o patriarch_n of_o britain_n or_o any_o more_o than_o a_o honourable_a arbitratour_n which_o all_o the_o patriarch_n be_v even_o without_o the_o bound_n of_o their_o proper_a jurisdiction_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o two_o king_n successive_o and_o the_o great_a council_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o other_o archbishop_n theodore_n with_o all_o the_o prime_a ecclesiastic_n and_o the_o flower_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n do_v so_o long_o and_o so_o resolute_o oppose_v so_o many_o sentence_n and_o message_n from_o rome_n and_o condemn_v he_o twice_o who_o the_o pope_n have_v absolve_v consider_v that_o wilfride_n be_v a_o archbishop_n not_o a_o inferior_a clerk_n and_o if_o a_o appeal_n from_o england_n to_o rome_n have_v be_v proper_a or_o lawful_a in_o any_o case_n it_o have_v be_v so_o in_o this_o case_n but_o it_o be_v otherwise_o determine_v by_o those_o who_o be_v most_o concern_v malmsbury_n suppose_v either_o by_o inspiration_n or_o upon_o his_o own_o head_n that_o the_o king_n and_o the_o archbishop_n theodore_n be_v smite_v with_o remorse_n before_o their_o death_n for_o the_o injury_n do_v to_o wilfride_n and_o the_o slight_v the_o pope_n sentence_n letter_n and_o legate_n but_o the_o contrary_n be_v most_o apparent_o true_a for_o first_o it_o be_v not_o king_n alfrede_v alone_o but_o the_o great_a council_n of_o the_o kingdom_n also_o not_o theodore_n alone_o but_o the_o main_a body_n of_o the_o clergy_n that_o oppose_v the_o pope_n letter_n and_o the_o restitution_n of_o wilfride_n in_o that_o manner_n as_o it_o be_v decree_v at_o rome_n second_o after_o alfrede_n and_o theodore_n be_v both_o dead_a we_o find_v the_o pope_n sentence_n and_o wilfrides_n restitution_n still_o oppose_v by_o the_o survive_a bishop_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o alfredes_n son_n to_o clear_v the_o matter_n past_o contradiction_n let_v we_o consider_v the_o ground_n of_o this_o long_a and_o bitter_a contention_n wilfride_n the_o archbishop_n be_v become_v a_o great_a pluralist_n and_o have_v ingross_v into_o his_o hand_n too_o many_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n the_o king_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n think_v fit_a to_o deprive_v he_o of_o some_o of_o they_o and_o to_o confer_v they_o upon_o other_o wilfride_n appeal_v from_o their_o sentence_n to_o rome_n the_o pope_n give_v sentence_n after_o sentence_n in_o favour_n of_o wilfride_n but_o for_o all_o his_o sentence_n he_o be_v not_o he_o can_v not_o be_v restore_v until_o he_o have_v quit_v two_o of_o his_o monastery_n which_o be_v in_o question_n hongestilldean_n and_o ripon_n which_o of_o all_o other_o he_o love_v most_o dear_o and_o where_o he_o be_v afterward_o inter_v this_o be_v not_o a_o conquest_n but_o a_o plain_a wave_n of_o his_o sentence_n from_o rome_n and_o yield_v of_o the_o question_n for_o those_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a cause_n of_o the_o controversy_n so_o the_o king_n and_o the_o church_n after_o alfredes_n death_n still_o make_v good_a his_o conclusion_n that_o it_o be_v against_o reason_n that_o a_o person_n twice_o condemn_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o the_o english_a shall_v be_v restore_v upon_o the_o pope_n bull._n and_o as_o he_o do_v not_o so_o neither_o do_v they_o give_v any_o assent_n to_o the_o pope_n legation_n this_o i_o hope_v may_v suffice_v as_o a_o most_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o your_o objection_n from_o wilfrides_n appeal_n but_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o urge_v yet_o further_o for_o the_o ancient_a subjection_n of_o britain_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o these_o word_n again_o 16._o be_v it_o not_o manifest_v out_o of_o he_o bede_n 29_o that_o even_o the_o primitive_a original_a institution_n of_o our_o english_a bishop_n be_v from_o rome_n and_o for_o this_o you_o cite_v a_o letter_n of_o pope_n gregory_n 1._o to_o augustine_n the_o monk_n who_o you_o call_v our_o english_a apostle_n in_o which_o gregory_n grant_v to_o he_o the_o use_n of_o the_o pall_n the_o proper_a badge_n or_o sign_n of_o archiepiscopal_a dignity_n and_o that_o he_o condescend_v that_o he_o shall_v ordain_v twelve_o bishop_n under_o his_o jurisdiction_n etc._n etc._n behold_v here_o say_v you_o the_o original_a charter_n as_o i_o may_v say_v 190._o of_o the_o primacy_n of_o canterbury_n in_o this_o letter_n and_o mandate_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v found_v nor_o can_v it_o with_o any_o colour_n of_o reason_n be_v draw_v from_o other_o origin_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o grant_n have_v all_o the_o succeed_a bishop_n of_o that_o see_v enjoin_v the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n of_o primat_n of_o this_o nation_n from_o whence_o you_o very_o civil_o charge_v his_o lordship_n either_o with_o gross_a ignorance_n if_o he_o know_v it_o not_o or_o with_o great_a ingratitude_n if_o he_o know_v it_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o his_o lordship_n know_v this_o no_o doubt_n very_o well_o that_o gregory_n send_v austin_n into_o england_n etc._n etc._n can_v not_o from_o thence_o think_v himself_o bind_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o it_o have_v be_v more_o pertinent_a to_o your_o purpose_n not_o to_o charge_v he_o with_o ingratitude_n but_o with_o disobedience_n for_o that_o be_v it_o which_o you_o ought_v to_o prove_v hence_o that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n ought_v still_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o gregory_n 1._o make_v augustine_n the_o first_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n a_o wonderful_a strong_a argument_n no_o doubt_n which_o out_o of_o charity_n to_o you_o we_o must_v further_o examine_v for_o you_o tell_v we_o the_o original_a charter_n of_o the_o primacy_n of_o canterbury_n be_v contain_v in_o that_o grant_n to_o satisfy_v you_o as_o to_o this_o two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v the_o primacy_n itself_o and_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o by_o a_o particular_a person_n in_o some_o
sufficient_o detect_v by_o the_o african_a bishop_n and_o it_o be_v the_o worst_a of_o all_o excuse_n to_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o it_o as_o you_o do_v on_o the_o pope_n secretary_n for_o do_v you_o think_v pope_n zosimus_n be_v so_o careless_a of_o his_o business_n as_o not_o to_o look_v over_o the_o commonitorium_fw-la which_o faustinus_n carry_v with_o he_o do_v you_o think_v faustinus_n will_v not_o have_v correct_v the_o fault_n when_o the_o african_a bishop_n boggle_v so_o at_o it_o what_o make_v he_o so_o unwilling_a that_o they_o shall_v send_v into_o the_o east_n to_o examine_v the_o nicene_n canon_n but_o entreat_v they_o to_o leave_v the_o business_n whole_o with_o the_o pope_n if_o he_o be_v not_o conscious_a of_o some_o forgery_n in_o the_o business_n but_o you_o say_v as_o a_o further_a plea_n in_o zosimus_n his_o excuse_n that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v a_o appendix_n to_o the_o nicene_n council_n rather_o than_o otherwise_o 195_o a_o excellent_a appendix_n make_v at_o two_o and_o twenty_o year_n distance_n from_o the_o other_o and_o call_v by_o other_o emperor_n consist_v of_o many_o other_o person_n and_o assemble_v upon_o a_o quite_o different_a occasion_n if_o this_o have_v be_v a_o appendix_n to_o the_o nicene_n council_n how_o come_v that_o to_o have_v but_o twenty_o canon_n how_o come_v atticus_n and_o cyrillus_n not_o to_o send_v these_o with_o the_o other_o how_o come_v all_o the_o copy_n of_o council_n and_o canon_n to_o distinguish_v they_o how_o come_v they_o not_o to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o code_n of_o canon_n produce_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o bassianus_n and_o stephanus_n if_o this_o be_v the_o same_o council_n because_o some_o of_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v determine_v how_o come_v that_o in_o trullo_n not_o to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o 6._o ecumenical_a how_o come_v the_o council_n of_o antioch_n not_o to_o be_v a_o appendix_n to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a if_o this_o be_v when_o it_o be_v celebrate_v before_o this_o and_o the_o canon_n of_o it_o insert_v in_o the_o code_n of_o canon_n own_v by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n so_o that_o by_o all_o the_o shift_n and_o art_n you_o can_v use_v you_o can_v excuse_v zosimus_n from_o imposture_n in_o send_v these_o sardican_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o nicene_n canon_n and_o on_o what_o account_n the_o pope_n satisfy_v the_o canon_n then_o be_v apparent_a enough_o viz._n for_o the_o advance_v the_o interess_n of_o his_o see_n and_o this_o the_o african_a father_n do_v as_o easy_o discern_v afterward_o as_o we_o do_v now_o but_o by_o this_o we_o see_v what_o good_a foundation_n the_o pope_n claim_n of_o supremacy_n have_v then_o and_o what_o art_n not_o to_o say_v fraud_n they_o be_v behold_v to_o for_o set_v it_o up_o even_o as_o great_a as_o they_o have_v since_o make_v use_n of_o to_o maintain_v it_o chap._n vi_o of_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n in_o what_o sense_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n be_v take_v in_o antiquity_n a_o threefold_a acceptation_n of_o it_o as_o import_v 1._o a_o general_a care_n over_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o be_v attribute_v to_o other_o catholic_n bishop_n by_o antiquity_n beside_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o be_v large_o prove_v 2._o a_o peculiar_a dignity_n over_o the_o church_n within_o the_o roman_a empire_n this_o account_v then_o ecumenical_a thence_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n call_v ecumenical_a bishop_n and_o sometime_o of_o other_o patriarchal_a church_n 3._o nothing_o universal_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o head_n of_o it_o so_o never_o give_v in_o antiquity_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o ground_n of_o the_o contest_v about_o this_o title_n between_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o constantinople_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n about_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n of_o the_o grammatical_a and_o metaphorical_a sense_n of_o this_o title_n many_o argument_n to_o prove_v it_o impossible_a that_o s._n gregory_n shall_v understand_v it_o in_o the_o grammatical_a sense_n the_o great_a absurdity_n consequent_a upon_o it_o s._n gregory_n reason_n prove_v to_o hold_v against_o that_o sense_n of_o it_o which_o be_v admit_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o irenaeus_n his_o opposition_n to_o victor_n excommunicate_v the_o asian_a bishop_n argue_v no_o authority_n he_o have_v over_o they_o what_o the_o more_o powerful_a principality_n in_o irenaeus_n be_v ruffinus_n his_o interpretation_n of_o the_o 6._o nicene_n canon_n vindicate_v the_o suburbicary_n church_n can_v be_v understand_v of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o roman_a empire_n the_o pope_n no_o infallible_a successor_n of_o s._n peter_n nor_o so_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v by_o epiphanius_n s._n peter_n have_v no_o supremacy_n of_o power_n over_o the_o apostle_n 1_o his_o lordship_n have_v undertake_v to_o give_v a_o account_n how_o the_o pope_n rose_n by_o degree_n to_o their_o greatness_n under_o the_o christian_a emperor_n in_o prosecution_n of_o that_o necessary_o fall_v upon_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n affect_v by_o john_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o condemn_v by_o pelagius_n 1._o and_o gregory_n 2._o this_o you_o call_v a_o trite_a and_o beat_a way_n because_o i_o suppose_v the_o truth_n be_v so_o plain_a and_o evident_a in_o it_o but_o withal_o you_o tell_v we_o this_o objection_n have_v be_v satisfy_v a_o hundred_o time_n over_o if_o you_o have_v say_v the_o same_o answer_n have_v be_v repeat_v so_o often_o over_o you_o have_v say_v true_a but_o if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o have_v be_v satisfy_v once_o you_o say_v more_o than_o you_o be_v able_a to_o defend_v as_o will_v evident_o appear_v by_o your_o very_a unsatisfactory_a answer_n which_o at_o last_o you_o give_v to_o it_o so_o that_o if_o none_o of_o your_o party_n have_v be_v any_o wise_a than_o yourself_o in_o this_o matter_n i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o be_v satisfy_v with_o what_o they_o say_v that_o i_o can_v only_o pity_v those_o person_n who_o interest_n sway_v their_o understanding_n so_o much_o or_o at_o least_o their_o expression_n as_o to_o make_v they_o say_v any_o thing_n that_o seem_v to_o be_v for_o their_o purpose_n though_o in_o itself_o never_o so_o senseless_a or_o unreasonable_a and_o i_o can_v scarce_o hold_v myself_o from_o say_v with_o the_o orator_n when_o a_o like_a objection_n to_o this_o be_v offer_v he_o because_o multitude_n have_v say_v so_o quasi_fw-la verò_fw-la quidquam_fw-la sit_fw-la tam_fw-la valdè_fw-la quam_fw-la nihil_fw-la sapere_fw-la vulgar_a that_o truth_n and_o reason_n be_v the_o great_a novelty_n in_o the_o world_n for_o serious_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o man_n of_o common_a understanding_n to_o rest_v satisfy_v with_o such_o pitiful_a shift_n as_o you_o be_v fain_o to_o make_v if_o they_o will_v but_o use_v any_o freedom_n in_o inquire_v and_o any_o liberty_n of_o judge_v when_o they_o have_v do_v but_o when_o once_o man_n have_v give_v not_o to_o say_v sell_v away_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o free_a reason_n by_o addict_v themselves_o to_o a_o particular_a interest_n there_o can_v scarce_o any_o thing_n be_v imagine_v so_o absurd_a but_o it_o pass_v current_o from_o one_o to_o another_o because_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o receive_v all_o blindfold_a and_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n to_o deliver_v it_o to_o other_o by_o which_o mean_v it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n for_o the_o great_a nonsense_n and_o contradiction_n to_o be_v say_v a_o hundred_o time_n over_o and_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o the_o present_a case_n be_v that_o we_o be_v now_o to_o inquire_v into_o and_o for_o the_o same_o end_n which_o you_o propose_v to_o yourself_o viz._n that_o all_o obscurity_n may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o truth_n clear_o appear_v i_o shall_v in_o the_o first_o place_n set_v down_o what_o his_o lordship_n say_v and_o then_o distinct_o examine_v what_o you_o reply_v in_o answer_n to_o it_o thus_o than_o his_o lordship_n proceed_v about_o this_o time_n break_v out_o the_o ambition_n of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n affect_v to_o be_v universal_a bishop_n 178._o he_o be_v countenance_v in_o this_o by_o mauricius_n the_o emperor_n but_o sour_o oppose_v by_o pelagius_n and_o s._n gregory_n insomuch_o that_o s._n gregory_n plain_o say_v that_o this_o pride_n of_o his_o show_n that_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n be_v near_o 78._o so_o as_o yet_o and_o this_o be_v near_o upon_o the_o point_n of_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o universal_a bishop_n no_o one_o monarch_n over_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n but_o mauricius_n be_v depose_v and_o murder_v by_o phocas_n phocas_n confer_v upon_o boniface_n the_o three_o that_o very_a honour_n which_o two_o of_o his_o predecessor_n have_v
emperor_n have_v check_v he_o for_o meddle_v in_o it_o and_o be_v so_o far_o from_o oppose_v the_o patriarch_n title_n 34._o that_o in_o effect_n he_o bid_v he_o trouble_v himself_o no_o more_o about_o it_o which_o poor_a s._n gregory_n take_v very_o ill_o and_o afterward_o when_o cyriacus_n succeed_v john_n in_o constantinople_n the_o emperor_n be_v somewhat_o fearful_a lest_o gregory_n at_o the_o come_n in_o of_o a_o new_a patriarch_n might_n on_o the_o account_n of_o this_o new_a title_n deny_v his_o communicatory_a letter_n he_o dispatch_v a_o letter_n to_o he_o to_o quicken_v he_o about_o it_o and_o he_o take_v it_o very_o unkind_o that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v suspect_v his_o indiscretion_n so_o much_o that_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o this_o title_n which_o he_o say_v 30._o have_v sore_o wound_v he_o he_o shall_v deny_v communion_n in_o the_o faith_n with_o he_o and_o yet_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n say_v that_o whosoever_o take_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n upon_o he_o be_v a_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n but_o if_o this_o name_n have_v be_v apprehend_v in_o that_o which_o you_o call_v the_o literal_a and_o grammatical_a sense_n will_v not_o the_o emperor_n be_v commend_v by_o gregory_n too_o for_o his_o piety_n have_v rather_o encourage_v he_o in_o it_o where_o as_o he_o plain_o tell_v he_o it_o be_v a_o contest_v about_o a_o frivolous_a name_n and_o nothing_o else_o ibid._n and_o that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o scandal_n among_o they_o about_o it_o upon_o which_o gregory_n be_v put_v to_o his_o distinction_n of_o two_o sort_n of_o frivolous_a thing_n some_o that_o be_v very_o harmless_a and_o some_o that_o be_v very_o hurtful_a i._n e._n frivolous_a thing_n be_v either_o such_o as_o be_v frivolous_a or_o such_o as_o be_v not_o for_o who_o ever_o imagine_v that_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v very_o hurtful_a be_v frivolous_a but_o however_o s._n gregory_n speak_v excellent_a sense_n for_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o title_n itself_o may_v be_v frivolous_a but_o the_o consequence_n of_o it_o may_v be_v dreadful_a and_o so_o we_o have_v find_v it_o since_o his_o time_n so_o that_o this_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o business_n between_o they_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n he_o challenge_v the_o title_n of_o ecumenical_a patritriarch_n or_o bishop_n as_o belong_v of_o right_n to_o he_o be_v patriarch_n of_o the_o chief_a seat_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n challenge_v no_o universal_a jurisdiction_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o title_n on_o which_o account_n the_o emperor_n and_o eastern_a bishop_n admit_v of_o it_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n partly_o look_v at_o their_o own_o interest_n in_o it_o for_o so_o it_o appear_v by_o one_o of_o gregory_n epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o suspect_v it_o to_o be_v his_o own_o interest_n which_o he_o stand_v so_o much_o up_o for_o and_o partly_o foresee_v the_o dangerous_a consequence_n of_o this_o 32._o if_o universal_a jurisdiction_n be_v challenge_v with_o it_o they_o resolute_o oppose_v it_o not_o mere_o for_o the_o title_n sake_n but_o for_o that_o which_o may_v follow_v upon_o that_o title_n take_v it_o not_o in_o your_o literal_a but_o in_o your_o metaphorical_a sense_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v present_o but_o neither_o party_n be_v so_o weak_a and_o silly_a as_o to_o apprehend_v it_o in_o your_o literal_a sense_n for_o then_o neither_o will_v the_o emperor_n have_v slight_v it_o nor_o the_o pope_n oppose_a it_o on_o those_o term_n which_o they_o do_v and_o on_o such_o ground_n which_o reach_v your_o metaphorical_a sense_n 5._o the_o same_o title_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n which_o gregory_n oppose_v it_o do_v boniface_n accept_v of_o from_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n this_o you_o confess_v yourself_o when_o you_o say_v that_o all_o that_o phocas_n do_v 5._o be_v but_o to_o declare_v that_o the_o title_n in_o contest_v do_v of_o right_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n only_o therefore_o the_o same_o title_n which_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n take_v to_o himself_o before_o be_v both_o give_v by_o phocas_n and_o take_v by_o pope_n boniface_n this_o then_o be_v confess_v by_o you_o let_v i_o now_o serious_o ask_v you_o whether_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n which_o pope_n gregory_n oppose_v be_v to_o be_v take_v in_o the_o grammatical_a or_o metaphorical_a sense_n take_v now_o whether_o of_o they_o you_o please_v if_o in_o the_o metaphorical_a all_o his_o argument_n hold_v against_o the_o pope_n present_a universal_a jurisdiction_n by_o your_o own_o confession_n if_o in_o the_o literal_a and_o grammatical_a than_o pope_n boniface_n have_v all_o those_o thing_n belong_v to_o he_o which_o gregory_n condemn_v that_o title_n for_o then_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n pope_n boniface_n must_v be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n he_o must_v equal_v himself_o to_o lucifer_n in_o pride_n he_o must_v have_v that_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n upon_o he_o and_o all_o those_o dreadful_a consequence_n must_v attend_v he_o and_o all_o his_o follower_n who_o own_o that_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n in_o that_o which_o you_o call_v the_o literal_a or_o grammatical_a sense_n of_o it_o 6._o last_o it_o appear_v from_o s._n gregory_n himself_o 6._o that_o the_o reason_n which_o he_o urge_v against_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n be_v such_o as_o hold_v against_o that_o which_o you_o call_v the_o metaphorical_a sense_n of_o it_o which_o in_o short_a be_v a_o universal_a pastor_n exercise_v authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o it_o be_v scarce_o possible_a to_o imagine_v that_o he_o shall_v speak_v more_o clear_o against_o such_o a_o universal_a headship_n than_o he_o do_v and_o urge_v such_o argument_n against_o it_o which_o proper_o belong_v to_o that_o metaphorical_a sense_n of_o it_o as_o when_o he_o say_v to_o john_n the_o patriarch_n what_o will_v thou_o answer_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n 38._o who_o do_v endeavour_v to_o subject_v all_o his_o member_n to_o thou_o under_o the_o name_n of_o universal_a bishop_n what_o be_v there_o in_o these_o word_n which_o do_v not_o full_o belong_v to_o your_o metaphorical_a sense_n of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n do_v he_o not_o subject_a all_o christ_n member_n to_o he_o do_v he_o not_o challenge_v to_o himself_o proper_a jurisdiction_n over_o they_o what_o then_o will_v he_o be_v able_a to_o answer_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o st._n gregory_n understand_v it_o exclusiuè_a of_o any_o other_o do_v not_o he_o arise_v to_o that_o height_n of_o singularity_n ib._n that_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o none_o but_o rule_v over_o all_o yet_o these_o be_v the_o very_a word_n he_o use_v and_o can_v any_o more_o express_o describe_v your_o head_n of_o the_o church_n than_o these_o do_v yet_o herein_o he_o say_v he_o imitate_v the_o pride_n of_o lucifer_n who_o according_a to_o st._n gregory_n endeavour_v to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a as_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a and_o follow_v that_o parallel_n close_o that_o a_o universal_a bishop_n imitate_v lucifer_n in_o exalt_v his_o throne_n above_o the_o star_n of_o god_n for_o say_v he_o what_o be_v all_o the_o brethren_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n ib._n but_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n and_o after_o parallel_v they_o with_o the_o cloud_n and_o so_o this_o terrestrial_a lucifer_n ascend_v above_o the_o height_n of_o the_o cloud_n and_o again_o say_v he_o sure_o the_o apostle_n peter_n be_v the_o first_o member_n not_o the_o head_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o universal_a church_n paul_n andrew_n and_o john_n ibid._n what_o be_v they_o else_o but_o the_o head_n of_o particular_a church_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v all_o member_n of_o the_o church_n under_o one_o head_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v more_o clear_a against_o any_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o christ_n himself_o when_o st._n peter_n be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v only_o a_o prime_a member_n of_o the_o church_n how_o then_o come_v his_o successor_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o it_o and_o as_o he_o go_v on_o the_o saint_n before_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o law_n and_o under_o grace_n who_o all_o make_v up_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n they_o be_v all_o but_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o none_o of_o they_o will_v be_v call_v universal_a and_o i_o pray_v let_v his_o holiness_n consider_v his_o follow_a word_n let_v your_o holiness_n acknowledge_v what_o pride_n it_o be_v to_o be_v call_v by_o that_o name_n ibid._n which_o none_o that_o be_v true_o holy_a be_v ever_o call_v by_o and_o do_v you_o think_v now_o that_o these_o expression_n do_v not_o as_o proper_o reach_v
be_v give_v a_o hundred_o time_n over_o be_v so_o pitiful_o weak_a absurd_a and_o ridiculous_a that_o you_o may_v have_v be_v ashamed_a to_o have_v produce_v it_o once_o and_o much_o more_o to_o repeat_v it_o without_o say_v any_o more_o for_o it_o than_o you_o do_v for_o your_o other_o discourse_n depend_v whole_o upon_o it_o and_o all_o that_o be_v take_v away_o the_o rest_n do_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n with_o it_o we_o must_v now_o therefore_o return_v to_o his_o lordship_n discourse_n in_o which_o he_o go_v on_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o pope_n greatness_n 10._o as_o yet_o say_v he_o the_o right_a of_o election_n or_o ratification_n of_o the_o pope_n continue_v in_o the_o emperor_n 179._o but_o then_o the_o lombard_n grow_v so_o great_a in_o italy_n and_o the_o empire_n be_v so_o infest_a with_o saracen_n and_o such_o change_v happen_v in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o that_o neither_o for_o the_o present_a the_o homage_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v useful_a for_o the_o emperor_n nor_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o emperor_n available_a for_o the_o pope_n by_o this_o mean_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v leave_v to_o play_v his_o own_o game_n by_o himself_o a_o thing_n which_o as_o it_o please_v he_o well_o enough_o so_o both_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n make_v great_a advantage_n by_o it_o for_o be_v grow_v to_o that_o eminence_n by_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o greatness_n of_o that_o city_n and_o place_n of_o his_o abode_n he_o find_v himself_o the_o more_o free_a the_o great_a the_o tempest_n be_v that_o beat_v upon_o the_o other_o and_o then_o first_o he_o set_v himself_o to_o alienate_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o italian_n from_o the_o emperor_n next_o he_o oppose_v himself_o against_o he_o and_o about_o a._n d._n 710._o pope_n constantine_n 1_o do_v also_o first_o of_o all_o open_o confront_v philippicus_n the_o emperor_n in_o defence_n of_o image_n as_o onuphrius_n tell_v we_o after_o he_o gregory_n 2._o and_o the_o 3._o do_v the_o same_o by_o leo_n isaurus_n by_o this_o time_n the_o lombard_n begin_v to_o pinch_v very_o close_o and_o to_o vex_v on_o all_o side_n not_o italy_n only_o but_o rome_n also_o this_o drive_v the_o pope_n to_o seek_v a_o new_a patron_n and_o very_o fit_o he_o meet_v with_o charles_n martell_n in_o france_n that_o famous_a warrior_n against_o the_o saracen_n he_o he_o implore_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o lombard_n this_o address_n seem_v very_o advise_o take_v at_o least_o it_o prove_v very_o fortunate_a to_o they_o both_o for_o in_o short_a time_n it_o dissolve_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lombard_n in_o italy_n which_o have_v then_o stand_v two_o hundred_o and_o four_o year_n which_o be_v the_o pope_n security_n and_o it_o bring_v the_o crown_n of_o france_n into_o the_o house_n of_o charles_n and_o short_o after_o the_o western_a empire_n and_o now_o begin_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v great_a indeed_o for_o by_o the_o bounty_n of_o pepin_n son_n of_o charles_n that_o which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o lombard_n be_v give_v to_o the_o pope_n so_o that_o now_o of_o a_o bishop_n he_o become_v a_o temporal_a prince_n but_o when_o charles_n the_o great_a have_v set_v up_o the_o western_a empire_n than_o he_o resume_v the_o ancient_a and_o original_a power_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n to_o call_v council_n to_o order_v papal_a election_n and_o this_o power_n continue_v in_o his_o posterity_n for_o this_o right_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v in_o force_n and_o use_v in_o gregory_n the_o seventh_n time_n who_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o popedom_n by_o henry_n the_o four_o who_o he_o afterward_o depose_v and_o it_o may_v have_v continue_v long_o if_o the_o succeed_a emperor_n have_v have_v ability_n enough_o to_o secure_v or_o vindicate_v their_o own_o right_n but_o the_o pope_n keep_v a_o strong_a council_n about_o he_o and_o meet_v with_o some_o weak_a prince_n and_o they_o ofttimes_o distract_v with_o great_a and_o dangerous_a war_n grow_v strong_a till_o he_o get_v the_o better_a so_o this_o be_v enough_o to_o show_v how_o the_o pope_n climb_v up_o by_o the_o emperor_n till_o they_o overtopped_a they_o which_o be_v all_o i_o say_v before_o and_o have_v now_o prove_v and_o this_o be_v about_o the_o year_n 1073._o yet_o be_v it_o carry_v in_o succeed_a time_n with_o great_a change_n of_o fortune_n and_o different_a success_n the_o emperor_n sometime_o pluck_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n from_o the_o emperor_n win_v and_o lose_v ground_n as_o their_o spirit_n ability_n aid_n and_o opportunity_n be_v till_o at_o the_o last_o the_o pope_n settle_v himself_o upon_o the_o ground_n lay_v by_o gregory_n 7._o in_o the_o great_a power_n which_o he_o now_o use_v in_o and_o over_o these_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n to_o all_o this_o you_o return_v a_o short_a answer_n in_o these_o word_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o in_o temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n the_o pope_n grow_v great_a by_o the_o patronage_n of_o christian_a emperor_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n 200._o if_o he_o will_v have_v say_v any_o thing_n material_a he_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o the_o pope_n rose_n by_o the_o emperor_n mean_n to_o their_o spiritual_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o other_o bishop_n throughout_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n they_o claim_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la and_o which_o be_v so_o annex_v to_o the_o dignity_n of_o their_o office_n by_o christ_n institution_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n deprive_v of_o all_o his_o temporalty_n yet_o can_v not_o his_o spiritual_a authority_n suffer_v the_o least_o diminution_n by_o it_o but_o 1._o do_v his_o lordship_n discourse_n only_o contain_v a_o account_n of_o the_o pope_n temporal_a greatness_n by_o the_o patronage_n of_o christian_a emperor_n do_v he_o not_o plain_o show_v how_o the_o pope_n get_v their_o power_n by_o rebel_a and_o contest_v with_o the_o emperor_n themselves_o how_o they_o assume_v to_o themselves_o a_o power_n to_o depose_v emperor_n and_o do_v they_o claim_v these_o thing_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la too_o 2._o what_o you_o say_v of_o the_o pope_n spiritual_a authority_n will_v then_o hold_v good_a when_o it_o be_v well_o prove_v but_o bare_a assert_v it_o will_v never_o do_v it_o we_o must_v therefore_o have_v patience_n till_o you_o have_v leisure_n to_o attempt_v it_o but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o must_v consider_v how_o you_o vindicate_v the_o famous_a place_n of_o irenaeus_n concern_v as_o you_o say_v 11._o the_o pope_n supreme_a pastoral_a authority_n from_o his_o lordship_n interpretation_n yet_o before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o authority_n itself_o there_o be_v some_o light_a skirmish_n as_o you_o call_v they_o to_o be_v pass_v through_o and_o those_o be_v concern_v irenaeus_n himself_o for_o his_o lordship_n say_v that_o his_o adversary_n be_v much_o scant_v of_o ancient_a proof_n if_o irenaeus_n stand_v alone_o beside_o irenaeus_n be_v a_o bishop_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n 13._o and_o a_o very_a unlikely_a man_n to_o captivate_v the_o liberty_n of_o that_o church_n under_o the_o more_o powerful_a principality_n of_o rome_n and_o how_o can_v we_o have_v better_a evidence_n of_o his_o judgement_n touch_v that_o principality_n than_o the_o action_n of_o his_o life_n when_o pope_n victor_n excommunicate_v the_o asian_a church_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o at_o a_o blow_n be_v not_o irenaeus_n the_o chief_a man_n that_o reprehend_v he_o for_o it_o a_o very_a unmeet_a and_o undutiful_a thing_n sure_o it_o have_v be_v in_o irenaeus_n in_o deed_n to_o tax_v he_o of_o rashness_n and_o inconsiderateness_n who_o in_o word_n a._n c._n will_v have_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o he_o the_o supreme_a and_o infallible_a pastor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n to_o which_o you_o answer_v 1._o to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n as_o if_o forsooth_o the_o so_o much_o talk_v of_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n have_v be_v thing_n know_v or_o hear_v of_o in_o st._n irenaeus_n his_o time_n 6._o as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o not_o captivate_v the_o liberty_n of_o that_o church_n to_o rome_n and_o assert_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n in_o her_o obedience_n to_o rome_n yet_o these_o two_o must_v be_v confound_v by_o you_o to_o render_v his_o lordship_n answer_v ridiculous_a which_o yet_o be_v as_o sound_v and_o rational_a as_o your_o cavil_n be_v vain_a and_o impertinent_a but_o this_o you_o pass_v over_o and_o fix_v 2._o upon_o his_o reprehend_v pope_n victor_n where_o you_o say_v that_o eusebius_n have_v not_o a_o word_n import_v reprehension_n but_o rather_o a_o friendly_a and_o seasonable_a persuasion_n his_o word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n
etc._n he_o exhort_v he_o after_o a_o handsome_a manner_n as_o reflect_v on_o the_o pope_n dignity_n and_o clear_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v of_o right_a some_o authority_n over_o the_o asian_a bishop_n and_o by_o consequence_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o otherwise_o it_o have_v be_v very_o absurd_a in_o st._n irenaeus_n to_o persuade_v pope_n victor_n not_o to_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n so_o many_o christian_a province_n have_v he_o believe_v as_o protestant_a contend_v he_o do_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o to_o cut_v they_o off_o just_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v entreat_v the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n not_o to_o excommunicate_v the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o province_n over_o who_o he_o have_v not_o any_o the_o least_o pretence_n of_o jurisdiction_n i_o answer_v that_o if_o you_o say_v that_o eusebius_n have_v not_o a_o word_n import_v reprehension_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n you_o have_v not_o read_v what_o eusebius_n say_v for_o do_v not_o he_o express_o say_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o some_o of_o the_o bishop_n be_v yet_o remain_v 24_o in_o which_o they_o do_v severe_o rebuke_v he_o among_o who_o say_v he_o irenaeus_n be_v one_o etc._n etc._n it_o seem_v irenaeus_n be_v one_o of_o those_o bishop_n who_o do_v so_o sharp_o reprehend_v he_o but_o it_o may_v be_v you_o will_v render_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d kiss_v his_o holiness_n foot_n or_o exhort_v he_o after_o a_o handsome_a manner_n and_o indeed_o if_o they_o do_v it_o sharp_o they_o do_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d suitable_o enough_o to_o what_o victor_n deserve_v for_o his_o rash_a and_o inconsiderate_a proceed_n in_o this_o business_n but_o withal_o to_o let_v you_o see_v how_o well_o these_o proceed_n of_o his_o be_v resent_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n eusebius_n tell_v we_o before_o that_o victor_n by_o his_o letter_n do_v declare_v those_o of_o the_o eastern_a church_n to_o be_v excommunicate_a ibid._n and_o he_o present_o add_v but_o this_o do_v no_o way_n please_v all_o the_o bishop_n wherefore_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o countermand_v he_o that_o he_o may_v mind_v the_o thing_n of_o peace_n and_o unity_n and_o brotherly_a love_n and_o will_v you_o still_o render_v that_o word_n too_o by_o exhort_v he_o after_o a_o handsome_a manner_n when_o even_o christopherson_n render_v it_o by_o magnoperè_fw-la adhortabantur_fw-la valesius_fw-la by_o ex_fw-la adverso_fw-la hortati_fw-la sunt_fw-la and_o although_o these_o seem_v not_o to_o come_v up_o to_o the_o full_a emphasis_n of_o the_o word_n yet_o sure_o they_o imply_v somewhat_o of_o vehemency_n and_o earnestness_n in_o their_o persuade_v he_o as_o well_o as_o their_o be_v huge_o dissatisfy_v with_o what_o victor_n do_v i_o grant_v that_o these_o person_n do_v reflect_v as_o you_o say_v on_o the_o pope_n but_o not_o as_o you_o will_v have_v it_o on_o his_o dignity_n but_o on_o his_o rashness_n and_o indiscretion_n that_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o cast_v the_o asian_a church_n out_o of_o communion_n for_o such_o a_o trifle_n as_o that_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o they_o but_o you_o be_v the_o happy_a man_n at_o make_v inference_n that_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o for_o because_o irenaeus_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o gallican_n bishop_n write_v to_o victor_n not_o to_o proceed_v so_o rash_o in_o this_o action_n thence_o you_o infer_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v of_o right_a some_o authority_n over_o the_o asian_a bishop_n and_o by_o consequence_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v you_o not_o every_o jot_n as_o well_o infer_v that_o when_o a_o man_n in_o passion_n be_v ready_a to_o kill_v those_o that_o stand_v about_o he_o whoever_o persuade_v he_o not_o to_o do_v it_o do_v suppose_v he_o may_v lawful_o have_v do_v it_o if_o he_o will_v but_o if_o those_o bishop_n have_v so_o venerable_a a_o esteem_n as_o you_o will_v persuade_v we_o they_o have_v then_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n how_o come_v they_o to_o dispute_v his_o action_n in_o so_o high_a a_o manner_n as_o they_o do_v if_o they_o have_v look_v on_o he_o as_o universal_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n it_o have_v more_o become_v they_o to_o sit_v still_o and_o be_v quiet_a then_o severe_o to_o reprehend_v he_o who_o be_v alone_o able_a to_o judge_v what_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v do_v and_o what_o not_o in_o those_o case_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v call_v they_o to_o council_n to_o have_v know_v their_o advice_n it_o may_v have_v be_v their_o duty_n to_o have_v give_v it_o he_o in_o the_o most_o humble_a and_o submissive_a manner_n that_o may_v be_v but_o for_o they_o to_o intrude_v themselves_o into_o such_o a_o office_n as_o to_o advise_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n what_o to_o do_v in_o a_o matter_n peculiar_o concern_v he_o as_o though_o he_o do_v not_o know_v what_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v do_v himself_o methinks_v you_o shall_v not_o imagine_v that_o these_o man_n do_v act_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o become_v they_o in_o do_v it_o can_v they_o possible_o in_o any_o thing_n more_o declare_v how_o little_a they_o think_v it_o necessary_a for_o all_o church_n to_o conform_v to_o that_o of_o rome_n when_o they_o plead_v for_o dissenter_n in_o such_o a_o matter_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v absolute_o declare_v himself_o about_o and_o how_o dare_v any_o of_o they_o slight_v the_o thunderbolt_n which_o the_o pope_n threaten_v they_o with_o yet_o not_o only_a polycrates_n and_o the_o asian_a bishop_n who_o join_v with_o he_o profess_v themselves_o not_o at_o all_o affright_a at_o they_o but_o the_o other_o church_n look_v not_o on_o themselves_o as_o oblige_v to_o forsake_v their_o communion_n on_o that_o account_n if_o this_o be_v such_o a_o evidence_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n in_o one_o sense_n i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v a_o great_a evidence_n of_o his_o weakness_n in_o another_o it_o seem_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n begin_v betimes_o to_o be_v trouble_v with_o the_o fume_n of_o passion_n and_o it_o be_v a_o little_a unhappy_a that_o the_o first_o instance_n of_o his_o authority_n shall_v meet_v with_o so_o little_a regard_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n if_o the_o pope_n do_v begin_v to_o assume_v so_o early_o you_o see_v it_o be_v not_o very_o well_o like_v of_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o other_o church_n but_o it_o seem_v he_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o try_v his_o power_n and_o the_o weight_n of_o his_o arm_n but_o for_o all_o his_o haste_n he_o be_v fain_o to_o withdraw_v it_o very_o patient_o again_o valesius_fw-la think_v that_o he_o never_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o excommunicate_v the_o asian_a bishop_n at_o all_o 24_o but_o the_o noise_n of_o his_o threaten_a to_o do_v it_o be_v hear_v by_o they_o it_o seem_v the_o very_a prepare_v of_o his_o thunderbolt_n amaze_v the_o world_n irenaeus_n have_v call_v a_o synod_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o gaul_n together_o do_v in_o their_o name_n write_v that_o letter_n in_o eusebius_n to_o victor_n to_o dissuade_v he_o from_o it_o and_o that_o it_o wrought_v so_o effectual_o with_o he_o that_o he_o give_v it_o over_o and_o this_o he_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v 1._o because_o eusebius_n say_v he_o only_o endeavour_v to_o do_v it_o but_o cardinal_n perron_n suppose_v eusebius_n have_v a_o worse_a meaning_n than_o so_o in_o it_o i._n e._n that_o though_o the_o pope_n do_v declare_v they_o excommunicate_v yet_o it_o take_v no_o effect_n because_o other_o bishop_n continue_v still_o in_o communion_n with_o they_o and_o therefore_o he_o call_v eusebius_n a_o arrian_n and_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o yet_o all_o the_o record_n of_o this_o story_n be_v derive_v from_o he_o 2._o because_o the_o epistle_n of_o irenaeus_n tend_v to_o persuade_v he_o not_o to_o cut_v they_o off_o whereas_o if_o they_o have_v be_v excommunicate_a it_o will_v have_v be_v rather_o to_o have_v restore_v they_o to_o communion_n and_o that_o photius_n say_v that_o irenaeus_n write_v many_o letter_n to_o victor_n to_o prevent_v their_o excommunication_n but_o because_o eusebius_n say_v express_o that_o he_o do_v by_o letter_n pronounce_v they_o out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n ibid._n the_o common_a opinion_n seem_v more_o probable_a and_o so_o socrates_n understand_v it_o 2d_o but_o still_o i_o be_o to_o seek_v for_o such_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n then_o as_o you_o will_v draw_v from_o it_o yes_o say_v you_o because_o they_o do_v not_o tell_v he_o he_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o do_v what_o he_o do_v which_o they_o will_v have_v do_v if_o they_o can_v without_o proclaim_v themselves_o schismatic_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la and_o shake_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n discipline_n and_o unity_n
what_o principality_n do_v you_o mean_v over_o all_o church_n but_o that_o be_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n so_o that_o if_o you_o will_v make_v irenaeus_n speak_v sense_n and_o argue_v pertinent_o his_o meaning_n can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o this_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o tradition_n leave_v it_o must_v be_v leave_v somewhere_o among_o christian_n if_o it_o be_v leave_v among_o they_o it_o may_v be_v know_v by_o enquiry_n whether_o they_o own_o any_o such_o or_o no._n but_o because_o it_o will_v be_v troublesome_a search_n of_o all_o church_n we_o may_v know_v their_o judgement_n more_o compendious_o there_o be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n near_o we_o a_o famous_a and_o ancient_a church_n seat_v in_o the_o chief_a city_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o which_o all_o person_n have_v necessity_n to_o go_v and_o among_o they_o you_o can_v but_o suppose_v but_o that_o out_o of_o every_o church_n some_o faithful_a person_n shall_v come_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v very_o unreasonable_a to_o think_v that_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n have_v not_o always_o be_v preserve_v there_o when_o person_n come_v from_o all_o place_n thither_o be_v not_o every_o thing_n in_o this_o account_n of_o irenaeus_n his_o word_n very_o clear_a and_o pertinent_a to_o his_o present_a dispute_n but_o in_o the_o sense_n you_o give_v of_o they_o they_o be_v little_a to_o the_o purpose_n and_o very_o precarious_a and_o inconsequent_a and_o therefore_o since_o the_o more_o powerful_a principality_n be_v not_o that_o of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o the_o city_n since_o the_o necessity_n of_o recourse_n thither_o be_v not_o for_o doubt_n of_o faith_n but_o other_o occasion_n therefore_o it_o by_o no_o mean_n follow_v thence_o that_o this_o church_n power_n do_v extend_v over_o the_o faithful_a every_o where_o thus_o by_o explain_v your_o proposition_n your_o conclusion_n be_v ashamed_a of_o itself_o and_o run_v away_o for_o your_o argument_n come_v to_o this_o if_o english_a man_n from_o all_o part_n be_v force_v to_o resort_v to_o london_n than_o london_n have_v the_o power_n over_o all_o england_n or_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v if_o some_o from_o all_o church_n in_o england_n must_v resort_v to_o london_n than_o the_o church_n at_o london_n have_v power_n over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o england_n and_o if_o this_o consequence_n be_v good_a you_o be_v for_o it_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n of_o it_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o resort_n not_o lie_v in_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o in_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n the_o word_n in_o all_o probability_n in_o the_o greek_a be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o so_o relate_v to_o the_o dignity_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o imperial_a city_n from_o whence_o we_o proceed_v to_o the_o vindication_n of_o ruffinus_n in_o his_o translation_n of_o the_o 6._o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a 14._o the_o occasion_n of_o which_o be_v this_o his_o lordship_n say_v suppose_v that_o the_o powerful_a principality_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o it_o shall_v have_v power_n over_o all_o church_n for_o this_o power_n be_v confine_v within_o its_o own_o patriarchate_n and_o jurisdiction_n 183._o and_o that_o say_v he_o be_v very_o large_a contain_v all_o the_o province_n in_o the_o diocese_n of_o italy_n in_o the_o old_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n diocese_n which_o province_n the_o lawyer_n and_o other_o term_v suburbicary_n there_o be_v ten_o of_o they_o the_o three_o island_n sicily_n corsica_n and_o sardinia_n and_o the_o other_o seven_o upon_o the_o firm_a land_n of_o italy_n and_o this_o i_o take_v it_o be_v plain_a in_o ruffinus_n for_o he_o live_v short_o after_o the_o nicene_n council_n as_o he_o do_v and_o be_v of_o italy_n as_o he_o be_v he_o may_v very_o well_o know_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o patriarch_n jurisdiction_n as_o it_o be_v then_o practise_v and_o he_o say_v express_o that_o according_a to_o the_o old_a custom_n the_o roman_a patriarch_n charge_n be_v confine_v within_o the_o limit_n of_o the_o suburbican_n church_n 6._o to_o avoid_v the_o force_n of_o this_o testimony_n cardinal_n perron_n lay_v load_v upon_o ruffinus_n for_o he_o charge_v he_o with_o passion_n ignorance_n and_o rashness_n and_o one_o piece_n of_o his_o ignorance_n be_v that_o he_o have_v ill_o translate_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a now_o although_o his_o lordship_n do_v not_o approve_v of_o it_o as_o a_o translation_n yet_o he_o say_v ruffinus_n live_v in_o that_o time_n and_o place_n be_v very_o like_o well_o to_o know_v and_o understand_v the_o limit_n and_o bound_n of_o that_o patriarchate_o of_o rome_n in_o which_o he_o live_v this_o you_o say_v be_v very_o little_a to_o his_o lordship_n advantage_n since_o it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o vote_n of_o all_o antiquity_n 7._o and_o give_v s._n irenaeus_n the_o lie_n but_o if_o the_o former_a be_v no_o true_a than_o the_o latter_a it_o may_v be_v very_o much_o to_o his_o advantage_n notwithstanding_o what_o you_o have_v produce_v to_o the_o contrary_n what_o the_o ground_n be_v why_o the_o roman_a patriarchate_n be_v confine_v within_o the_o roman_a diocese_n i_o have_v already_o show_v in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n in_o explication_n of_o the_o nicene_n canon_n we_o must_v now_o therefore_o examine_v the_o reason_n you_o bring_v why_o the_o notion_n of_o suburbicary_n church_n must_v be_v extend_v beyond_o the_o limit_n his_o lordship_n assign_v that_o of_o the_o smallness_n of_o jurisdiction_n compare_v with_o other_o patriarch_n i_o have_v give_v a_o account_n of_o already_o viz._n from_o the_o correspondency_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a government_n for_o the_o civil_a diocese_n of_o the_o eastern_a part_n of_o the_o empire_n do_v extend_v much_o far_a than_o the_o western_a do_v and_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o alexandria_n have_v a_o large_a metropolitical_a jurisdiction_n than_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v but_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o suburbicary_n church_n must_v be_v take_v as_o general_o signify_v all_o church_n and_o city_n any_o way_n subordinate_a to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v at_o that_o time_n know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o urbs_fw-la or_o city_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o way_n of_o excellency_n not_o as_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o praefect_n or_o governor_n of_o rome_n in_o regard_n of_o who_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n we_o confess_v it_o command_v only_o those_o few_o place_n about_o it_o in_o italy_n but_o as_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o emperor_n himself_o in_o which_o sense_n the_o word_n suburbicary_n right_o signify_v all_o city_n or_o church_n whatsoever_o within_o the_o roman_a empire_n as_o the_o word_n romania_n also_o ancient_o signify_v the_o whole_a imperial_a territory_n as_o card._n perron_n clear_o prove_v upon_o this_o subject_n but_o this_o be_v one_o instance_n of_o what_o man_n wit_n will_v do_v when_o they_o be_v resolve_v to_o break_v through_o any_o thing_n for_o whoever_o that_o have_v read_v of_o the_o suburbicary_n region_n and_o province_n in_o the_o code_n of_o theodosius_n or_o other_o part_n of_o the_o civil_a law_n as_o distinguish_v from_o other_o province_n under_o the_o roman_a empire_n 28.12_o and_o those_o in_o italy_n too_o can_v ever_o have_v imagine_v that_o the_o notion_n of_o suburbicary_n churches_n have_v be_v any_o other_o than_o what_o be_v correspondent_a to_o those_o region_n and_o province_n 1._o but_o let_v that_o be_v grant_v which_o sirmondus_n so_o much_o contend_v for_o that_o the_o notion_n of_o suburbicary_n may_v have_v different_a respect_n and_o so_o sometime_o be_v take_v for_o the_o church_n within_o the_o roman_a diocese_n sometime_o for_o those_o within_o the_o roman_a patriarchate_n and_o sometime_o for_o those_o which_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n as_o universal_a pastor_n yet_o how_o do_v it_o appear_v that_o ever_o ruffinus_n take_v it_o in_o any_o other_o than_o the_o first_o sense_n no_o other_o province_n be_v call_v suburbicary_n but_o such_o as_o be_v under_o the_o jurisdiction_n either_o of_o the_o roman_a perfect_a within_o a_o hundred_o mile_n of_o the_o city_n within_o which_o compass_n reference_n and_o appeal_n be_v make_v to_o he_o or_o at_o the_o most_o to_o the_o lieutenant_n of_o the_o roman_a diocese_n who_o jurisdiction_n extend_v to_o those_o ten_o province_n which_o his_o lordship_n mention_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o in_o what_o sense_n word_n may_v be_v take_v but_o in_o what_o sense_n they_o be_v take_v and_o what_o evidence_n there_o be_v that_o ever_o they_o be_v so_o understand_v never_o be_v any_o controversy_n more_o ridiculous_a than_o that_o concern_v the_o extent_n of_o the_o suburbicary_n region_n or_o province_n if_o suburbicary_n be_v take_v in_o your_o sense_n for_o all_o the_o city_n within_o the_o roman_a
but_o his_o lordship_n object_n a_o shrewd_a consequence_n from_o this_o universal_a pastourship_n that_o this_o bring_v the_o neck_n of_o prince_n under_o the_o roman_a pride_n 191._o and_o if_o king_n be_v mean_v his_o lordship_n say_v yet_o the_o command_n be_v pasce_fw-la feed_v they_o but_o deponere_fw-la or_o occidere_fw-la to_o depose_v or_o kill_v they_o be_v not_o pascere_fw-la in_o any_o sense_n lanii_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la pastoris_fw-la that_o be_v the_o butcher_n not_o the_o shepherd_n part_n this_o you_o call_v his_o lordship_n wind_v about_o and_o fall_v upon_o that_o odious_a question_n of_o kill_v and_o depose_v king_n ibid._n a_o odious_a question_n indeed_o whether_o we_o consider_v the_o ground_n or_o the_o effect_n and_o consequent_n of_o it_o but_o yet_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o clear_v yourselves_o from_o the_o odium_fw-la of_o it_o first_o by_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o gross_a fallacy_n to_o argue_v a_o negatione_n speciei_fw-la ad_fw-la negationem_fw-la generis_fw-la which_o be_v a_o new_a kind_n of_o logic_n it_o be_v indeed_o for_o it_o be_v of_o your_o own_o coin_v for_o his_o lordship_n argue_v ab_fw-la affirmatione_fw-la generis_fw-la ad_fw-la affirmationem_fw-la speciei_fw-la and_o i_o hope_v this_o be_v no_o new_a logic_n unless_o you_o think_v he_o that_o say_v he_o have_v power_n over_o all_o live_a creature_n have_v not_o thereby_o power_n over_o man_n too_o his_o lordship_n therefore_o do_v not_o argue_v against_o the_o pope_n universal_a supremacy_n from_o the_o denial_n of_o that_o but_o deduce_v that_o as_o a_o consequence_n from_o your_o assertion_n and_o explication_n of_o what_o you_o mean_v by_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n but_o this_o be_v but_o a_o sleight_n answer_v in_o comparison_n of_o what_o follow_v second_o we_o answer_v 212._o that_o the_o point_n of_o kill_v king_n be_v a_o most_o false_a and_o scandalous_a imputation_n scandalous_a enough_o indeed_o if_o false_a and_o though_o your_o pope_n have_v not_o give_v express_a warrant_n for_o the_o do_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v sufficient_o know_v how_o the_o pope_n in_o consistory_n can_v not_o contain_v his_o joy_n when_o it_o be_v do_v in_o the_o case_n of_o henry_n 3._o of_o france_n and_o it_o have_v be_v sufficient_o confess_v and_o lament_v by_o person_n of_o your_o own_o communion_n how_o much_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o jesuit_n have_v encourage_v those_o assassination_n of_o those_o two_o successive_a henry_n of_o france_n will_v you_o or_o dare_v you_o vindicate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o mariana_n and_o other_o which_o do_v not_o obscure_o deliver_v their_o judgement_n as_o to_o that_o very_a thing_n of_o kill_v haeretical_a prince_n but_o if_o we_o shall_v grant_v you_o this_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v not_o command_v to_o kill_v what_o say_v you_o to_o that_o of_o depose_v prince_n which_o seldom_o fall_v much_o short_a of_o the_o other_o as_o to_o this_o you_o dare_v not_o cry_v it_o be_v a_o false_a and_o scandalous_a imputation_n as_o you_o do_v to_o the_o other_o but_o you_o answer_v it_o be_v no_o point_n of_o your_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o do_v it_o and_o therefore_o you_o say_v it_o be_v no_o part_n of_o your_o task_n to_o dispute_v it_o be_v this_o all_o the_o security_n prince_n have_v from_o you_o that_o it_o be_v no_o point_n of_o your_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o do_v it_o be_v it_o not_o well_o enough_o know_v that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v hold_v undoubted_o by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o your_o church_n which_o yet_o you_o say_v be_v no_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o in_o this_o you_o be_v direct_o contradict_v by_o one_o who_o know_v what_o be_v point_n of_o faith_n among_o you_o as_o well_o as_o you_o and_o that_o be_v father_n creswell_n 149._o who_o testimony_n i_o have_v cite_v already_o and_o he_o say_v express_o certum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la it_o be_v a_o thing_n certain_a and_o of_o faith_n that_o the_o subject_n of_o a_o haeretical_a prince_n be_v not_o only_o free_v from_o allegiance_n but_o be_v bind_v ex_fw-la hominum_fw-la christianorum_fw-la dominatu_fw-la ejicere_fw-la to_o cast_v he_o out_o of_o his_o power_n which_o certain_o be_v more_o than_o the_o depose_n of_o he_o and_o sanders_n plain_o enough_o say_v 4._o that_o a_o king_n that_o will_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v suffer_v but_o his_o subject_n ought_v to_o do_v their_o utmost_a endeavour_n that_o another_o may_v be_v place_v in_o his_o room_n indeed_o he_o say_v not_o as_o the_o other_o do_v that_o this_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la but_o that_o be_v the_o only_o reserve_v you_o have_v when_o a_o doctrine_n be_v odious_a and_o infamous_a to_o the_o world_n to_o cry_v out_o it_o be_v not_o the_o side_n when_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v as_o firm_o believe_v among_o you_o as_o any_o that_o you_o account_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o if_o you_o believe_v the_o duke_n of_o alva_n in_o his_o manifesto_n at_o the_o siege_n of_o pampelona_n when_o the_o pope_n have_v depose_v the_o king_n of_o navarre_n to_o who_o that_o city_n belong_v he_o say_v 6._o that_o it_o be_v not_o doubt_v but_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o depose_v heretical_a prince_n and_o if_o you_o have_v be_v of_o another_o opinion_n you_o ought_v to_o have_v declare_v yourself_o more_o full_o than_o you_o do_v if_o you_o have_v say_v that_o indeed_o some_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n but_o you_o abhor_a and_o detest_v it_o you_o have_v speak_v to_o the_o purpose_n but_o when_o you_o use_v only_o that_o pitiful_a evasion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n you_o sufficient_o show_v what_o your_o judgement_n be_v but_o that_o you_o dare_v not_o public_o own_v it_o it_o seem_v you_o remember_v what_o be_v say_v by_o your_o master_n in_o reference_n to_o emanuel_n sà_fw-fr non_fw-la fuit_fw-la opus_fw-la ad_fw-la ista_fw-la descendere_fw-la there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o meddle_v with_o those_o thing_n it_o seem_v if_o there_o have_v be_v there_o be_v no_o hurt_n in_o the_o doctrine_n but_o only_o that_o it_o be_v unseasonable_a i_o pray_v god_n keep_v we_o from_o that_o time_n when_o you_o shall_v think_v it_o needful_a to_o declare_v yourselves_o in_o this_o point_n but_o you_o conclude_v this_o with_o a_o most_o unworthy_a and_o scandalous_a reflection_n on_o protestant_n in_o these_o word_n but_o what_o protestant_n have_v both_o do_v and_o justify_v in_o the_o worst_a of_o these_o kind_n be_v but_o too_o fresh_a in_o memory_n but_o be_v those_o the_o practice_n and_o principle_n of_o protestant_n be_v they_o not_o abhor_v and_o detest_a in_o the_o high_a manner_n by_o all_o true_a protestant_n both_o at_o home_n and_o abroad_o it_o will_v be_v well_o if_o you_o can_v clear_v some_o of_o yourselves_o from_o have_v too_o much_o a_o hand_n in_o promote_a both_o those_o principle_n and_o practice_n i_o suppose_v you_o can_v but_o have_v hear_v who_o it_o be_v be_v say_v to_o have_v express_v so_o much_o joy_n at_o the_o time_n of_o that_o horrid_a execution_n what_o counsel_n and_o machination_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v among_o some_o devote_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n abroad_o about_o that_o time_n therefore_o clear_v yourselves_o more_o than_o yet_o you_o have_v do_v of_o those_o imputation_n before_o you_o charge_v that_o guilt_n on_o protestant_n which_o they_o express_v the_o high_a abhorrence_n of_o and_o let_v the_o name_n of_o such_o who_o either_o public_o or_o private_o abett_v or_o justify_v such_o horrid_a action_n be_v under_o a_o continual_a anathema_n to_o all_o generation_n 6._o after_o all_o this_o discourse_n about_o the_o pope_n authority_n a._n c._n bring_v it_o at_o last_o home_n to_o the_o business_n of_o schism_n for_o he_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v never_o refuse_v to_o feed_v and_o govern_v the_o whole_a flock_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o neither_o particular_a man_n nor_o church_n shall_v have_v just_a cause_n under_o pretence_n of_o reformation_n in_o manner_n of_o faith_n to_o make_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n this_o his_o lordship_n say_v by_o a._n c_o his_o favour_n 18._o be_v mere_a beg_v the_o question_n for_o this_o be_v the_o very_a thing_n which_o the_o protestant_n charge_v upon_o he_o namely_o that_o he_o have_v govern_v if_o not_o the_o whole_a yet_o so_o much_o of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o have_v be_v able_a to_o bring_v under_o his_o power_n so_o as_o that_o he_o have_v give_v too_o just_a cause_n of_o the_o present_a continue_a separation_n and_o as_o the_o corruption_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o first_o separation_n so_o be_v they_o at_o this_o present_a day_n the_o cause_n why_o the_o separation_n continue_v
be_v amiss_o in_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n however_o since_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o council_n to_o reform_v those_o abuse_n the_o pope_n as_o a_o interest_v person_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v preside_v there_o have_v it_o not_o be_v his_o intention_n to_o have_v prevent_v any_o real_a reformation_n for_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n to_o that_o purpose_n be_v mere_o delusory_a and_o nothing_o of_o reformation_n follow_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o most_o important_a thing_n to_o that_o end_n can_v never_o pass_v the_o council_n and_o if_o we_o gain_v this_o that_o the_o pope_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v judge_n where_o himself_o be_v concern_v as_o to_o the_o reformation_n of_o abuse_n your_o former_a assertion_n will_v make_v the_o other_o follow_v viz._n that_o in_o case_n of_o heresy_n other_o bishop_n may_v in_o council_n proceed_v against_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n when_o any_o error_n in_o faith_n be_v charge_v upon_o he_o or_o those_o who_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o he_o that_o such_o aught_o to_o be_v debate_v in_o a_o full_a and_o free_a council_n where_o no_o one_o concern_v may_v preside_v to_o overawe_n the_o rest_n but_o such_o precedent_n shall_v be_v appoint_v as_o be_v in_o former_a general_n council_n to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o manage_v the_o debate_n of_o the_o council_n without_o any_o such_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o they_o as_o the_o pope_n pretend_v to_o have_v over_o all_o those_o assemble_v at_o trent_n and_o thus_o it_o appear_v that_o what_o his_o lordship_n say_v be_v just_a and_o true_a that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o law_n divine_a natural_a and_o humane_a that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v chief_a judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n your_o instance_n of_o pope_n leo_n at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o alexander_n at_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a will_v be_v consider_v in_o their_o due_a place_n 6._o which_o that_o we_o may_v come_v to_o we_o must_v examine_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o to_o the_o pope_n presidency_n in_o general_a council_n his_o lordship_n deny_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v preside_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a either_o by_o himself_o or_o legate_n because_o hosius_n be_v the_o precedent_n of_o it_o you_o answer_v that_o hosius_n do_v preside_v in_o that_o council_n ibid._n and_o so_o do_v likewise_o vitus_n and_o vincentius_n priest_n of_o rome_n but_o you_o say_v they_o all_o preside_v as_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o not_o otherwise_o this_o you_o say_v appear_v by_o their_o subscribe_v the_o conciliary_a decree_n in_o the_o first_o place_n of_o which_o no_o other_o account_n can_v be_v give_v and_o because_o cedrenus_n and_o photius_n confess_v that_o the_o pope_n give_v authority_n to_o this_o council_n by_o his_o legate_n and_o in_o the_o old_a preface_n to_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n it_o be_v say_v express_o that_o hosius_n be_v the_o pope_n legate_n and_o the_o same_o acknowledge_v by_o hincmarus_n and_o gelasius_n cyzicenus_n who_o you_o prove_v that_o photius_n have_v read_v these_o be_v then_o all_o the_o evidence_n you_o produce_v for_o the_o pope_n presidency_n at_o the_o nicene_n council_n we_o be_v oblige_v to_o afford_v they_o a_o particular_a consideration_n your_o first_o argument_n which_o bellarmin_n and_o baronius_n likewise_o insist_v on_o be_v the_o order_n of_o subscription_n because_o the_o name_n of_o hosius_n be_v set_v first_o but_o if_o we_o mark_v it_o this_o argument_n suppose_v that_o which_o it_o shall_v prove_v for_o thus_o it_o proceed_v hosius_n subscribe_v first_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v the_o roman_a legate_n hosius_n be_v the_o roman_a legate_n and_o therefore_o he_o subscribe_v first_o for_o it_o suppose_v that_o the_o first_o subscription_n do_v of_o right_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o roman_a legate_n which_o we_o may_v as_o well_o deny_v by_o a_o argument_n just_a like_o it_o vitus_n and_o vincentius_n do_v not_o subscribe_v first_o and_o therefore_o the_o roman_a legate_n do_v not_o subscribe_v first_o but_o you_o ask_v why_o then_o do_v hosius_n subscribe_v before_o the_o patriarch_n and_o other_o bishop_n of_o great_a dignity_n than_o himself_o i_o answer_v because_o hosius_n be_v precedent_n of_o the_o council_n and_o not_o they_o but_o if_o you_o ask_v why_o they_o choose_v he_o precedent_n before_o other_o the_o nicene_n father_n must_v answer_v you_o and_o not_o i._o but_o you_o say_v cedrenus_n and_o photius_n confess_v that_o the_o pope_n give_v authority_n to_o the_o nicene_n council_n by_o his_o legate_n but_o how_o come_v that_o to_o prove_v that_o hosius_n be_v one_o of_o those_o legate_n photius_n i_o be_o sure_a in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o seven_o synod_n first_o publish_v in_o greek_a by_o justellus_n out_o of_o the_o sedan_n library_n say_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o only_a mention_n the_o two_o presbyter_n who_o be_v there_o the_o roman-bishop_n legate_n and_o cedrenus_n only_o mention_n the_o roman_a legate_n among_o those_o who_o be_v chief_a in_o that_o council_n reckon_v up_o the_o several_a patriarch_n your_o old_a preface_n to_o the_o sardican_a synod_n suppose_v of_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la be_v no_o competent_a testimony_n be_v of_o a_o late_a author_n and_o a_o roman_a too_o and_o hincmarus_n be_v much_o young_a than_o he_o and_o therefore_o neither_o of_o their_o testimony_n have_v any_o force_n against_o the_o ancient_a writer_n neither_o have_v that_o of_o gelasius_n cyzicenus_n who_o live_v under_o basiliscus_n a._n d._n 476._o and_o that_o you_o may_v not_o think_v i_o do_v you_o wrong_v to_o deprive_v you_o of_o his_o testimony_n you_o may_v see_v 6._o how_o free_o baronius_n pass_v his_o censure_n upon_o those_o act_n under_o the_o name_n of_o nicene_n council_n sed_fw-la ut_fw-la liberè_fw-la dicam_fw-la somnia_fw-la puto_fw-la haec_fw-la omne_fw-la that_o i_o may_v speak_v free_o i_o account_v they_o no_o better_a than_o dream_n and_o give_v this_o very_a good_a reason_n for_o it_o because_o ever_o since_o the_o time_n of_o that_o council_n all_o person_n have_v be_v so_o extreme_o desirous_a of_o the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n and_o yet_o can_v never_o obtain_v they_o but_o that_o which_o come_v in_o the_o rear_n transcend_v all_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v that_o photius_n though_o a_o schismatical_a greek_a and_o bitter_a enemy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n witness_v he_o have_v read_v this_o book_n of_o gelasius_n and_o in_o it_o the_o abovecited_a testimony_n and_o i_o pray_v what_o follow_v from_o thence_o i_o hope_v photius_n have_v read_v many_o other_o book_n in_o that_o excellent_a collection_n of_o his_o bibliotheca_fw-la beside_o this_o and_o will_v you_o say_v that_o photius_n believe_v all_o that_o he_o there_o say_v he_o have_v read_v no_o but_o you_o say_v that_o thereupon_o he_o confess_v that_o the_o say_v hosius_n be_v legate_n for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n at_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o you_o will_v have_v do_v well_o to_o have_v tell_v we_o where_o this_o confession_n be_v extant_a for_o you_o seem_v to_o insinuate_v as_o though_o it_o be_v in_o the_o same_o place_n where_o he_o mention_n the_o read_v this_o book_n of_o gelasius_n but_o he_o only_o say_v that_o gelasius_n affirm_v it_o 21._o add_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o his_o own_o judgement_n and_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o seven_o synod_n where_o he_o declare_v his_o own_o mind_n he_o only_o mention_n vitus_n and_o vincentius_n 163_o as_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v and_o bring_v in_o hosius_n afterward_o not_o join_v he_o with_o vitus_n and_o vincentius_n but_o with_o alexander_n of_o constantinople_n and_o sylvester_n and_o julius_n of_o rome_n and_o alexander_n and_o athanasius_n of_o alexandria_n who_o he_o make_v the_o chief_a in_o the_o council_n for_o if_o photius_n have_v intend_v to_o have_v make_v hosius_n one_o of_o the_o pope_n legate_n there_o be_v all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n he_o shall_v have_v set_v he_o before_o vitus_n and_o vincentius_n who_o be_v only_a presbyter_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o other_o legate_n there_o but_o these_o two_o presbyter_n we_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a historian_n eusebius_n mention_v the_o absence_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n because_o of_o his_o age_n add_v 6._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d his_o presbyter_n be_v present_a supply_v his_o place_n so_o theodoret_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v not_o be_v present_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o he_o send_v two_o presbyter_n with_o power_n to_o give_v his_o assent_n not_o to_o preside_v over_o the_o council_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n sozomen_n 14._o nicephorus_n zonaras_n speak_v and_o it_o be_v very_o strange_a not_o one_o of_o all_o these_o historian_n shall_v mention_v this_o if_o hosius_n have_v preside_v there_o as_o legate_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o much_o
charge_v with_o heresy_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o thing_n be_v grow_v to_o this_o height_n theodosius_n call_v a_o general_n council_n at_o ephesus_n to_o be_v hold_v the_o ensue_a year_n write_v to_o all_o the_o metropolitan_o to_o appear_v there_o at_o the_o time_n appoint_v and_o bring_v such_o bishop_n with_o they_o as_o they_o think_v convenient_a but_o what_o contention_n happen_v there_o between_o the_o two_o party_n be_v not_o here_o our_o business_n to_o relate_v but_o the_o emperor_n foresee_v what_o disturbance_n be_v like_a to_o be_v there_o send_v the_o count_n candidianus_n for_o better_a management_n of_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o council_n now_o s._n cyril_n and_o his_o party_n have_v the_o advantage_n of_o the_o other_o both_o in_o number_n and_o forwardness_n of_o be_v there_o cyril_n sit_v as_o precedent_n among_o they_o the_o question_n now_o be_v whether_o he_o sit_v there_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o legantine_n power_n he_o have_v for_o the_o excommunicate_a nestorius_n the_o year_n before_o or_o not_o or_o only_o as_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o chief_a of_o that_o party_n but_o by_o what_o authority_n he_o shall_v challenge_v to_o be_v precedent_n of_o the_o council_n because_o he_o have_v be_v depute_v by_o celestine_n to_o act_v his_o part_n in_o the_o excommunicate_a nestorius_n i_o think_v be_v somewhat_o hard_a to_o understand_v neither_o do_v any_o thing_n appear_v in_o the_o council_n which_o give_v any_o ground_n for_o it_o for_o cyril_n subscribe_v to_o it_o mere_o as_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n the_o council_n on_o all_o occasion_n call_v he_o and_o memnon_n of_o ephesus_n their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o when_o they_o speak_v of_o celestine_n after_o his_o legate_n come_v they_o say_v he_o do_v only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d assist_v together_o with_o they_o in_o council_n but_o why_o shall_v celestine_n send_v other_o legate_n afterward_o viz._n arcadius_n philippus_n and_o projectus_fw-la if_o s._n cyril_n supply_v the_o pope_n place_n there_o already_o yet_o although_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o before_o the_o legate_n come_v cyril_n do_v supply_v the_o place_n of_o celestine_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o he_o sit_v precedent_n of_o the_o council_n on_o that_o account_n but_o only_o to_o show_v the_o concurrence_n of_o celestine_n with_o the_o council_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o this_o there_o be_v good_a reason_n for_o because_o celestine_n have_v full_o declare_v himself_o to_o cyril_n concern_v that_o already_o and_o this_o be_v usual_a in_o the_o council_n as_o appear_v in_o this_o very_a council_n by_o flavianus_n bishop_n of_o philippi_n subscribe_v likewise_o in_o the_o place_n of_o rufus_n of_o thessalonica_n so_o that_o if_o we_o grant_v cyril_n to_o sit_v in_o the_o council_n as_o legate_n of_o celestine_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v precedent_n of_o the_o council_n in_o that_o capacity_n for_o the_o other_o be_v only_o to_o testify_v his_o consent_n this_o require_v a_o particular_a commission_n to_o that_o purpose_n so_o that_o he_o may_v give_v a_o vote_n in_o the_o council_n for_o celestine_n and_o yet_o sit_v as_o he_o do_v precedent_n of_o the_o council_n as_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n thus_o it_o be_v manifest_v that_o in_o the_o three_o first_o general_n council_n the_o pope_n sit_v not_o either_o by_o himself_o or_o his_o legate_n as_o precedent_n it_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v thereby_o that_o his_o presidency_n be_v no_o necessary_a condition_n to_o a_o general_n council_n and_o if_o not_o than_o we_o say_v it_o be_v unjust_a and_o unreasonable_a he_o shall_v challenge_v it_o when_o he_o be_v the_o person_n main_o accuse_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v deny_v that_o ever_o he_o sit_v as_o precedent_n in_o any_o other_o general_n council_n for_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o chief_a see_v why_o shall_v he_o in_o a_o case_n of_o general_a concernment_n to_o the_o church_n as_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n not_o be_v allow_v by_o his_o legate_n to_o have_v the_o prime_a place_n but_o there_o want_v sufficient_a evidence_n too_o that_o these_o be_v proper_o the_o precedent_n of_o that_o council_n in_o the_o next_o at_o constantinople_n you_o grant_v that_o eutychius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n sit_v precedent_n but_o you_o say_v that_o he_o acknowledge_v this_o privilege_n to_o be_v due_a to_o pope_n vigilius_n but_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v then_o that_o he_o will_v not_o sit_v there_o though_o then_o at_o constantinople_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o many_o frivolous_a excuse_n he_o make_v that_o he_o dare_v not_o trust_v himself_o in_o the_o council_n for_o fear_v that_o authority_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v he_o which_o he_o expect_v for_o that_o have_v always_o be_v the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o those_o elder_a time_n when_o they_o begin_v to_o encroach_v not_o to_o venture_v themselves_o in_o presence_n in_o a_o general_n council_n for_o fear_v of_o opposition_n but_o by_o their_o absence_n they_o reserve_v to_o themselves_o a_o liberty_n to_o declare_v their_o dissent_n when_o any_o act_n pass_v which_o do_v not_o please_v they_o as_o leo_n do_v in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n but_o however_o this_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o five_o general_n council_n that_o the_o pope_n presidency_n be_v not_o then_o think_v at_o all_o necessary_a what_o be_v do_v in_o follow_v council_n be_v not_o material_a to_o our_o purpose_n because_o it_o do_v already_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o the_o pope_n presidency_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o a_o general_n council_n and_o therefore_o you_o conclude_v with_o a_o notorious_a falsity_n in_o say_v with_o bellarmin_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v possess_v full_o 1500_o year_n of_o the_o right_n of_o preside_v in_o general_a council_n his_o lordship_n three_o exception_n against_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v 9_o that_o the_o place_n be_v not_o free_a but_o either_o in_o or_o too_o near_o the_o pope_n dominion_n to_o this_o you_o answer_v that_o certain_o trent_n be_v not_o within_o the_o pope_n dominion_n ibid._n but_o it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_v that_o trent_n be_v under_o the_o sole_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o bishop_n to_o be_v sure_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n dominion_n have_v be_v particular_o oblige_v too_o by_o receive_v a_o cardinal_n hat_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o without_o just_a reason_n that_o the_o place_n be_v protest_v against_o not_o only_o by_o the_o german_a protestant_n as_o be_v out_o of_o germany_n where_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n have_v often_o promise_v the_o council_n shall_v be_v at_o the_o diet_n at_o norimberg_n 1524_o at_o auspurg_n 1526._o spire_n 1529._o ratisbone_n 1532_o 1541._o again_o at_o norimberg_n 1543._o and_o last_o of_o all_o at_o spire_n 1544._o but_o as_o a_o most_o inconvenient_a place_n for_o they_o to_o come_v to_o be_v a_o week_n journey_n as_o they_o say_v from_o the_o border_n of_o germany_n seat_v in_o a_o barren_a and_o almost_o inaccessible_a place_n have_v no_o freedom_n of_o passage_n almost_o amid_o the_o alps_o this_o place_n i_o say_v be_v not_o only_o protest_v against_o by_o they_o as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o promise_v make_v to_o they_o but_o the_o german_a bishop_n make_v it_o their_o earnest_a request_n that_o the_o council_n may_v be_v hold_v in_o germany_n for_o at_o trent_n they_o say_v they_o can_v neither_o be_v present_v themselves_o nor_o send_v any_o legate_n thither_o and_o particular_o instance_n in_o the_o unpassableness_n of_o the_o alps_o between_o they_o and_o trent_n and_o that_o it_o be_v rather_o in_o the_o border_n of_o italy_n then_o germany_n and_o the_o pope_n himself_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o german_a bishop_n and_o the_o emperor_n protestation_n upon_o the_o removal_n of_o the_o council_n from_o trent_n to_o bononia_n insist_o upon_o the_o inconvenience_n of_o trent_n for_o the_o long_a residence_n of_o the_o bishop_n there_o and_o in_o behalf_n of_o the_o protestant_n declare_v against_o this_o place_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o unsafeness_n of_o it_o the_o place_n about_o be_v all_o under_o the_o pope_n authority_n du_fw-fr ranchin_n tell_v you_o that_o it_o be_v a_o exception_n allowable_a by_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n who_o all_o agree_v 7._o that_o a_o exception_n against_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o place_n be_v pertinent_a and_o aught_o to_o be_v admit_v that_o it_o be_v good_a both_o by_o the_o civil_a law_n and_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n that_o a_o man_n summon_v to_o a_o place_n where_o any_o danger_n threaten_v he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o appear_v nor_o to_o send_v his_o proctor_n and_o that_o a_o judge_n be_v bind_v to_o assign_v the_o party_n a_o place_n of_o safety_n for_o the_o hear_n of_o their_o
by_o martian_a and_o valentinian_n and_o this_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o recognition_n confess_v his_o mistake_n about_o the_o constantinopolitan_a council_n be_v call_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o pope_n damasus_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o to_o be_v true_a 46._o which_o i_o at_o large_a prove_v before_o that_o the_o synodical_a epistle_n be_v not_o send_v by_o the_o general_n council_n but_o by_o another_o the_o year_n after_o if_o then_o the_o call_n of_o council_n belong_v not_o of_o right_a to_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v not_o his_o summon_n which_o can_v make_v a_o general_n council_n without_o mission_n and_o deputation_n from_o those_o church_n who_o they_o be_v to_o represent_v and_o any_o other_o sense_n of_o a_o general_n council_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o antiquity_n and_o be_v force_v and_o unreasonable_a in_o itself_o for_o it_o must_v be_v either_o absolute_o general_a or_o by_o representation_n none_o ever_o imagine_v yet_o a_o absolute_o general_a council_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v so_o call_v as_o it_o do_v represent_v if_o so_o then_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o such_o a_o deputation_n but_o here_o a_o question_n may_v arise_v whether_o those_o deputy_n of_o church_n have_v power_n by_o their_o own_o vote_n to_o oblige_v the_o church_n they_o be_v send_v from_o by_o convey_v in_o a_o general_n council_n or_o else_o only_o as_o they_o carry_v with_o they_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o church_n who_o they_o represent_v and_o this_o latter_a seem_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o true_o general_n council_n who_o act_n must_v oblige_v the_o whole_a church_n for_o that_o can_v only_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o act_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o bishop_n deliver_v the_o sense_n of_o all_o particular_a church_n and_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o understand_v how_o the_o universal_a church_n can_v be_v oblige_v any_o other_o way_n unless_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o general_a council_n be_v institute_v by_o some_o positive_a law_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o what_o be_v do_v by_o the_o bishop_n in_o they_o must_v oblige_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o then_o we_o must_v find_v out_o not_o only_o the_o institution_n itself_o but_o the_o way_n and_o manner_n how_o general_a council_n shall_v be_v call_v of_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v whole_o silent_a and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o other_o general_n council_n imagine_v but_o by_o such_o a_o representation_n and_o in_o order_n to_o this_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o those_o church_n must_v be_v know_v by_o the_o particular_a bishop_n before_o they_o can_v concur_v with_o other_o so_o as_o to_o make_v a_o general_n council_n the_o most_o suitable_a way_n then_o to_o a_o general_n council_n be_v that_o the_o summons_n of_o they_o be_v publish_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o christian_a prince_n every_o prince_n may_v call_v together_o a_o national_a synod_n in_o which_o the_o matter_n to_o be_v debate_v in_o the_o council_n be_v to_o be_v discuss_v and_o the_o sense_n of_o that_o synod_n full_o declare_v which_o those_o bishop_n who_o be_v appoint_v by_o it_o to_o go_v to_o the_o general_n council_n be_v to_o carry_v with_o they_o and_o there_o to_o declare_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o particular_a church_n and_o what_o all_o these_o bishop_n so_o assemble_v do_v all_o agree_v in_o as_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v be_v call_v the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n or_o in_o case_n some_o great_a impediment_n happen_v that_o such_o bishop_n can_v assemble_v from_o all_o church_n but_o a_o very_a considerable_a number_n appear_v and_o declare_v themselves_o which_o upon_o the_o first_o notice_n of_o it_o be_v universal_o receive_v by_o all_o particular_a church_n that_o may_v ex_fw-la postfacto_a be_v call_v a_o general_n council_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o first_o four_o ecumenical_a council_n and_o yet_o that_o in_o they_o there_o be_v such_o a_o deputation_n as_o this_o be_v appear_v by_o that_o expression_n in_o the_o synodical_a epistle_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n before_o mention_v for_o in_o that_o they_o give_v this_o account_n why_o they_o can_v not_o do_v what_o the_o western_a bishop_n desire_v because_o they_o bring_v not_o with_o they_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n who_o remain_v at_o home_n to_o that_o purpose_n 667._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o concern_v this_o only_a council_n viz._n at_o constantinople_n have_v we_o bring_v the_o consent_n of_o those_o bishop_n which_o remain_v in_o the_o province_n so_o that_o they_o look_v on_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o other_o bishop_n to_o be_v necessary_a as_o well_o as_o their_o own_o but_o now_o if_o we_o examine_v your_o council_n of_o trent_n by_o this_o rule_n how_o far_o be_v it_o from_o any_o appearance_n of_o a_o general_n council_n what_o bishop_n be_v there_o send_v from_o the_o most_o of_o christian_a church_n those_o that_o do_v appear_v what_o equality_n and_o proportion_n be_v there_o among_o they_o for_o voice_n in_o general_a council_n ought_v not_o to_o go_v by_o the_o number_n of_o bishop_n but_o by_o the_o number_n of_o church_n so_o that_o if_o six_o be_v send_v from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o france_n deliver_v the_o sense_n of_o that_o church_n they_o come_v from_o they_o have_v equal_a vote_n with_o the_o great_a number_n of_o italian_a bishop_n but_o here_o lay_v the_o great_a imposture_n of_o that_o council_n first_o that_o the_o council_n be_v general_a depend_v upon_o the_o pope_n general_a summons_n though_o never_o so_o few_o bishop_n appear_v next_o that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n be_v to_o be_v carry_v by_o most_o voice_n and_o the_o bishop_n to_o give_v their_o bare_a placet_fw-la these_o thing_n be_v thus_o lay_v when_o there_o be_v any_o fear_n that_o business_n will_v not_o go_v right_a it_o be_v but_o the_o legate_n use_v some_o art_n in_o delay_v it_o and_o send_v intelligence_n to_o rome_n and_o forty_o bishop_n be_v make_v together_o and_o post_v to_o trent_n to_o help_v out_o the_o number_n of_o voice_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o institution_n and_o residence_n of_o bishop_n and_o this_o be_v that_o you_o call_v a_o general_n council_n 2._o to_o your_o other_o that_o what_o be_v want_v in_o number_n at_o first_o be_v make_v up_o at_o last_o when_o all_o former_a decree_n be_v confirm_v by_o a_o full_a number_n of_o bishop_n it_o be_v soon_o reply_v that_o this_o be_v as_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o that_o council_n be_v 804._o but_o a_o mere_a artifice_n for_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o history_n of_o that_o council_n that_o in_o the_o last_o session_n under_o pius_n 4._o a_o proposition_n be_v make_v that_o all_o the_o decree_n under_o paul_n and_o julius_n shall_v be_v approve_v which_o be_v oppose_v because_o they_o say_v it_o will_v be_v a_o derogation_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o those_o time_n if_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o the_o thing_n then_o do_v have_v need_n of_o a_o new_a confirmation_n of_o the_o father_n and_o will_v show_v that_o this_o and_o that_o be_v not_o all_o one_o because_o none_o can_v confirm_v his_o own_o thing_n but_o upon_o the_o french_a bishop_n earnest_a insist_v upon_o it_o it_o be_v determine_v simple_o to_o read_v they_o and_o no_o more_o and_o do_v you_o call_v this_o a_o confirm_v and_o ratify_v they_o the_o novo_fw-la so_o that_o for_o all_o appear_v by_o this_o last_o session_n the_o authority_n of_o those_o decree_n must_v as_o far_o as_o concern_v the_o council_n depend_v upon_o the_o number_n of_o the_o bishop_n then_o present_a which_o be_v but_o very_o small_a certain_o for_o a_o general_n council_n there_o be_v not_o so_o many_o in_o most_o of_o the_o session_n as_o be_v in_o the_o donatists_n council_n in_o africa_n so_o far_o be_v they_o from_o the_o number_n of_o the_o ancient_a general_n council_n but_o here_o come_v your_o grand_a objection_n in_o the_o way_n that_o nothing_o be_v pretend_v by_o we_o against_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 13._o 4._o which_o may_v not_o have_v be_v in_o effect_n as_o just_o object_v by_o the_o arrian_n against_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o be_v not_o there_o easy_o discernible_a a_o vast_a disparity_n between_o these_o two_o which_o way_n soever_o we_o conceive_v they_o the_o one_o call_v by_o the_o emperor_n who_o in_o person_n sit_v in_o the_o council_n to_o prevent_v all_o disorder_n and_o clancular_a action_n the_o other_o by_o the_o pope_n who_o preside_v in_o it_o by_o his_o legate_n and_o order_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o direction_n in_o that_o of_o nice_n the_o arrian_n bishop_n be_v as_o free_o admit_v to_o debate_v as_o
yet_o the_o best_a your_o cause_n will_v bear_v and_o the_o great_a you_o say_v the_o number_n of_o bishopric_n be_v in_o italy_n the_o more_o friend_n i_o hope_v the_o pope_n must_v make_v by_o dispose_v they_o and_o can_v they_o do_v the_o pope_n better_a service_n than_o to_o help_v he_o in_o this_o grand_a business_n at_o trent_n wherein_o they_o seek_v to_o outvie_v each_o other_o by_o promote_a the_o pope_n interest_n but_o not_o only_o the_o protestant_n complain_v of_o this_o but_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o prince_n and_o all_o impartial_a man_n in_o germany_n france_n nay_o and_o in_o some_o part_n of_o italy_n too_o but_o here_o his_o lordship_n encounter_v a_o objection_n of_o bellarmine_n 220._o viz._n that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a there_o be_v as_o few_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n present_a as_o be_v of_o the_o east_n at_o trent_n and_o manifest_o show_v the_o great_a disparity_n between_o the_o the_o two_o council_n 1._o because_o it_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a disparity_n in_o number_n which_o he_o insist_o on_o but_o with_o it_o the_o pope_n carriage_n to_o be_v sure_a of_o a_o major_a part_n but_o neither_o the_o greek_a church_n in_o general_n nor_o any_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n have_v any_o private_a interest_n to_o look_v to_o in_o the_o council_n at_o nice_a 2._o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o a_o disparity_n between_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a bishop_n but_o that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o more_o italian_n and_o bishop_n obnoxious_a to_o the_o pope_n power_n than_o of_o all_o germany_n france_n spain_n and_o of_o all_o other_o part_n of_o the_o west_n beside_o 3._o even_o in_o the_o comparison_n of_o those_o two_o council_n as_o to_o eastern_a and_o western_a bishop_n there_o be_v this_o remarkable_a difference_n that_o pope_n sylvester_n with_o 275._o bishop_n confirm_v the_o council_n at_o nice_a but_o the_o council_n at_o trent_n be_v never_o confirm_v by_o any_o council_n of_o eastern_a bishop_n to_o the_o two_o first_o of_o these_o you_o answer_v with_o your_o best_a property_n silence_n only_o you_o will_v fain_o persuade_v some_o silly_a people_n if_o there_o be_v any_o so_o weak_a in_o the_o world_n that_o inquire_v into_o such_o thing_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o private_a interest_n at_o trent_n but_o what_o be_v common_a to_o he_o with_o other_o bishop_n you_o shall_v have_v do_v well_o to_o have_v commend_v the_o excellency_n of_o a_o implicit_a faith_n before_o you_o have_v utter_v a_o thing_n so_o contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_n world_n to_o the_o three_o you_o confess_v it_o be_v some_o disparity_n but_o nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n because_o if_o the_o pope_n himself_o have_v ratify_v they_o 237._o the_o council_n will_v have_v have_v as_o much_o authority_n as_o by_o that_o accessary_a assembly_n the_o more_o to_o blame_v be_v the_o pope_n a_o great_a deal_n for_o put_v so_o many_o bishop_n to_o so_o needless_a a_o trouble_n but_o you_o say_v further_o this_o council_n be_v not_o hold_v just_a at_o the_o same_o time_n but_o binius_fw-la tell_v you_o it_o be_v hold_v assoon_o as_o may_v be_v after_o the_o notice_n of_o what_o be_v do_v at_o nice_a 449._o show_v we_o the_o like_a of_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n at_o any_o time_n and_o we_o will_v not_o quarrel_v with_o you_o because_o it_o be_v not_o at_o the_o same_o time_n though_o these_o answer_n may_v pass_v for_o want_n of_o better_a they_o come_v not_o near_o your_o last_o which_o be_v a_o prodigious_a one_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o be_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v more_o universal_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n then_o that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a for_o that_o of_o trent_n you_o say_v be_v universal_o receive_v by_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n and_o have_v be_v more_o constant_o hold_v ever_o since_o whereas_o many_o province_n ibid._n either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n desert_v the_o faith_n define_v at_o nice_a and_o embrace_v the_o arrian_n heresy_n it_o seem_v then_o the_o twelve_o good_a article_n of_o trent_n have_v be_v more_o general_o receive_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n than_o the_o eternal_a existence_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o that_o you_o be_v more_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n or_o transubstantiation_n then_o that_o the_o son_n be_v of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n for_o your_o ground_n of_o faith_n be_v resolve_v into_o the_o church_n infallibility_n you_o can_v believe_v that_o which_o have_v be_v so_o much_o question_v in_o the_o church_n so_o firm_o as_o that_o which_o have_v be_v universal_o believe_v and_o constant_o hold_v but_o the_o universal_a reception_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n by_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n be_v so_o intolerable_a a_o falsehood_n that_o you_o will_v scarce_o have_v vent_v it_o unless_o it_o be_v your_o design_n to_o write_v for_o the_o whetstone_n to_o c_n objection_n that_o neither_o french_a nor_o spanish_a nor_o schismatical_a greek_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o protestant_n in_o those_o point_n which_o be_v define_v by_o the_o council_n his_o lordship_n answer_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n who_o do_v agree_v and_o who_o not_o 222._o or_o who_o may_v have_v agree_v before_o the_o council_n end_v because_o they_o be_v not_o admit_v to_o a_o fair_a and_o free_a dispute_n and_o it_o may_v be_v too_o some_o decree_n will_v have_v be_v more_o favourable_a to_o they_o have_v not_o the_o care_n of_o the_o pope_n interest_n make_v they_o sour_a here_o you_o complain_v of_o his_o lordship_n fall_v again_o to_o his_o surmize_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v overawe_v by_o the_o pope_n authority_n in_o the_o council_n which_o you_o call_v a_o empty_a and_o injurious_a suspicion_n a_o unworthy_a accusation_n and_o argue_v the_o want_n of_o christian_a charity_n but_o usual_o when_o you_o storm_v the_o most_o you_o be_v the_o most_o guilty_a 8._o for_o if_o you_o call_v this_o a_o empty_a suspicion_n etc._n etc._n you_o charge_v many_o more_o with_o it_o beside_o his_o lordship_n and_o those_o the_o great_a of_o your_o own_o communion_n what_o mean_v else_o the_o frequent_a protestation_n of_o the_o french_a and_o spanish_a ambassador_n in_o which_o they_o often_o declare_v that_o as_o thing_n be_v manage_v the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a what_o mean_v those_o word_n of_o the_o emperor_n ferdinand_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o legate_n and_o the_o pope_n 683._o that_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n be_v impeach_v chief_o by_o three_o cause_n one_o because_o every_o thing_n be_v first_o consult_v of_o at_o rome_n another_o because_o the_o legate_n have_v assume_v to_o themselves_o only_o the_o liberty_n of_o propose_v which_o ought_v to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o three_o because_o of_o the_o practice_n which_o some_o prelate_n interest_v in_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v make_v the_o french_a ambassador_n mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr lansac_n write_v to_o the_o king_n his_o master_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o much_o master_n of_o this_o council_n that_o his_o pensioner_n whatsoever_o the_o emperor_n or_o we_o do_v remonstrate_v to_o they_o will_v do_v but_o what_o they_o list_v several_a of_o the_o like_a nature_n may_v easy_o be_v produce_v so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o lordship_n only_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o want_n of_o charity_n as_o you_o call_v it_o but_o all_o impartial_a person_n who_o be_v most_o acquaint_v with_o the_o affair_n of_o that_o council_n who_o judgement_n be_v certain_o much_o more_o to_o be_v take_v then_o such_o who_o have_v swear_v to_o defend_v it_o but_o you_o have_v a_o excellent_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o council_n free_a because_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n continue_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o it_o as_o long_o as_o they_o live_v and_o have_v they_o not_o good_a reason_n so_o to_o do_v when_o they_o be_v swear_v before_o hand_n to_o defend_v the_o pope_n and_o have_v secure_v he_o from_o danger_n of_o reformation_n by_o the_o council_n and_o subscribe_v the_o decree_n of_o it_o they_o be_v as_o much_o bind_v to_o defend_v their_o own_o act_n and_o although_o it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_v what_o practice_n be_v use_v to_o bring_v off_o the_o french_a and_o spanish_a bishop_n yet_o when_o they_o be_v bring_v off_o what_o a_o shame_n will_v it_o have_v be_v for_o they_o to_o have_v revolt_v from_o their_o own_o subscription_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o that_o general_n freedom_n which_o be_v desire_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n prince_n for_o reformation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o protestant_n both_v of_o the_o court_n and_o church_n be_v the_o council_n any_o thing_n
the_o catholic_n church_n with_o they_o and_o there_o be_v the_o great_a hope_n of_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d since_o neither_o part_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o old_a rome_n or_o the_o church_n which_o join_v with_o he_o but_o both_o oppose_v the_o evil_a custom_n and_o abuse_n which_o come_v by_o he_o which_o bear_v the_o same_o date_n with_o the_o patriarch_n first_o answer_n to_o the_o tube_v divine_v may_n 15._o 1576._o and_o the_o patriarch_n in_o his_o letter_n hearty_o wish_v a_o union_n and_o conjunction_n between_o they_o from_o hence_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v how_o true_a both_o those_o thing_n be_v viz._n that_o the_o intent_n of_o their_o writing_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o that_o the_o patriarch_n do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o approve_v their_o doctrine_n but_o confirm_v the_o tenet_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n but_o we_o must_v look_v further_o into_o the_o write_n themselves_o to_o see_v how_o far_o they_o agree_v and_o wherein_o they_o differ_v it_o appear_v then_o that_o the_o patriarch_n do_v profess_v his_o consent_n with_o they_o in_o these_o thing_n beside_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n 1.9_o and_o other_o more_o general_a point_n viz._n that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v in_o both_o kind_n that_o the_o use_n of_o marriage_n be_v not_o to_o be_v absolute_o forbid_v the_o clergy_n though_o their_o custom_n be_v that_o they_o must_v be_v marry_v before_o they_o take_v order_n beside_o the_o grand_a article_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n infallibility_n do_v he_o that_o join_v with_o they_o in_o these_o thing_n not_o in_o the_o least_o approve_v their_o doctrine_n but_o confirm_v the_o tenet_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n but_o withal_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o beside_o that_o common_a article_n of_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o spirit_n wherein_o he_o dispute_v most_o earnest_o there_o be_v five_o other_o in_o which_o they_o dissent_v from_o each_o other_o about_o free_a will_n justification_n by_o faith_n the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o monastic_a life_n and_o about_o these_o the_o remain_a dispute_n be_v in_o some_o of_o which_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o discern_v how_o far_o the_o right_a state_n of_o the_o question_n be_v from_o be_v apprehend_v which_o the_o lutheran_n divine_v perceive_v send_v he_o a_o large_a and_o full_a explication_n of_o their_o mind_n in_o a_o body_n of_o divinity_n in_o greek_a but_o the_o patriarch_n trouble_v come_v on_o cantacuzenus_n depose_v he_o too_o and_o other_o business_n take_v he_o off_o upon_o his_o restauration_n he_o break_v off_o the_o conference_n between_o they_o but_o although_o he_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o these_o thing_n yet_o he_o be_v far_o enough_o from_o rebuke_v they_o for_o depart_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n although_o he_o be_v desirous_a they_o shall_v have_v join_v with_o they_o in_o the_o approbation_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v in_o use_n among_o themselves_o and_o in_o those_o thing_n in_o which_o he_o seem_v to_o plead_v for_o some_o practice_n in_o use_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o there_o be_v many_o considerable_a circumstance_n about_o they_o wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o have_v be_v manifest_v by_o many_o other_o as_o in_o the_o article_n of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n the_o patriarch_n say_v they_o do_v not_o proper_o invocate_v saint_n but_o god_n for_o neither_o peter_n nor_o paul_n do_v hear_v we_o upon_o which_o ground_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o maintain_v the_o romish_a doctrine_n of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o in_o most_o of_o the_o other_o the_o main_a difference_n lie_v in_o the_o want_n of_o a_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n between_o they_o but_o be_v this_o any_o such_o great_a matter_n of_o admiration_n that_o the_o patriarch_n upon_o the_o first_o sight_n of_o their_o confession_n shall_v declare_v his_o dissent_n from_o they_o in_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_v how_o much_o barbarism_n have_v creep_v into_o the_o greek_a church_n after_o their_o be_v subdue_v by_o the_o turk_n the_o mean_n of_o instruction_n be_v take_v from_o they_o and_o it_o be_v very_o rare_a at_o that_o time_n to_o have_v any_o sermon_n at_o all_o in_o so_o much_o that_o one_o of_o your_o calogeri_n being_n more_o learned_a than_o the_o rest_n and_o preach_v there_o in_o lent_n be_v thereby_o under_o great_a suspicion_n and_o at_o last_o be_v by_o the_o patriarch_n himself_o send_v out_o of_o the_o way_n it_o be_v therefore_o more_o to_o be_v wonder_v they_o shall_v preserve_v so_o much_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n entire_a as_o they_o have_v do_v then_o that_o any_o corrupt_a practice_n shall_v prevail_v among_o they_o the_o most_o then_o which_o you_o can_v make_v of_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o patriarch_n hieremias_n be_v that_o in_o some_o thing_n he_o be_v opposite_a to_o the_o protestant_n as_o in_o other_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o what_o will_v you_o have_v say_v if_o any_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n have_v declare_v his_o consent_n so_o full_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o patriarch_n cyril_n do_v afterward_o with_o the_o protestant_n who_o on_o that_o account_n suffer_v so_o much_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o jesuit_n of_o who_o he_o complain_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o vtenbogard_a 412._o and_o although_o a_o faction_n be_v raise_v against_o he_o by_o parthenius_n who_o succeed_v he_o yet_o another_o parthenius_n succeed_v he_o stand_v up_o in_o vindication_n of_o he_o since_o therefore_o such_o different_a opinion_n have_v be_v among_o they_o about_o the_o present_a controversy_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o there_o be_v no_o declare_a confession_n of_o their_o faith_n which_o be_v own_v by_o the_o whole_a greek_a church_n as_o to_o these_o thing_n there_o can_v be_v no_o confident_a pronounce_v what_o their_o judgement_n be_v as_o to_o all_o our_o difference_n till_o they_o have_v further_o declare_v themselves_o part_n iii_o of_o particular_a controversy_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n how_o far_o this_o tend_v to_o the_o end_a controversy_n two_o distinct_a question_n concern_v the_o infallibility_n and_o authority_n of_o general_n council_n the_o first_o enter_v upon_o with_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n of_o faith_n that_o general_a council_n be_v infallible_a nor_o that_o the_o particular_a decree_n of_o any_o of_o they_o be_v so_o which_o be_v large_o prove_v pighius_fw-la his_o argument_n against_o the_o divine_a institution_n of_o general_n council_n the_o place_n of_o scripture_n consider_v which_o be_v bring_v for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o that_o these_o can_v prove_v that_o general_a council_n be_v so_o matth._n 18.20_o act_n 15.28_o particular_o answer_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o high_a expression_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n no_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n as_o to_o their_o infallibility_n the_o place_n of_o st._n austin_n about_o the_o amendment_n of_o former_a general_n council_n by_o latter_a at_o large_a vindicate_v no_o other_o place_n in_o s._n austin_n prove_v they_o infallible_a but_o many_o to_o the_o contrary_n general_a council_n can_v be_v infallible_a in_o the_o conclusion_n if_o not_o in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o mean_n no_o such_o infallibility_n without_o as_o immediate_a a_o revelation_n as_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n have_v take_v infallibility_n not_o for_o a_o absolute_a unerring_a power_n but_o such_o as_o come_v by_o a_o promise_n of_o divine_a assistance_n preserve_v from_o error_n no_o obligation_n to_o internal_a assent_n but_o from_o immediate_a divine_a authority_n of_o the_o consistency_n of_o faith_n and_o reason_n in_o thing_n propound_v to_o be_v believe_v the_o suitableness_n of_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n to_o the_o romanist_n principle_n if_o high_a pretence_n and_o large_a promise_n be_v the_o only_a thing_n 1._o which_o we_o ought_v to_o value_v any_o church_n for_o there_o be_v none_o comparable_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o imagine_v amiss_o in_o the_o christian_a world_n but_o if_o we_o believe_v the_o bill_n her_o factour_n set_v up_o she_o have_v a_o infallible_a cure_n for_o it_o if_o any_o inquire_v into_o the_o ground_n of_o religion_n they_o tell_v we_o that_o her_o testimony_n only_o can_v give_v they_o infallible_a certainty_n if_o any_o be_v afraid_a of_o mistake_v in_o opinion_n they_o have_v the_o only_a infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n to_o go_v to_o if_o any_o complain_v of_o the_o rent_n and_o division_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n they_o have_v infallible_a council_n either_o to_o
the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n that_o i_o believe_v a_o philosopher_n may_v hear_v they_o repeat_v a_o hundred_o time_n over_o without_o ever_o imagine_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o general_n council_n much_o less_o conclude_v thence_o that_o they_o be_v infallible_a but_o because_o you_o again_o cavil_v with_o another_o expression_n of_o his_o lordship_n in_o that_o he_o say_v that_o no_o one_o of_o they_o do_v infer_v much_o less_o enforce_v infallibility_n 246._o from_o whence_o you_o not_o infer_v but_o enforce_v this_o consequence_n that_o he_o be_v loath_a to_o say_v all_o of_o they_o together_o do_v not_o i_o shall_v therefore_o give_v you_o his_o lordship_n answer_v from_o all_o of_o they_o together_o which_o be_v likewise_o sufficient_a for_o every_o one_o of_o they_o and_o for_o all_o the_o place_n together_o say_v he_o weigh_v they_o with_o indifferency_n 239._o and_o either_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n include_v the_o apostle_n as_o all_o of_o they_o do_v and_o then_o all_o grant_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n be_v god_n voice_n divine_a and_o infallible_a or_o else_o they_o be_v general_a unlimited_a and_o appliable_a to_o private_a assembly_n as_o well_o as_o general_a council_n which_o none_o grant_v to_o be_v infallible_a but_o some_o mad_a enthusiast_n or_o else_o they_o be_v limit_v not_o simple_o to_o all_o truth_n but_o all_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n in_o which_o i_o shall_v easy_o grant_v a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v suffer_v itself_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n in_o scripture_n and_o not_o take_v upon_o it_o to_o lead_v both_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o spirit_n for_o suppose_v these_o place_n or_o any_o other_o do_v promise_v assistance_n even_o to_o infallibility_n yet_o they_o grant_v it_o not_o to_o every_o general_a council_n but_o to_o the_o catholic_n body_n of_o the_o church_n itself_o and_o if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o whole_a church_n principal_o then_o be_v it_o in_o a_o general_n council_n but_o by_o consequent_a as_o the_o council_n represent_v the_o whole_a and_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o a_o thing_n by_o consequent_a do_v not_o otherwise_o nor_o long_o belong_v unto_o it_o than_o it_o consent_v and_o cleave_v to_o that_o upon_o which_o it_o be_v a_o consequent_a and_o therefore_o a_o general_n council_n have_v not_o this_o assistance_n but_o as_o it_o keep_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o spouse_n of_o christ_n who_o it_o be_v to_o hear_v his_o word_n and_o determine_v by_o it_o and_o therefore_o if_o a_o general_n council_n will_v go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n way_n it_o may_v easy_o go_v without_o the_o church_n truth_n which_o word_n of_o he_o contain_v so_o full_a a_o answer_n to_o all_o these_o place_n together_o that_o till_o that_o be_v take_v off_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n at_o all_o to_o descend_v to_o the_o particular_a place_n especial_o those_o which_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o yourselves_o to_o speak_v primary_o of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n yet_o for_o your_o satisfaction_n more_o than_o any_o intelligent_a reader_n i_o shall_v add_v somewhat_o further_o to_o show_v the_o impertinency_n of_o the_o former_a place_n 7._o and_o then_o consider_v the_o force_n of_o the_o two_o last_o which_o have_v not_o yet_o be_v handle_v 1._o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o draw_v from_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o diffusive_a body_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o representative_a unless_o the_o maker_n of_o those_o promise_n do_v institute_v that_o representation_n therefore_o suppose_v that_o infallibility_n be_v by_o these_o promise_n bestow_v upon_o the_o catholic_n church_n yet_o you_o can_v thence_o infer_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o a_o general_n council_n unless_o you_o prove_v that_o christ_n do_v appoint_v a_o general_n council_n to_o represent_v the_o church_n and_o in_o that_o representation_n to_o be_v infallible_a for_o this_o infallibility_n come_v mere_o by_o promise_n it_o belong_v only_o to_o those_o to_o who_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v and_o in_o that_o capacity_n in_o which_o it_o be_v make_v to_o it_o for_o spiritual_a gift_n be_v not_o bequeathable_a to_o heir_n nor_o can_v be_v make_v over_o to_o assign_v if_o the_o church_n be_v promise_v infallibility_n she_o can_v pass_v away_o the_o gift_n of_o it_o to_o her_o assign_v in_o a_o general_n council_n unless_o that_o power_n of_o devolution_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o original_a grant_n for_o she_o can_v give_v no_o more_o than_o be_v in_o her_o power_n to_o bestow_v but_o this_o infallibility_n be_v out_o of_o her_o disposal_n the_o utmost_a that_o can_v be_v give_v to_o a_o general_n council_n be_v a_o power_n to_o oblige_v the_o church_n by_o the_o act_n of_o it_o which_o fall_v much_o short_a of_o infallibility_n beside_o this_o representation_n of_o the_o church_n by_o a_o general_n council_n be_v a_o thing_n not_o so_o evident_a from_o whence_o it_o shall_v come_v that_o from_o a_o promise_n make_v to_o one_o it_o must_v necessary_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o other_o for_o as_o pighius_fw-la say_v it_o can_v be_v demonstrate_v from_o theological_a ground_n 4._o that_o a_o general_n council_n which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o thousand_o part_n of_o it_o shall_v represent_v the_o whole_a church_n for_o either_o say_v he_o it_o have_v this_o from_o christ_n or_o from_o the_o church_n but_o they_o can_v produce_v one_o tittle_n from_o scripture_n where_o christ_n have_v convey_v over_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o a_o hundred_o or_o two_o hundred_o bishop_n if_o they_o say_v it_o be_v from_o the_o church_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v show_v first_o that_o it_o be_v do_v and_o second_o that_o it_o be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la or_o aught_o to_o be_v so_o do_v first_o it_o can_v never_o be_v show_v that_o such_o a_o thing_n ever_o be_v do_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o if_o it_o be_v it_o must_v either_o be_v by_o some_o formal_a act_n of_o the_o church_n or_o by_o a_o tacit_n consent_n it_o can_v not_o be_v by_o any_o formal_a act_n of_o the_o church_n for_o then_o there_o must_v be_v some_o such_o act_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n precede_v the_o be_v of_o any_o general_a council_n for_o by_o that_o act_n they_o receive_v their_o commission_n to_o appear_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o this_o can_v not_o be_v do_v in_o a_o general_n council_n because_o that_o be_v not_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n but_o only_o to_o represent_v it_o and_o therefore_o it_o must_v have_v this_o power_n to_o represent_v the_o church_n by_o something_o antecedent_n to_o its_o be_v else_o it_o will_v only_o arrogate_v this_o power_n to_o itself_o without_o any_o act_n of_o the_o church_n in_o order_n to_o it_o now_o that_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v ever_o agree_v in_o any_o such_o act_n be_v utter_o impossible_a to_o be_v demonstrate_v either_o that_o it_o can_v be_v or_o that_o it_o be_v yet_o such_o a_o delegation_n to_o a_o general_n council_n must_v be_v suppose_v in_o order_n to_o its_o representation_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o this_o delegation_n must_v not_o only_o be_v before_o the_o first_o general_n council_n but_z for_o all_o that_o i_o can_v see_v before_o every_o one_o for_o how_o can_v the_o church_n by_o its_o act_n in_o one_o age_n bind_v the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n succeed_v to_o the_o act_n of_o those_o several_a council_n which_o shall_v be_v choose_v afterward_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o such_o a_o formal_a act_n be_v not_o necessary_a but_o the_o tacit_n consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v sufficient_a for_o it_o then_o such_o a_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v make_v evident_a by_o which_o they_o do_v devolve_v over_o the_o power_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o such_o a_o representative_a and_o all_o those_o must_v consent_v in_o that_o act_n who_o power_n the_o council_n pretend_v to_o have_v and_o so_o it_o can_v be_v sufficient_a to_o say_v that_o those_o who_o choose_v bishop_n for_o the_o council_n do_v it_o for_o than_o they_o can_v only_o represent_v those_o who_o choose_v they_o and_o so_o their_o authority_n will_v fall_v much_o short_a of_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o suppose_v such_o a_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o which_o no_o footstep_n at_o all_o appear_v we_o must_v further_o inquire_v by_o what_o right_a or_o authority_n this_o be_v do_v for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v give_v it_o by_o christ_n it_o can_v be_v give_v from_o itself_o without_o his_o commission_n for_o do_v it_o which_o if_o we_o stay_v till_o it_o can_v be_v produce_v in_o this_o case_n we_o may_v stay_v long_o enough_o before_o we_o see_v any_o such_o infallible_a
of_o plain_a place_n wherein_o he_o say_v that_o no_o other_o writing_n be_v infallible_a but_o the_o scripture_n 112._o that_o only_o according_a to_o they_o he_o judge_v free_o of_o all_o other_o write_n and_o that_o because_o he_o can_v yield_v a_o undoubted_a assent_n to_o none_o but_o they_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o writing_n wherein_o humane_a infirmity_n be_v not_o discover_v but_o in_o they_o that_o man_n be_v at_o liberty_n to_o believe_v or_o not_o believe_v any_o thing_n beside_o the_o scripture_n can_v any_o man_n who_o say_v these_o thing_n be_v reasonable_o suppose_v to_o assert_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n be_v as_o certain_a as_o the_o scripture_n be_v you_o see_v then_o what_o little_a advantage_n you_o have_v gain_v by_o this_o attempt_n of_o offer_v to_o make_v st._n austin_n contradict_v himself_o if_o in_o this_o place_n he_o shall_v be_v suppose_v to_o assert_v that_o general_a council_n may_v err_v which_o he_o do_v plain_o enough_o to_o any_o but_o those_o who_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o understand_v he_o 12._o this_o prejudice_n be_v therefore_o remove_v we_o come_v to_o the_o particular_a evasion_n of_o this_o place_n which_o you_o thus_o sum_v up_o in_o order_n to_o the_o defence_n of_o they_o 256._o that_o when_o he_o say_v former_a general_n council_n may_v be_v amend_v by_o the_o latter_a it_o be_v only_o to_o be_v understand_v in_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o precept_n pertain_v to_o manner_n and_o discipline_n or_o by_o way_n of_o more_o full_a and_o clear_a explication_n of_o what_o have_v be_v deliver_v by_o former_a council_n to_o both_o these_o his_o lordship_n offer_v very_o just_a exception_n to_o the_o first_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o precept_n of_o manner_n and_o discipline_n he_o say_v 1._o that_o bellarmin_n contradict_v himself_o because_o he_o have_v say_v before_o 241._o that_o general_a council_n can_v err_v in_o precept_n of_o manner_n no_o say_v you_o this_o be_v no_o contradiction_n because_o these_o depend_v much_o upon_o circumstance_n of_o time_n place_n person_n etc._n etc._n which_o vary_v it_o often_o so_o fall_v out_o that_o what_o at_o first_o be_v prudent_o judge_v fit_a to_o be_v do_v become_v afterward_o unfitting_a and_o in_o this_o case_n one_o general_n council_n may_v be_v amend_v by_o another_o and_o yet_o neither_o charge_v with_o error_n but_o do_v you_o suppose_v the_o mean_a while_n that_o st._n austin_n speak_v pertinent_o to_o this_o business_n or_o no_o if_o he_o do_v he_o can_v be_v understand_v only_o of_o such_o a_o precept_n as_o that_o relate_n to_o the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n suppose_v then_o one_o council_n shall_v decree_v heretic_n to_o be_v baptize_v and_o another_o afterward_o correct_v this_o and_o say_v they_o shall_v not_o will_v you_o say_v that_o neither_o of_o these_o be_v in_o a_o error_n so_o that_o your_o answer_n be_v whole_o impertinent_a to_o the_o scope_n of_o st._n augustine_n discourse_n and_o so_o his_o lordship_n say_v this_o whole_a answer_n be_v concern_v precept_n of_o manner_n for_o st._n austin_n dispute_v against_o the_o error_n of_o st._n cyprian_n follow_v by_o the_o donatist_n which_o be_v a_o error_n in_o faith_n namely_o that_o true_a baptism_n can_v not_o be_v give_v by_o heretic_n and_o such_o as_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o you_o say_v st._n austin_n do_v not_o confine_v his_o discourse_n to_o st._n cyprian_n case_n only_a 257._o but_o by_o occasion_n of_o he_o and_o his_o council_n error_n he_o lay_v down_o general_a doctrine_n touch_v the_o different_a authority_n of_o the_o write_n of_o particular_a bishop_n provincial_a national_a and_o general_n council_n although_o i_o shall_v grant_v you_o this_o it_o will_v make_v little_a for_o your_o purpose_n for_o st._n augustine_n main_a design_n be_v to_o set_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n far_o above_o all_o these_o and_o that_o in_o point_n of_o certainty_n and_o infallibility_n and_o this_o be_v his_o main_a scope_n whatsoever_o he_o say_v of_o any_o of_o these_o it_o be_v certain_a his_o purpose_n be_v to_o show_v that_o all_o of_o they_o fall_v short_a of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n as_o to_o our_o yield_a assent_n to_o they_o for_o these_o in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v set_v by_o themselves_o as_o only_o be_v infallible_a and_o deserve_a a_o undoubted_a assent_n to_o all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o they_o which_o be_v suppose_v he_o proceed_v to_o show_v what_o the_o extent_n be_v of_o all_o other_o authority_n beside_o this_o for_o the_o write_n of_o bishop_n say_v he_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o deserve_v such_o a_o assent_n as_o we_o give_v to_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v be_v correct_v by_o other_o or_o by_o national_a council_n and_o national_a council_n by_o plenary_a and_o plenary_a may_v be_v amend_v the_o former_a by_o the_o latter_a in_o all_o which_o gradation_n two_o thing_n must_v be_v repeat_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o run_v through_o the_o whole_a discourse_n which_o be_v 1._o the_o difference_n of_o all_o these_o from_o the_o scripture_n in_o regard_n of_o our_o yield_a assent_n to_o they_o for_o that_o be_v it_o which_o he_o begin_v with_o that_o we_o be_v not_o in_o the_o least_o to_o doubt_v whether_o any_o thing_n contain_v therein_o be_v true_a or_o no_o and_o then_o come_v the_o other_o in_o by_o way_n of_o immediate_a antithesis_fw-la but_o the_o write_n of_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n and_o although_o there_o be_v a_o gradation_n in_o all_o these_o yet_o all_o of_o they_o be_v therein_o different_a from_o scripture_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v find_v there_o may_v neither_o be_v doubt_v nor_o dispute_v but_o the_o write_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v doubt_v or_o dispute_v of_o because_o they_o may_v be_v correct_v by_o other_o bishop_n or_o council_n and_o those_o national_a council_n may_v be_v because_o they_o may_v be_v correct_v by_o general_n and_o even_o these_o general_n council_n can_v require_v such_o a_o undoubted_a assent_n as_o the_o scripture_n do_v because_o the_o former_a may_v be_v amend_v by_o the_o latter_a so_o that_o if_o you_o take_v the_o scope_n of_o s._n augustine_n discourse_n in_o this_o place_n whether_o he_o speak_v general_o or_o particular_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o evident_a than_o that_o he_o put_v this_o difference_n between_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o other_o write_n or_o council_n that_o the_o one_o may_v not_o at_o all_o be_v doubt_v or_o dispute_v of_o but_o the_o other_o may_v and_o the_o common_a reason_n of_o all_o be_v because_o none_o be_v so_o infallible_a but_o they_o may_v be_v correct_v by_o something_o beside_o themselves_o which_o can_v be_v in_o any_o sense_n say_v of_o the_o scripture_n 2._o although_o saint_n austin_n add_v that_o clause_n si_fw-mi quid_fw-la in_o eye_n fortè_fw-la à_fw-la veritate_fw-la deviatum_fw-la est_fw-la if_o they_o have_v err_v from_o the_o truth_n only_o where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o write_n of_o bishop_n yet_o the_o series_n of_o his_o discourse_n imply_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v understand_v in_o what_o follow_v too_o that_o as_o the_o write_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v correct_v by_o council_n if_o they_o have_v err_v so_o national_a council_n may_v be_v correct_v by_o general_n if_o they_o have_v err_v and_o so_o former_a general_n council_n by_o latter_a on_o the_o same_o supposition_n still_o that_o they_o have_v err_v for_o as_o the_o error_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o correction_n in_o the_o former_a it_o must_v be_v likewise_o of_o amendment_n here_o and_o whatever_o be_v not_o so_o perfect_a but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v amend_v can_v be_v suppose_v infallible_a for_o if_o the_o person_n have_v be_v infallible_a who_o have_v make_v those_o decree_n in_o general_a council_n they_o will_v have_v prevent_v any_o necessity_n of_o further_a amendment_n by_o succeed_a council_n so_o that_o take_v amendment_n in_o what_o sense_n you_o will_v either_o for_o supply_v defect_n or_o correct_v error_n it_o be_v destructive_a to_o your_o pretence_n that_o the_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n be_v infallible_a and_o as_o certain_a as_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v so_o repugnant_a to_o the_o scope_n of_o this_o speech_n of_o s._n austin_n as_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o your_o criticism_n then_o from_o the_o signification_n of_o emendare_fw-la from_o menda_fw-la and_o menda_fw-la from_o minus_fw-la and_o so_o import_v only_o the_o take_n away_o any_o defect_n yield_v you_o no_o relief_n at_o all_o 252._o for_o that_o defect_n which_o be_v suppose_v in_o general_a council_n which_o need_v that_o emendation_n do_v sufficient_o argue_v there_o be_v no_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o decree_n of_o those_o council_n for_o where_o god_n spirit_n assist_v infallible_o it_o leave_v no_o such_o defect_n as_o be_v
as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o law_n of_o other_o court_n before_o private_a man_n can_v take_v liberty_n to_o refuse_v obedience_n therefore_o he_o conclude_v that_o this_o seem_v most_o fit_a and_o necessary_a for_o the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n unless_o in_o case_n the_o error_n be_v manifest_a and_o intolerable_a or_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n upon_o peaceable_a and_o just_a complaint_n of_o this_o error_n neglect_n or_o refuse_v to_o call_v a_o council_n to_o examine_v it_o and_o there_o come_v in_o national_a and_o provincial_a council_n to_o reform_v for_o themselves_o these_o word_n contain_v the_o full_a account_n of_o his_o lordship_n opinion_n which_o you_o charge_v with_o so_o many_o interclashing_n and_o inconvenience_n the_o first_o of_o which_o be_v that_o it_o tend_v only_o to_o oblige_v all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n to_o a_o unity_n in_o error_n against_o scripture_n and_o demonstration_n 242._o during_o their_o whole_a life_n or_o rather_o to_o the_o world_n end_n since_o such_o a_o utopian_a rectify_v council_n as_o the_o bishop_n here_o fancy_n be_v moral_o impossible_a ever_o to_o be_v have_v and_o therefore_o you_o call_v it_o a_o strange_a not_o not_o say_v a_o impious_a doctrine_n advance_v without_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n or_o antiquity_n nay_o contrary_a to_o all_o solid_a reason_n this_o be_v a_o charge_n of_o the_o high_a nature_n and_o manage_v with_o such_o unmeasurable_a confidence_n 2._o we_o must_v somewhat_o further_o inquire_v into_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o lordship_n opinion_n to_o see_v whether_o it_o be_v guilty_a of_o these_o crime_n or_o no._n there_o be_v three_o thing_n therefore_o must_v be_v clear_v in_o order_n to_o his_o lordship_n vindication_n 1._o the_o design_n of_o his_o discourse_n 2._o the_o supposition_n he_o make_v as_o to_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o council_n 3._o the_o obligation_n of_o its_o decree_n suppose_v that_o it_o shall_v err_v 1._o the_o design_n of_o his_o discourse_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v which_o be_v to_o remedy_v a_o supposable_a inconvenience_n and_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o church_n peace_n for_o the_o first_o question_n in_o debate_n be_v whether_o a_o general_a council_n may_v err_v or_o no._n in_o which_o his_o lordship_n give_v sufficient_a evidence_n from_o scripture_n antiquity_n and_o reason_n that_o it_o may_v but_o then_o here_o come_v a_o inconvenience_n to_o be_v remove_v for_o his_o adversary_n object_n what_o be_v we_o then_o near_o to_o unity_n after_o a_o council_n have_v determine_v suppose_v it_o may_v err_v to_o this_o his_o lordship_n suit_v his_o answer_n wherein_o we_o ought_v to_o consider_v that_o the_o inconvenience_n object_v be_v on_o his_o lordship_n supposition_n one_o of_o the_o rara_fw-it contingentia_fw-la and_o such_o a_o one_o ought_v not_o to_o destroy_v a_o principle_n of_o government_n in_o all_o other_o case_n useful_a and_o necessary_a for_o there_o can_v possible_o be_v any_o way_n think_v of_o for_o peace_n and_o government_n but_o there_o may_v be_v a_o supposition_n make_v of_o some_o notable_a inconvenience_n but_o that_o not_o be_v necessary_a nor_o immediate_o consequent_a upon_o it_o but_o something_o which_o may_v happen_v and_o far_o more_o probable_o may_v not_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o hinder_v the_o obtain_n of_o that_o which_o be_v general_o both_o useful_a and_o necessary_a to_o give_v you_o a_o parallel_n case_n to_o this_o it_o be_v grant_v on_o all_o hand_n that_o the_o civil_a authority_n of_o a_o nation_n be_v fallible_a and_o therefore_o we_o may_v suppose_v it_o actual_o to_o err_v and_o that_o so_o far_o as_o to_o bind_v man_n by_o law_n to_o something_o in_o itself_o unlawful_a will_v you_o say_v now_o that_o the_o intent_n of_o civil_a authority_n be_v to_o bind_v man_n necessary_o to_o sin_n i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o but_o by_o this_o you_o may_v easy_o see_v the_o fallacy_n of_o your_o argue_v against_o his_o lordship_n for_o it_o be_v a_o inconvenience_n indeed_o supposable_a but_o not_o at_o all_o necessary_a if_o he_o have_v say_v indeed_o that_o general_a council_n must_v necessary_o err_v your_o argument_n have_v be_v strong_a against_o he_o but_o as_o it_o be_v it_o have_v no_o more_o force_n against_o his_o assertion_n than_o the_o supposition_n before_o make_v have_v against_o civil_a authority_n for_o that_o case_n may_v be_v easy_o put_v that_o such_o a_o law_n may_v pass_v but_o do_v this_o hinder_a man_n from_o their_o obligation_n to_o duty_n and_o submission_n to_o a_o just_a authority_n or_o will_v you_o have_v man_n present_o to_o renounce_v obedience_n and_o to_o repeal_v such_o a_o law_n themselves_o and_o not_o rather_o in_o all_o way_n of_o duty_n and_o reverence_n to_o authority_n make_v know_v their_o just_a complaint_n and_o desire_v a_o redress_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o supreme_a authority_n and_o this_o be_v all_o which_o his_o lordship_n aim_v at_o that_o in_o case_n a_o general_n council_n shall_v err_v which_o be_v not_o easy_o imaginable_a upon_o his_o supposition_n it_o tend_v more_o to_o the_o church_n peace_n for_o private_a man_n not_o to_o oppose_v the_o decree_n of_o it_o but_o to_o endeavour_v that_o another_o general_a council_n be_v call_v to_o repeal_v it_o and_o till_o then_o to_o preserve_v the_o church_n peace_n suppose_v the_o error_n not_o manifest_a or_o intolerable_a in_o this_o case_n then_o there_o be_v two_o inconvenience_n put_v the_o one_o of_o they_o be_v that_o when_o a_o council_n be_v suppose_v to_o err_v every_o particular_a man_n may_v be_v at_o liberty_n to_o oppose_v the_o decree_n of_o it_o and_o so_o put_v the_o church_n into_o confusion_n the_o other_o be_v that_o though_o private_a man_n may_v know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o error_n yet_o they_o shall_v be_v patient_a till_o the_o church_n by_o another_o council_n may_v repeal_v it_o now_o these_o two_o inconvenience_n be_v lay_v together_o the_o question_n be_v which_o be_v the_o great_a his_o lordship_n with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o reason_n judge_n the_o former_a to_o be_v because_o in_o the_o latter_a case_n it_o be_v only_o a_o silence_v of_o some_o less_o necessary_a truth_n for_o some_o time_n but_o in_o the_o other_o it_o be_v a_o expose_v the_o church_n to_o the_o fury_n of_o man_n turbulent_a spirit_n but_o that_o which_o show_v the_o unreasonableness_n of_o your_o objection_n that_o this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o bind_v the_o church_n to_o a_o union_n in_o error_n be_v that_o this_o do_v not_o necessary_o follow_v from_o his_o lordship_n opinion_n but_o be_v only_o a_o case_n supposable_a and_o no_o rare_a inconvenience_n ought_v to_o prejudice_v a_o general_a good_a and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n in_o such_o a_o case_n ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o private_a man_n satisfaction_n 3._o but_o this_o will_v further_o appear_v if_o we_o consider_v second_o the_o supposition_n his_o lordship_n make_v for_o by_o that_o we_o shall_v see_v how_o rare_o incident_a this_o case_n be_v for_o i_o hope_v the_o suppose_v that_o a_o general_n council_n may_v err_v do_v not_o suppose_v that_o it_o must_v necessary_o err_v and_o grant_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v suppose_v by_o he_o it_o be_v a_o rare_a case_n that_o it_o shall_v err_v for_o these_o thing_n be_v by_o he_o suppose_v 1._o that_o it_o must_v be_v a_o council_n lawful_o call_v and_o order_v and_o so_o not_o such_o council_n as_o that_o of_o trent_n be_v or_o any_o like_o it_o wherein_o the_o pope_n give_v only_o a_o general_n summons_n and_o that_o it_o must_v be_v call_v a_o general_n council_n on_o that_o account_n how_o few_o bishop_n soever_o appear_v in_o it_o nay_o though_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v exclude_v from_o it_o but_o it_o must_v be_v such_o a_o council_n as_o may_v be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v general_n by_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o that_o we_o will_v make_v our_o judge_n in_o the_o case_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n not_o that_o we_o will_v stand_v upon_o bishop_n be_v actual_o present_a from_o every_o particular_a church_n but_o that_o such_o a_o number_n be_v present_a from_o the_o great_a church_n as_o may_v make_v it_o not_o be_v suspect_v to_o be_v mere_o a_o faction_n pack_v together_o for_o the_o interess_n of_o some_o potent_a prelate_n but_o that_o they_o do_v so_o indifferent_o meet_v from_o all_o part_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o just_a ground_n of_o suspicion_n that_o they_o design_v any_o thing_n but_o the_o common_a good_a of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o therefore_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n to_o be_v true_o such_o in_o our_o present_a sense_n neither_o do_v we_o quarrel_v at_o they_o because_o so_o few_o bishop_n be_v present_a who_o live_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a empire_n for_o
church_n because_o that_o be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_n church_n his_o advice_n have_v signify_v nothing_o for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o church_n in_o which_o case_n it_o may_v have_v be_v pertinent_a to_o have_v say_v they_o shall_v adhere_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n because_o that_o be_v the_o root_n etc._n etc._n but_o when_o the_o difference_n be_v at_o rome_n itself_o between_o two_o bishop_n there_o this_o reason_n have_v be_v whole_o impertinent_a for_o the_o only_a reason_n proper_a in_o this_o case_n must_v be_v such_o as_o must_v discriminate_a the_o one_o party_n from_o the_o other_o which_o this_o can_v not_o do_v because_o it_o be_v equal_o challenge_v by_o they_o both_o and_o have_v belong_v to_o one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o in_o case_n novatianus_n have_v prove_v the_o lawful_a bishop_n and_o not_o cornelius_n and_o therefore_o the_o sense_n of_o cyprian_n word_n must_v be_v such_o as_o may_v give_v direction_n which_o party_n to_o join_v with_o at_o rome_n on_o which_o account_n they_o can_v import_v any_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n over_o other_o church_n but_o only_o contain_v this_o advice_n that_o they_o shall_v hold_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o communicate_v only_o with_o that_o party_n which_o do_v it_o this_o reason_n be_v so_o clear_a and_o evident_a to_o i_o that_o this_o place_n can_v be_v understand_v of_o any_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n above_o other_o church_n that_o if_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o to_o induce_v i_o to_o believe_v it_o this_o be_v so_o pregnant_a that_o i_o can_v not_o resist_v the_o force_n of_o it_o but_o beside_o this_o his_o lordship_n prove_v that_o elsewhere_o s._n cyprian_n speak_v in_o his_o own_o person_n with_o other_o catholic_n bishop_n 9_o nos_fw-la qui_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la unius_fw-la caput_fw-la &_o radicem_fw-la tenemus_fw-la 366._o we_o who_o hold_v the_o head_n and_o root_n of_o one_o church_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v he_o can_v not_o make_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_n this_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o unity_n and_o society_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 73._o without_o relation_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o s._n cyprian_n write_v to_o cornelius_n that_o they_o have_v send_v caldonius_n and_o fortunatus_n to_o reduce_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o unity_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o because_o no_o particular_a church_n can_v be_v the_o root_n of_o the_o catholic_n and_o if_o any_o be_v jerusalem_n might_n more_o pretend_v to_o it_o than_o rome_n and_o because_o s._n cyprian_a and_o his_o brethren_n dare_v not_o have_v suspend_v their_o communion_n at_o all_o if_o they_o have_v look_v on_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_n as_o baronius_n confess_v they_o do_v all_o which_o thing_n be_v large_o insist_v on_o by_o his_o lordship_n and_o do_v all_o confirm_v that_o hereby_o be_v not_o mean_v any_o authority_n or_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n above_o other_o apostolical_a church_n which_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o lesser_a church_n which_o come_v from_o they_o be_v call_v matrices_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la by_o tertullian_n and_o other_o but_o you_o be_v still_o so_o very_o unreasonable_a that_o though_o no_o more_o be_v say_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o may_v be_v say_v of_o any_o other_o apostolical_a church_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o must_v import_v some_o huge_a authority_n which_o if_o it_o have_v be_v say_v of_o any_o other_o will_v have_v be_v interpret_v by_o yourselves_o into_o nothing_o for_o so_o do_v you_o deal_v with_o we_o here_o for_o because_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o who_o join_v with_o cornelius_n do_v preserve_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 394._o therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o root_n of_o the_o catholic_n but_o he_o must_v have_v a_o very_a mean_a understanding_n that_o can_v be_v sway_v by_o such_o trifle_n as_o these_o be_v for_o be_v there_o not_o a_o catholic_n and_o schismatical_a party_n then_o at_o rome_n and_o if_o they_o who_o join_v with_o novatianus_n do_v separate_v from_o the_o catholic_n church_n than_o they_o who_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o cornelius_n must_v preserve_v the_o unity_n of_o it_o and_o will_v not_o this_o argment_n as_o well_o prove_v the_o catholic_n party_n at_o carthage_n to_o be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o well_o as_o at_o rome_n but_o such_o kind_n of_o thing_n must_v they_o deal_v with_o who_o be_v resolve_v to_o maintain_v a_o cause_n and_o yet_o be_v destitute_a of_o better_a mean_n to_o do_v it_o with_o so_o that_o i_o can_v find_v any_o thing_n in_o all_o your_o answer_n but_o what_o will_v equal_o hold_v for_o any_o other_o church_n at_o that_o time_n which_o be_v so_o divide_v as_o rome_n be_v consider_v the_o great_a care_n that_o then_o be_v use_v to_o preserve_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o what_o particular_o s._n cyprian_n apprehension_n be_v concern_v the_o nature_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 9_o we_o have_v at_o large_a discourse_v already_o to_o which_o place_n we_o refer_v the_o reader_n if_o he_o desire_v any_o further_a satisfaction_n your_o whole_a n._n 5._o depend_v on_o personal_a matter_n concern_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o lady_n conscience_n but_o if_o you_o will_v thence_o infer_v 10._o etc._n that_o she_o do_v well_o to_o desert_n the_o protestant_a communion_n you_o must_v prove_v that_o it_o can_v be_v no_o sin_n to_o follow_v the_o dictate_v of_o a_o erroneous_a conscience_n for_o such_o we_o say_v it_o be_v in_o she_o and_o you_o deny_v it_o all_o this_o discourse_n signify_v nothing_o but_o depend_v on_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o but_o you_o most_o notorious_o impose_v on_o his_o lordship_n when_o because_o he_o assert_v the_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n of_o some_o in_o your_o church_n you_o will_v make_v he_o say_v 401._o that_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n to_o join_v with_o your_o church_n you_o may_v as_o well_o say_v because_o he_o hope_v some_o who_o have_v commit_v adultery_n may_v be_v save_v therefore_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n to_o commit_v adultery_n so_o that_o while_o you_o be_v charge_v he_o false_o for_o allow_v dissimulation_n you_o do_v that_o which_o be_v more_o in_o say_v that_o which_o you_o can_v but_o know_v to_o be_v a_o great_a untruth_n if_o our_o religion_n be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o you_o as_o you_o eager_o contend_v it_o be_v not_o 402._o let_v it_o suffice_v to_o tell_v you_o that_o our_o religion_n be_v christianity_n let_v you_o be_v what_o it_o will_n and_o if_o it_o please_v you_o better_o to_o have_v a_o name_n whole_o distinct_a from_o we_o you_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o roman_a religion_n and_o we_o the_o christian._n if_o you_o judge_v we_o of_o another_o religion_n from_o you_o because_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v all_o that_o you_o do_v we_o may_v judge_v you_o to_o have_v a_o different_a religion_n from_o the_o christian_a because_o you_o impose_v more_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o necessary_a in_o order_n to_o salvation_n than_o ever_o christ_n or_o the_o apostle_n do_v and_o certain_o the_o main_a of_o any_o religion_n consist_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v in_o it_o in_o order_n to_o eternal_a happiness_n in_o your_o follow_a discourse_n you_o be_v so_o far_o from_o give_v we_o any_o hope_n of_o peace_n with_o your_o church_n that_o you_o plain_o give_v we_o the_o reason_n 403_o why_o it_o be_v vain_a to_o expect_v or_o desire_v it_o which_o be_v that_o if_o your_o church_n shall_v recede_v from_o any_o thing_n it_o will_v appear_v she_o have_v err_v and_o if_o that_o appear_v farewell_n infallibility_n and_o than_o if_o that_o be_v once_o go_v you_o think_v all_o be_v go_v and_o while_o you_o maintain_v it_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o hope_v any_o peace_n with_o you_o that_o the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n may_v still_o be_v join_v in_o the_o dutchmans_n sign_n with_o the_o quadrature_n of_o the_o circle_n and_o the_o philosopher_n stone_n for_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o three_o hopeless_a thing_n how_o far_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o general_n council_n have_v be_v so_o full_o clear_v already_o that_o i_o need_v not_o go_v about_o here_o to_o vindicate_v his_o lordship_n opinion_n from_o falsity_n or_o contradiction_n both_o which_o you_o unreasonable_o charge_v it_o with_o and_o that_o still_o from_o no_o wise_a a_o
which_o cyprian_n reply_v whence_o come_v this_o tradition_n traditio_fw-la do_v it_o descend_v from_o the_o lord_n authority_n or_o from_o the_o command_v and_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o those_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v do_v which_o be_v there_o write_v and_o again_o if_o it_o be_v command_v in_o the_o gospel_n or_o the_o epistle_n and_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n then_o let_v this_o holy_a tradition_n be_v observe_v we_o see_v then_o what_o st._n cyprian_n mean_v by_o his_o apostolical_a tradition_n not_o one_o infallible_o attest_v by_o the_o present_a church_n but_o that_o be_v clear_o derive_v from_o scripture_n as_o its_o fountain_n and_o therefore_o bring_v in_o the_o forego_n word_n on_o purpose_n to_o correct_v the_o error_n of_o tradition_n that_o as_o when_o channel_n be_v divert_v to_o a_o wrong_a course_n we_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o fountain_n so_o we_o must_v in_o all_o pretend_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n run_v up_o to_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o fountainhead_n and_o whereas_o beauty_n only_a shift_n to_o avoid_v this_o place_n of_o cyprian_a be_v by_o say_v that_o cyprian_a argue_v more_o errantium_fw-la i._n e._n can_v not_o defend_v one_o error_n but_o by_o another_o see_v how_o different_a the_o judgement_n of_o st._n augustine_n and_o bellarmin_n be_v about_o it_o for_o st._n augustin_n be_v so_o far_o from_o blame_v it_o in_o he_o that_o he_o say_v optimum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la dubitatione_n faciendum_fw-la i._n e._n it_o be_v the_o best_a and_o most_o prudent_a course_n to_o prevent_v error_n and_o in_o another_o place_n where_o he_o mention_n that_o say_n of_o cyprian_a it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o they_o to_o object_v custom_n who_o be_v overcome_v by_o reason_n 5._o as_o though_o custom_n be_v great_a than_o truth_n or_o as_o though_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v follow_v in_o spiritual_a thing_n which_o be_v reveal_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o say_v st._n augustin_n be_v evident_o true_a because_o reason_n and_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o custom_n he_o do_v not_o charge_v these_o say_n on_o he_o as_o bellarmin_n do_v as_o part_v of_o his_o error_n but_o acknowledge_v they_o and_o dispute_v against_o his_o opinion_n out_o of_o those_o principle_n and_o when_o before_o the_o donatist_n object_v the_o authority_n of_o st._n cyprian_n in_o the_o point_n of_o rebaptisation_n what_o kind_n of_o answer_n do_v st._n augustine_n give_v they_o the_o very_o same_o that_o any_o protestant_n will_v give_v who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o sacred_a canonical_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v contain_v within_o certain_a bound_n 3._o and_o ought_v so_o far_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o succeed_a write_n of_o bishop_n that_o of_o that_o alone_o we_o be_v not_o to_o doubt_v or_o call_v in_o question_n any_o thing_n therein_o write_v whether_o it_o be_v true_a and_o right_a or_o no._n but_o as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o follow_a word_n all_o the_o write_n since_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v liable_a to_o dispute_v and_o even_a council_n themselves_o to_o be_v examine_v and_o amend_v by_o council_n think_v you_o then_o that_o st._n augustin_n ever_o think_v of_o a_o present_a infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n or_o if_o he_o do_v he_o express_v it_o in_o as_o odd_a a_o manner_n as_o ever_o i_o read_v how_o easy_o may_v he_o have_v stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o donatist_n with_o that_o one_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n how_o impertinent_o do_v he_o dispute_v through_o all_o those_o book_n if_o he_o have_v believe_v any_o such_o thing_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o multiply_v the_o citation_n out_o of_o other_o book_n of_o st._n austin_n to_o show_v how_o much_o he_o attribute_v to_o scripture_n as_o the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o consequent_o how_o far_o from_o believe_v your_o doctrine_n of_o infallibility_n but_o these_o may_v suffice_v to_o show_v how_o unhappy_o you_o light_n on_o these_o book_n of_o st._n augustine_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o your_o opinion_n out_o of_o the_o father_n the_o last_o thing_n your_o discourser_n object_n against_o his_o lordship_n way_n be_v if_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a in_o the_o tradition_n of_o scripture_n 18._o how_o can_v i_o ever_o be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o she_o have_v not_o err_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la and_o define_v some_o book_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o real_o be_v not_o his_o word_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v if_o you_o mean_v by_o infallible_a certainty_n such_o a_o certainty_n as_o must_v have_v some_o infallible_a testimony_n for_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o you_o beg_v the_o question_n for_o i_o deny_v any_o such_o infallible_a testimony_n to_o be_v at_o all_o requisite_a for_o our_o believe_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o you_o object_n that_o as_o a_o inconvenience_n which_o i_o apprehend_v to_o be_v none_o at_o all_o for_o i_o do_v not_o think_v it_o any_o absurdity_n to_o say_v that_o i_o can_v believe_v upon_o some_o infallible_a testimony_n that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o err_v in_o define_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n if_o by_o infallible_a certainty_n you_o mean_v such_o a_o certainty_n as_o absolute_o exclude_v a_o possibility_n of_o deception_n you_o will_v do_v well_o first_o to_o show_v how_o congruous_a this_o be_v to_o humane_a nature_n in_o this_o present_a state_n before_o you_o make_v such_o a_o certainty_n so_o necessary_a for_o any_o act_n of_o humane_a understanding_n but_o if_o by_o infallible_a certainty_n you_o mean_v only_o such_o as_o exclude_v all_o possibility_n of_o reasonable_a doubt_v upon_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o validity_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o that_o testimony_n i_o be_o to_o believe_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n upon_o then_o i_o assert_v that_o upon_o make_v the_o church_n testimony_n to_o be_v fallible_a it_o do_v not_o at_o all_o follow_v but_o that_o i_o may_v have_v so_o great_a a_o certainty_n as_o exclude_v the_o possibility_n of_o all_o reasonable_a doubt_v concern_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n for_o when_o i_o suppose_v the_o church_n testimony_n fallible_a i_o do_v not_o thereby_o understand_v as_o though_o there_o be_v as_o great_a reason_n to_o suspect_v she_o deceive_v as_o not_o nay_o i_o say_v there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n to_o suspect_v she_o deceive_v but_o by_o that_o i_o understand_v only_o this_o that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o any_o supernatural_a infallibility_n give_v she_o in_o deliver_v such_o a_o testimony_n or_o that_o such_o infallibility_n must_v be_v the_o foundation_n of_o believe_v the_o thing_n so_o deliver_v for_o whether_o i_o suppose_v your_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o be_v supernatural_o infallible_a in_o her_o tradition_n there_o will_v be_v the_o same_o difficulty_n return_v and_o a_o equal_a impossibility_n of_o vindicate_v our_o faith_n from_o the_o entanglement_n of_o a_o circle_n for_o still_o the_o question_n avoidable_a return_n from_o whence_o i_o believe_v such_o a_o supernatural_a infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n for_o in_o that_o it_o be_v supernatural_a it_o must_v suppose_v some_o promise_n on_o which_o it_o depend_v that_o promise_n must_v be_v somewhere_o extant_a and_o that_o can_v be_v no_o where_o but_o in_o scripture_n therefore_o when_o i_o be_o ask_v why_o i_o believe_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v true_a if_o i_o answer_v because_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v infallible_a the_o question_n present_o return_v since_o humane_a nature_n be_v in_o itself_o fallible_a whence_o come_v the_o church_n to_o have_v this_o infallibility_n if_o i_o answer_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n i_o be_o present_o ask_v since_o no_o man_n by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o mere_a reason_n can_v be_v assure_v of_o this_o how_o know_v you_o that_o you_o be_v not_o deceive_v in_o believe_v such_o a_o assistance_n if_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v because_o god_n who_o be_v infallible_a have_v make_v this_o promise_n in_o his_o word_n i_o be_o drive_v again_o to_o the_o first_o question_n how_o i_o know_v this_o to_o be_v god_n word_n and_o must_v answer_v it_o as_o before_o upon_o the_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o impossible_a it_o be_v to_o avoid_v a_o circle_n in_o the_o supposition_n of_o a_o supernatural_a infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n tradition_n but_o if_o no_o more_o be_v mean_v but_o a_o kind_n of_o rational_a infallibility_n though_o those_o term_n be_v not_o very_o proper_a i._n e._n so_o great_a evidence_n as_o if_o i_o question_v it_o i_o may_v upon_o equal_a ground_n question_v every_o thing_n which_o mankind_n yield_v the_o firm_a assent_n to_o because_o i_o can_v imagine_v that_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o wise_a and_o most_o considerative_a